Selected quad for the lemma: church_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
church_n communion_n member_n schism_n 3,619 5 9.7876 5 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A35128 Labyrinthvs cantuariensis, or, Doctor Lawd's labyrinth beeing an answer to the late Archbishop of Canterburies relation of a conference between himselfe and Mr. Fisher, etc., wherein the true grounds of the Roman Catholique religion are asserted, the principall controversies betwixt Catholiques and Protestants thoroughly examined, and the Bishops Meandrick windings throughout his whole worke layd open to publique view / by T.C. Carwell, Thomas, 1600-1664. 1658 (1658) Wing C721; ESTC R20902 499,353 446

There are 52 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

take_v due_a notice_n of_o they_o and_o weed_v they_o up_o it_o be_v a_o thing_n we_o confess_v and_o the_o bishop_n gain_v nothing_o by_o it_o no_o more_o do_v he_o gain_v by_o allege_v cassander_n who_o credit_n among_o catholic_n be_v so_o little_a that_o his_o testimony_n will_v be_v of_o no_o great_a weight_n be_v it_o positive_a and_o home_o to_o the_o purpose_n whereas_o it_o be_v manifest_a he_o speak_v doubtful_o and_o dare_v not_o absolute_o aver_v the_o bishop_n have_v teach_v any_o superstition_n all_o he_o venture_v to_o say_v be_v 21._o that_o through_o their_o covetousness_n he_o be_v afraid_a such_o superstition_n be_v continue_v and_o even_o this_o he_o ascribe_v rather_o to_o particular_a and_o inferior_a bishop_n then_o to_o the_o pope_n 3._o it_o be_v true_a there_o have_v be_v schism_n at_o rome_n as_o it_o happen_v in_o the_o time_n of_o st._n cyprian_n when_o novatus_n leave_v africa_n go_v to_o rome_n and_o there_o raise_v trouble_n yea_o after_o he_o novatianus_n proceed_v so_o far_o as_o to_o cause_v himself_o to_o be_v make_v antipope_n against_o cornelius_n and_o 52._o have_v many_o follower_n by_o which_o mean_v a_o schism_n spring_v up_o but_o still_o a_o great_a part_n stick_v to_o cornelius_n the_o true_a pope_n wherefore_o even_o during_o the_o schism_n as_o well_o as_o before_o the_o roman_a church_n right_o and_o true_o so_o call_v continue_v the_o catholic_a and_o as_o incorrupt_a as_o ever_o and_o why_o because_o they_o that_o leave_v the_o communion_n of_o the_o true_a pope_n and_o make_v the_o schism_n corrupt_v themselves_o but_o not_o the_o roman_a and_o catholic_a church_n which_o adhere_v to_o he_o and_o be_v for_o the_o time_n of_o their_o separation_n of_o no_o church_n at_o all_o but_o of_o the_o synagogue_n of_o satan_n whence_o it_o appear_v that_o st._n cyprian_a can_v not_o employ_v caldonius_n suprà_fw-la and_o fortunatus_n to_o bring_v the_o roman_a church_n to_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o catholic_a as_o the_o bishop_n pretend_v but_o only_a to_o reclaim_v the_o 4._o schismatic_n and_o bring_v those_o divide_a member_n which_o follow_v novatian_n to_o their_o due_a obedience_n to_o cornelius_n their_o lawful_a bishop_n and_o thereby_o to_o the_o unity_n and_o communion_n of_o the_o roman_a catholic_a church_n still_o therefore_o the_o roman_a or_o catholic_a church_n remain_v free_a and_o exempt_a from_o error_n either_o of_o schism_n or_o heresy_n and_o so_o shall_v ever_o continue_v maugre_o the_o malice_n of_o hell_n and_o whatever_o vain_a objection_n to_o the_o contrary_n 4._o a._n c._n further_o charge_n the_o relatour_n to_o have_v confess_v that_o protestant_n 1._o have_v make_v a_o rent_n and_o division_n from_o the_o roman_a or_o catholic_a church_n here_o the_o bishop_n be_v not_o a_o little_a nettle_v and_o flat_o deny_v that_o ever_o he_o affirm_v or_o thought_n that_o protestant_n make_v it_o for_o my_o part_n i_o think_v it_o a_o unprofitable_a dispute_n to_o question_v much_o what_o be_v say_v it_o more_o concern_v we_o to_o see_v what_o can_v or_o can_v be_v say_v in_o this_o point_n our_o assertion_n be_v that_o protestant_n make_v this_o rent_n or_o schism_n by_o their_o obstinate_a and_o pertinacious_a maintain_v erroneous_a doctrine_n contrary_a to_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o roman_a or_o catholic_a church_n by_o their_o reject_v the_o authority_n of_o their_o lawful_a ecclesiastical_a superior_n both_o immediate_a and_o mediate_a by_o aggregate_a themselves_o into_o a_o separate_a body_n or_o company_n of_o pretend_a christian_n independent_a of_o any_o pastor_n at_o all_o that_o be_v in_o lawful_a and_o quiet_a possession_n of_o jurisdiction_n over_o they_o by_o make_v themselves_o pastor_n and_o teacher_n of_o other_o and_o administer_a sacrament_n without_o authority_n give_v they_o by_o any_o that_o be_v lawful_o empower_v to_o give_v it_o by_o institute_v new_a rite_n and_o ceremony_n of_o their_o own_o in_o matter_n of_o religion_n contrary_a to_o those_o ancient_o receive_v throughout_o all_o christendom_n by_o violent_o exclude_v and_o dispossess_v other_o prelate_n and_o pastor_n of_o and_o from_o their_o respective_a sea_n cure_n and_o benefice_n and_o intrude_a themselves_o into_o their_o place_n in_o every_o nation_n where_o they_o can_v get_v footing_n the_o say_a prelate_n and_o pastor_n for_o the_o most_o part_n yet_o live_v these_o and_o the_o like_a practice_n not_o the_o call_n for_o truth_n and_o redress_v of_o abuse_n as_o the_o bishop_n vain_o pretend_v we_o aver_v to_o have_v be_v the_o true_a and_o real_a cause_n of_o protestants-being_a thrust_n out_o of_o the_o church_n for_o as_o almighty_a god_n leave_v no_o man_n who_o leave_v not_o he_o first_o so_o neither_o do_v the_o church_n separate_v herself_o from_o any_o man_n or_o thrust_v he_o from_o her_o communion_n who_o do_v not_o first_o depart_v and_o separate_v himself_o from_o she_o by_o obstinate_a adhere_n to_o novel_a opinion_n contrary_a to_o the_o true_a faith_n or_o by_o his_o wicked_a and_o enormous_a demeanour_n contrary_a to_o true_a charity_n or_o by_o both_o together_o the_o orthodox_n ibidem_fw-la therefore_o do_v very_o well_o in_o depart_v from_o the_o arrian_n as_o the_o relatour_n note_v in_o the_o margin_n because_o the_o arrian_n be_v already_o depart_v from_o the_o church_n by_o their_o false_a doctrine_n and_o we_o be_v so_o far_o from_o deny_v that_o the_o sin_n of_o schism_n be_v they_o who_o depart_v first_o that_o we_o charge_v it_o upon_o our_o adversary_n for_o as_o the_o arrian_n then_o depart_v first_o from_o the_o church_n not_o the_o church_n from_o they_o so_o do_v the_o protestant_n now_o of_o late_a and_o the_o faithful_a do_v well_o in_o both_o case_n to_o avoid_v all_o communion_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n both_o with_o the_o one_o and_o the_o other_o nor_o do_v the_o bishop_n vindicate_v the_o protestant_a party_n by_o say_v the_o cause_n of_o schism_n be_v we_o and_o that_o we_o catholic_n thrust_v protestant_n from_o we_o because_o they_o call_v for_o truth_n and_o redress_n of_o abuse_n for_o first_o there_o can_v be_v no_o just_a cause_n of_o schism_n this_o have_v be_v grant_v already_o even_o by_o above-cited_n protestant_n and_o to_o his_o call_n for_o truth_n etc._n etc._n i_o answer_v what_o heretic_n ever_o yet_o forsake_v the_o church_n of_o god_n but_o pretend_a truth_n and_o complain_v they_o be_v thrust_v out_o and_o hardly_o deal_v with_o mere_o because_o they_o call_v for_o truth_n and_o redress_n of_o abuse_n but_o he_o shall_v have_v reflect_v that_o the_o church_n of_o god_n be_v style_v a_o city_n of_o truth_n 3._o by_o the_o prophet_n and_o a_o pillar_n and_o foundation_n of_o truth_n 15._o by_o the_o apostle_n and_o by_o the_o father_n 30._o a_o rich_a depository_n or_o treasury_n of_o all_o divine_a and_o heavenly_a doctrine_n or_o 〈◊〉_d so_o that_o to_o charge_v she_o either_o with_o the_o want_n of_o truth_n or_o opposition_n to_o the_o preach_n of_o it_o and_o upon_o that_o ground_n to_o forsake_v her_o communion_n as_o protestant_n do_v be_v a_o inexcusable_a impiety_n and_o presumption_n that_o woe_n therefore_o of_o scandal_n mention_v by_o the_o bishop_n whether_o active_a or_o passive_a fall_v most_o heavy_o upon_o his_o own_o party_n who_o first_o take_v effence_n without_o just_a cause_n and_o afterward_o give_v just_a cause_n of_o offence_n by_o depart_v from_o the_o church_n and_o make_v a_o schism_n a_o thing_n so_o clear_a and_o undeniable_a that_o to_o use_v the_o relatour_n own_o expression_n our_o adversary_n may_v better_o defend_v their_o cause_n before_o a_o judge_n and_o a_o jury_n then_o before_o a_o assembly_n of_o learned_a divine_n after_o this_o the_o bishop_n quarrel_n with_o a._n c._n for_o vindicate_v the_o jesuit_n but_o what_o be_v the_o subject_n of_o their_o quarrel_n the_o jesuit_n aver_v the_o bishop_n to_o have_v say_v that_o protestant_n do_v make_v the_o rent_n or_o division_n from_o the_o roman_a church_n the_o bishop_n deny_v he_o say_v any_o such_o thing_n a._n c._n prove_v he_o say_v it_o either_o 〈◊〉_d or_o aequipollentibus_fw-la verbis_fw-la because_o the_o jesuit_n write_v down_o his_o word_n in_o fresh_a memory_n and_o upon_o special_a notice_n take_v of_o the_o passage_n hereupon_o the_o bishop_n fall_v into_o exclamation_n and_o admiration_n as_o if_o a._n c._n stand_v upon_o the_o brink_n of_o a_o contradiction_n but_o i_o answer_v there_o be_v not_o here_o the_o least_o show_n of_o a_o contradiction_n for_o though_o his_o lordship_n word_n be_v very_o few_o though_o write_v down_o by_o the_o jesuit_n in_o fresh_a memory_n and_o upon_o special_a notice_n take_v yet_o may_v the_o jesuit_n well_o enough_o be_v say_v to_o quote_v they_o either_o iisdem_fw-la or_o aequipollentibus_fw-la verbis_fw-la for_o timorous_a and_o tender_a conscience_n think_v they_o can_v never_o speak_v with_o caution_n enough_o for_o fear_v of_o tell_v a_o
lay_v upon_o it_o for_o st_n basil_n himself_o even_o as_o the_o bishop_n quote_v he_o profess_v 153._o to_o fight_v against_o heresy_n by_o unwritten_a doctrine_n or_o tradition_n yet_o such_o as_o be_v not_o contrary_a but_o according_a to_o scripture_n last_o we_o say_v with_o biel_n that_o scripture_n be_v a_o rule_n which_o apply_v by_o the_o church_n and_o that_o be_v biel_n express_a caution_n though_o it_o may_v not_o appear_v in_o english_a measure_v all_o thing_n yea_o and_o contain_v all_o thing_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n either_o mediate_o or_o immediate_o wherefore_o to_o take_v notice_n by_o the_o way_n of_o the_o bishop_n conceit_n upon_o 5._o gedeon_n fleece_n we_o aver_v that_o scripture_n have_v not_o only_a dew_n upon_o it_o but_o water_n in_o it_o and_o that_o enough_o not_o only_o for_o a_o lamb_n to_o wade_v through_o but_o for_o a_o elephant_n to_o swim_v but_o whosoever_o shall_v presume_v to_o wade_v or_o swim_v there_o without_o help_n of_o apostolical_a and_o ecclesiastical_a tradition_n will_v sure_o perish_v by_o his_o presumption_n he_o ask_v what_o warrant_v we_o have_v to_o seek_v another_o rule_n beside_o scripture_n but_o consider_v not_o how_o groundless_a his_o own_o assertion_n be_v that_o god_n have_v leave_v we_o scripture_n as_o the_o only_a infallible_a rule_n which_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o common_a belief_n of_o all_o true_a christian_n contrary_a to_o express_v scripture_n and_o the_o constant_a judgement_n and_o practice_n of_o the_o church_n in_o all_o age_n and_o according_a to_o the_o example_n of_o none_o but_o confess_v and_o condemn_v heretic_n 9_o but_o the_o bishop_n tell_v we_o that_o though_o the_o pope_n shall_v be_v grant_v 6._o a_o live_a infallible_a judge_n yet_o will_v it_o not_o suffice_v against_o the_o malice_n of_o the_o devil_n and_o impious_a man_n to_o keep_v the_o church_n at_o all_o time_n from_o rent_v even_o in_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n or_o to_o solder_v the_o rent_n which_o be_v make_v his_o 19_o reason_n be_v because_o oportet_fw-la haereses_fw-la esse_fw-la etc._n etc._n heresy_n there_o will_v be_v and_o heresy_n proper_o there_o can_v be_v but_o in_o doctrine_n of_o the_o faith_n i_o answer_v the_o church_n be_v at_o all_o time_n sufficient_o and_o effectual_o secure_v from_o such_o rent_n by_o the_o authority_n of_o its_o chief_a pastor_n where_o it_o be_v due_o acknowledge_v the_o malice_n of_o the_o devil_n and_o impious_a man_n by_o invent_v heresy_n hurt_v not_o the_o church_n but_o themselves_o and_o their_o adherent_n who_o by_o their_o heresy_n and_o schism_n make_v a_o divorce_n from_o the_o church_n that_o be_v either_o sever_v themselves_o or_o be_v just_o cut_v off_o from_o she_o for_o their_o error_n the_o church_n to_o speak_v proper_o remain_v still_o as_o pure_a and_o incorrupt_a as_o she_o be_v before_o heresy_n be_v not_o within_o but_o without_o the_o church_n and_o the_o rent_n or_o schismatical_a party_n which_o stand_v in_o need_n of_o soder_v be_v not_o find_v among_o the_o true_a member_n of_o the_o church_n who_o continue_v still_o unite_v in_o faith_n and_o due_a obedience_n with_o their_o head_n and_o in_o all_o necessary_a communion_n with_o one_o another_o but_o in_o those_o who_o have_v desert_v the_o true_a church_n and_o either_o make_v or_o adhere_v to_o schismatical_a and_o heretical_a congregation_n and_o herein_o true_o if_o passion_n do_v not_o too_o much_o blind_v we_o experience_n will_v tell_v we_o that_o have_v not_o the_o pope_n receive_v from_o god_n the_o power_n he_o challenge_v of_o govern_v the_o church_n as_o supreme_a head_n thereof_o under_o christ_n he_o can_v never_o have_v be_v able_a to_o preserve_v that_o peace_n and_o unity_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n that_o be_v find_v in_o the_o roman_a church_n there_o be_v upon_o other_o account_n so_o many_o feud_n and_o animosity_n among_o the_o professor_n of_o that_o religion_n or_o to_o have_v subsist_v thus_o long_o have_v his_o pretention_n to_o it_o be_v ground_v on_o mere_a policy_n and_o interest_n as_o protestant_a minister_n continual_o suggest_v to_o their_o disciple_n especial_o in_o these_o latter_a age_n wherein_o the_o wit_n and_o malice_n of_o his_o enemy_n have_v be_v sharpen_v to_o the_o utmost_a and_o every_o thing_n object_v even_o with_o notorious_a calumny_n that_o may_v possible_o serve_v to_o render_v his_o authority_n suspect_v and_o contemptible_a even_o with_o those_o who_o acknowledge_v it_o but_o leave_v he_o to_o the_o execution_n of_o his_o pastoral_a charge_n let_v we_o see_v how_o matter_n go_v between_o the_o bishop_n and_o his_o adversary_n 10._o a._n c._n tell_v we_o there_o be_v no_o earthly_a kingdom_n that_o when_o matter_n can_v opportune_o be_v compose_v by_o parliament_n which_o upon_o all_o occasion_n and_o at_o all_o time_n can_v be_v summon_v have_v not_o beside_o the_o law-book_n some_o live_a magistrate_n and_o judge_n and_o above_o all_o one_o visible_a king_n the_o supreme_a magistrate_n and_o judge_n to_o determine_v emergent_a controversy_n and_o preserve_v peace_n in_o temporal_a affair_n and_o thence_o à_fw-la paritate_fw-la rationis_fw-la or_o rather_o à_fw-la fortiori_fw-la infer_v that_o christ_n the_o wise_a of_o king_n have_v in_o like_a manner_n provide_v in_o his_o kingdom_n the_o church_n beside_o the_o law-book_n of_o holy_a scripture_n some_o visible_a magistrate_n and_o judge_n and_o above_o all_o one_o chief_a magistrate_n and_o judge_n sufficient_o impower_v and_o assist_v by_o his_o spirit_n as_o to_o put_v a_o end_n to_o all_o controversy_n concern_v ecclesiastical_a affair_n and_o preserve_v his_o church_n in_o the_o unity_n and_o certainty_n of_o faith_n to_o which_o the_o relatour_n think_v it_o sufficient_a to_o say_v all_o this_o be_v but_o a_o simile_n and_o if_o the_o similitude_n hold_v not_o in_o the_o main_a the_o argument'_v nothing_o the_o similitude_n upon_o which_o a._n c._n ground_n his_o discourse_n be_v that_o the_o whole_a militant_a church_n be_v a_o kingdom_n which_o the_o bishop_n deny_v tell_v we_o they_o be_v no_o mean_a one_o who_o think_v our_o saviour_n christ_n leave_v the_o church_n militant_a in_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o their_o successor_n in_o a_o aristocratical_a or_o mix_v government_n but_o i_o answer_v though_o a._n c._n urge_v the_o argument_n in_o the_o similitude_n of_o a_o kingdom_n only_o yet_o be_v it_o of_o force_n in_o any_o other_o kind_n of_o settle_a government_n in_o a_o commonwealth_n beside_o the_o law-book_n it_o be_v requisite_a there_o be_v a_o live_a judge_n or_o judge_n invest_v with_o supreme_a authority_n to_o determine_v all_o matter_n in_o difference_n among_o the_o people_n what_o the_o relatour_n bring_v against_o the_o monarchy_n of_o the_o militant_a church_n show_v only_o that_o it_o be_v not_o a_o pure_a but_o a_o mix_a monarchy_n participate_v somewhat_o both_o of_o aristocracy_n and_o democracy_n i_o call_v that_o a_o pure_a monarchy_n in_o which_o all_o the_o sovereign_a power_n be_v so_o in_o one_o alone_a as_o that_o no_o other_o person_n or_o person_n in_o the_o kingdom_n govern_v but_o in_o virtue_n of_o the_o monarch_n authority_n and_o mere_o as_o his_o substitute_n a_o mix_a monarchy_n be_v that_o in_o which_o one_o indeed_o be_v supreme_a and_o in_o some_o case_n command_v all_o yet_o so_o as_o other_o within_o the_o monarchy_n be_v prince_n and_o do_v govern_v both_o town_n and_o province_n as_o their_o own_o and_o with_o right_n of_o sovereignty_n though_o not_o absolute_a but_o hold_v and_o depend_v on_o the_o monarch_n in_o chief_a now_o the_o supreme_a government_n of_o the_o church_n be_v clear_o monarchical_a see_v the_o pope_n as_o vicar_n of_o christ_n and_o st._n peter_n successor_n have_v a_o supreme_a authority_n over_o the_o whole_a church_n yet_o be_v not_o his_o monarchy_n pure_a but_o mix_v because_o bishop_n within_o their_o respective_a diocese_n and_o jurisdiction_n be_v spiritual_a prince_n also_o that_o be_v chief_z pastor_n and_o governor_n of_o such_o a_o part_n of_o the_o church_n in_o their_o own_o right_n and_o not_o mere_o his_o vicar_n and_o substitute_n placeable_a and_o displaceable_a at_o his_o pleasure_n in_o this_o respect_n therefore_o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n have_v something_o of_o the_o aristocratical_a in_o it_o and_o because_o any_o man_n if_o sufficient_o qualify_v for_o it_o may_v be_v promote_v to_o a_o bishopric_n it_o have_v something_o also_o of_o democratical_a 11._o but_o since_o the_o government_n of_o one_o in_o chief_a be_v by_o all_o philosopher_n acknowledge_v for_o the_o most_o perfect_a what_o wonder_n be_v it_o that_o christ_n our_o saviour_n think_v it_o fit_a to_o govern_v his_o church_n by_o one_o viceroy_n as_o the_o bishop_n be_v please_v to_o term_v he_o then_o aristocratical_o or_o by_o many_o as_o he_o will_v have_v it_o and_o as_o for_o the_o literae_fw-la communicatoriae_fw-la 8._o which_o himself_n allege_v
the_o bishop_n think_v this_o injury_n not_o great_a enough_o unless_o he_o redouble_v it_o by_o any_o additional_a false_a imputation_n of_o other_o two_o absurdity_n which_o he_o aver_v to_o follow_v evident_o from_o our_o doctrine_n to_o the_o first_o viz._n that_o we_o ascribe_v as_o great_a authority_n if_o not_o great_a to_o a_o part_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n as_o we_o do_v to_o the_o whole_a i_o answer_v there_o follow_v no_o such_o thing_n from_o any_o doctrine_n of_o we_o but_o from_o his_o lordship_n wilfully-mistaken_a notion_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n which_o he_o most_o desperate_o extend_v to_o all_o that_o bear_v the_o name_n of_o christian_n without_o exception_n of_o either_o schismatic_n or_o heretic_n that_o so_o he_o may_v be_v sure_a to_o include_v himself_o within_o her_o pale_a and_o make_v the_o reader_n absurd_o believe_v that_o the_o roman_a church_n take_v in_o her_o full_a latitude_n be_v but_o a_o 〈◊〉_d or_o parcel_v of_o the_o catholic_a church_n believe_v in_o the_o creed_n this_o indeed_o to_o use_v his_o lordship_n phrase_n be_v full_a of_o absurdity_n in_o nature_n in_o reason_n in_o all_o thing_n for_o it_o be_v to_o pretend_v a_o addition_n of_o integral_a part_n to_o a_o body_n already_o entire_a in_o all_o its_o integral_n see_v the_o roman_a church_n take_v in_o the_o sense_n it_o ought_v to_o be_v as_o comprise_v all_o christian_n that_o be_v in_o her_o communion_n be_v the_o sole_a and_o whole_a catholic_a church_n as_o be_v evident_a in_o ecclesiastical_a history_n which_o clear_o show_v throughout_o all_o age_n that_o none_o condemn_v of_o heresy_n or_o schism_n by_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v ever_o account_v any_o part_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o this_o i_o will_v have_v prove_v at_o large_a have_v his_o lordship_n do_v any_o more_o than_o bare_o suppose_v the_o contrary_a if_o any_o man_n shall_v object_v that_o the_o bishop_n charge_v the_o absurdity_n upon_o we_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n that_o we_o ascribe_v as_o great_a authority_n if_o not_o great_a to_o a_o part_n of_o it_o as_o we_o do_v to_o the_o whole_a viz._n in_o our_o general_a council_n i_o answer_v that_o be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v a_o absurdity_n that_o it_o be_v absurd_a to_o suppose_v it_o can_v be_v otherwise_o which_o the_o objecter_n himself_o will_v clear_o fee_v when_o he_o consider_v that_o the_o like_a must_v needs_o be_v grant_v even_o in_o civil_a government_n for_o instance_n the_o parliament_n of_o england_n be_v but_o a_o handful_n of_o man_n compare_v with_o the_o whole_a nation_n yet_o have_v they_o great_a authority_n in_o order_n to_o the_o make_n or_o repeal_n of_o law_n than_o the_o whole_a nation_n be_v they_o meet_v together_o in_o a_o body_n man_n woman_n and_o child_n which_o will_v produce_v nothing_o but_o a_o absolute_a confusion_n the_o application_n be_v so_o easy_a i_o leave_v it_o to_o the_o objecter_n himself_o to_o make_v the_o second_o accusation_n which_o the_o bishop_n lay_v to_o our_o charge_n be_v this_o that_o in_o our_o doctrine_n concern_v the_o infallibility_n of_o our_o church_n our_o proceed_n be_v most_o unreasonable_a in_o regard_n we_o will_v not_o have_v recourse_n to_o text_n of_o scripture_n exposition_n of_o father_n propriety_n of_o language_n conference_n of_o place_n etc._n etc._n but_o argue_v that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o present_a church_n of_o rome_n be_v true_a and_o catholic_n because_o she_o profess_v it_o to_o be_v such_o which_o say_v he_o be_v to_o prove_v idem_fw-la per_fw-la idem_fw-la whereas_o true_o we_o most_o willing_o embrace_v and_o have_v frequent_a recourse_n to_o all_o the_o bishop_n mention_v help_n and_o that_o with_o much_o more_o candour_n than_o protestant_n can_v with_o any_o ground_n of_o reason_n pretend_v to_o consider_v their_o manifold_a wrest_n both_o of_o scripture_n and_o father_n when_o they_o either_o urge_v they_o against_o we_o or_o endeavour_v to_o evade_v their_o clear_a testimony_n for_o we_o neither_o be_v we_o in_o any_o danger_n of_o commit_v a_o circle_n or_o prove_v 64._o idem_fw-la per_fw-la idem_fw-la because_o his_o lordship_n see_v not_o how_o we_o can_v possible_o wind_v ourselves_o out_o the_o business_n be_v not_o so_o insuperable_o difficult_a in_o our_o doctrine_n for_o if_o we_o be_v ask_v how_o we_o know_v the_o church_n to_o be_v infallible_a our_o last_o answer_n be_v not_o as_o he_o feign_v because_o she_o profess_v herself_o to_o be_v such_o but_o we_o know_v she_o to_o be_v infallible_a by_o the_o motive_n of_o credibility_n which_o sufficient_o prove_v she_o to_o be_v such_o so_o the_o prophet_n christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n be_v in_o their_o time_n know_v to_o be_v infallible_a oracle_n and_o teacher_n of_o truth_n by_o the_o like_a sign_n and_o motive_n only_o this_o difference_n there_o be_v that_o these_o viz._n christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n etc._n etc._n confirm_v their_o doctrine_n give_v infallible_a testimony_n that_o what_o they_o teach_v be_v the_o immediate_a revelation_n and_o word_n of_o god_n whereas_o the_o motive_n which_o confirm_v the_o declaration_n and_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n do_v only_o show_v that_o she_o infallible_o deliver_v to_o we_o the_o same_o revelation_n i_o mean_v the_o same_o for_o sense_n and_o substance_n of_o doctrine_n which_o the_o other_o receive_v immediate_o from_o god_n and_o that_o to_o rest_n in_o this_o manner_n upon_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o present_a church_n in_o the_o resolution_n of_o our_o faith_n be_v not_o to_o prove_v idem_fw-la per_fw-la idem_fw-la as_o the_o bishop_n false_o impute_v to_o we_o i_o clear_o show_v by_o two_o several_a instance_n which_o even_o those_o of_o his_o party_n must_v of_o necessity_n allow_v 5._o the_o first_o instance_n be_v of_o the_o church_n in_o time_n of_o the_o apostle_n for_o who_o see_v not_o that_o a_o sectary_n may_v in_o those_o day_n have_v argue_v against_o the_o apostolical_a church_n by_o the_o very_a same_o method_n his_o lordship_n here_o use_v against_o the_o present_a catholic_a church_n may_v he_o not_o have_v tax_v those_o christian_n of_o unreasonable_a proceed_n in_o their_o belief_n and_o have_v set_v it_o forth_o as_o the_o bishop_n do_v thus_o for_o if_o you_o ask_v they_o why_o they_o believe_v the_o whole_a doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n to_o be_v the_o sole_a true_a catholic_a faith_n their_o answer_n be_v because_o it_o be_v agreeable_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ._n if_o you_o ask_v they_o how_o they_o know_v it_o to_o be_v so_o they_o will_v produce_v the_o word_n sentence_n and_o work_v of_o christ_n who_o teach_v it_o but_o if_o you_o ask_v a_o three_o time_n by_o what_o mean_v they_o be_v assure_v that_o those_o testimony_n do_v indeed_o make_v for_o they_o and_o their_o cause_n or_o be_v real_o the_o testimony_n and_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n they_o will_v not_o then_o have_v recourse_n to_o those_o testimony_n or_o doctrine_n but_o their_o final_a answer_n be_v they_o know_v it_o to_o be_v so_o because_o the_o present_a apostolic_a church_n do_v witness_v it_o and_o so_o by_o consequence_n prove_v idem_fw-la per_fw-la idem_fw-la thus_o the_o sectary_n by_o which_o it_o be_v clear_a that_o the_o bishop_n objection_n against_o the_o present_a roman_a church_n wherein_o he_o will_v seem_v to_o make_v a_o discovery_n of_o her_o corruption_n and_o politic_a interest_n be_v equal_o applyable_a to_o the_o primitive_a apostolic_a church_n in_o its_o undeniable_a purity_n but_o at_o once_o to_o answer_v both_o the_o bishop_n and_o sectary_n objection_n i_o affirm_v that_o the_o prime_n and_o precise_a reason_n to_o be_v give_v why_o we_o believe_v the_o voice_n of_o the_o present_a church_n witness_v or_o give_v assurance_n of_o divine_a revelation_n to_o we_o be_v neither_o scripture_n council_n nor_o father_n no_o nor_o the_o oral_a doctrine_n of_o christ_n himself_o but_o the_o pregnant_a and_o convince_a motive_n of_o credibility_n which_o move_v both_o the_o primitive_a christian_n and_o we_o in_o our_o respective_a time_n to_o believe_v the_o church_n not_o that_o we_o be_v necessitate_v to_o resolve_v our_o faith_n into_o the_o motive_n as_o its_o formal_a object_n or_o ultimate_a reason_n of_o assent_n for_o that_o can_v be_v no_o other_o than_o the_o divine_a authority_n reveal_v but_o as_o into_o most_o certain_a inducement_n powerful_o and_o prudent_o incline_v our_o will_n to_o accept_v the_o present_a church_n as_o the_o infallible_a organ_n ordain_v by_o divine_a authority_n to_o teach_v we_o the_o sure_a way_n of_o salvation_n the_o second_o instance_n be_v ad_fw-la hominem_fw-la against_o the_o bishop_n in_o relation_n to_o those_o fundamental_a truth_n wherein_o he_o confess_v the_o whole_a church_n neither_o do_v nor_o can_v err_v for_o suppose_v a_o separatist_n shall_v thus_o argue_v with_o his_o lordship_n your_o doctrine_n concern_v the_o infallibility_n
to_o err_v in_o this_o sort_n be_v certain_o to_o commit_v high_a and_o mortal_a offence_n against_o the_o honour_n and_o veracity_n of_o god_n and_o consequent_o the_o direct_a way_n to_o eternal_a perdition_n yea_o whatever_o congregation_n of_o christian_n teach_v in_o this_o manner_n if_o it_o be_v do_v through_o malice_n they_o be_v seducer_n if_o through_o ignorance_n they_o be_v seduce_v and_o blind_a guide_n and_o so_o lead_v the_o blind_a into_o the_o same_o destruction_n with_o themselves_o to_o neither_o of_o which_o inconvenience_n can_v the_o whole_a church_n be_v liable_a if_o there_o be_v truth_n in_o the_o promise_v of_o christ._n the_o example_n then_o of_o a_o man_n who_o may_v be_v term_v a_o man_n though_o 2._o he_o be_v not_o honest_a come_v not_o home_n to_o our_o case_n have_v the_o bishop_n in_o lieu_n of_o the_o word_n man_n put_v saint_n which_o essential_o include_v both_o man_n and_o holiness_n the_o parallel_n will_v have_v hold_v better_a for_o the_o word_n church_n in_o our_o present_a debate_n imply_v not_o a_o simple_a or_o uncompounded_a term_n as_o that_o of_o man_n but_o be_v a_o compound_n of_o substance_n and_o accident_n together_o which_o accident_n signify_v perfection_n and_o integrity_n of_o condition_n and_o exclude_v the_o contrary_a defect_n viz._n heresy_n schism_n and_o error_n in_o faith_n wherefore_o if_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v as_o the_o relatour_n feign_v it_o so_o corrupt_a as_o to_o misuse_v the_o sacrament_n of_o christ_n and_o to_o make_v scripture_n a_o imperfect_a rule_n of_o faith_n when_o christ_n have_v make_v it_o a_o perfect_a one_o it_o will_v be_v unchurch_v this_o a_o man_n may_v learn_v even_o out_o of_o the_o apostle_n creed_n by_o which_o he_o profess_v to_o believe_v the_o holy_a catholic_a church_n moreover_o st._n athanasius_n in_o his_o creed_n teach_v that_o unless_o a_o man_n keep_v the_o whole_a catholic_a faith_n entire_a and_o inviolate_a he_o shall_v without_o all_o doubt_n perish_v it_o be_v undeniable_a then_o no_o salvation_n be_v to_o be_v have_v where_o such_o false_a doctrine_n be_v teach_v and_o by_o consequence_n no_o true_a church_n again_o the_o church_n be_v the_o spouse_n of_o christ_n and_o a_o pure_a virgin_n who_o lose_v her_o honour_n by_o prostitute_v herself_o to_o error_n much_o more_o by_o force_v all_o under_o pain_n of_o damnation_n to_o believe_v those_o very_a error_n for_o god_n word_n to_o say_v then_o that_o a_o congregation_n so_o gross_o erroneous_a and_o seduce_a be_v a_o true_a church_n be_v in_o effect_n to_o say_v that_o christ_n have_v a_o harlot_n to_o his_o spouse_n 4._o there_o be_v yet_o much_o skirmish_v about_o the_o form_n of_o word_n in_o which_o the_o lady_n ask_v the_o question_n a._n c._n aver_v he_o be_v certain_a that_o she_o desire_v to_o know_v of_o the_o bishop_n whether_o he_o will_v grant_v the_o roman_a church_n to_o be_v a_o right_a church_n because_o he_o have_v particular_o speak_v with_o she_o before_o and_o wish_v she_o to_o insist_v upon_o that_o point_n whereupon_o his_o lordship_n make_v a_o special_a reflection_n with_o what_o cunning_a adversary_n the_o clergy_n 4._o of_o england_n have_v to_o deal_v who_o prepare_v their_o disciple_n and_o instruct_v they_o before_o hand_n upon_o what_o point_v to_o insist_v but_o this_o be_v no_o cunning_a but_o necessary_a prudence_n and_o charity_n to_o wish_v the_o lady_n to_o require_v satisfaction_n in_o those_o point_n wherein_o she_o have_v the_o great_a difficulty_n and_o which_o it_o most_o import_v she_o to_o understand_v certain_o have_v any_o of_o the_o roman_a church_n address_v themselves_o to_o the_o bishop_n for_o satisfaction_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n he_o will_v never_o for_o fear_v of_o be_v account_v a_o cunning_a disputant_n have_v scruple_v to_o instruct_v they_o to_o make_v the_o strong_a objection_n he_o can_v against_o the_o roman_a tenet_n but_o the_o bishop_n go_v on_o and_o acquaint_v the_o reader_n with_o a_o perfect_a 4._o jesuitism_n if_o you_o believe_v he_o viz._n which_o measure_v the_o catholic_a church_n by_o that_o which_o be_v in_o the_o city_n or_o diocese_n of_o rome_n and_o not_o rome_n by_o the_o catholic_a as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o primitive_a time_n but_o this_o be_v no_o jesuitism_n but_o rather_o a_o solecism_n against_o truth_n and_o a_o falsify_v of_o the_o text._n for_o i_o find_v not_o those_o word_n in_o a._n c._n which_o be_v cite_v viz._n the_o lady_n will_v know_v not_o whether_o that_o be_v the_o catholic_a church_n to_o which_o rome_n agree_v but_o whether_o that_o be_v not_o the_o holy_a catholic_a church_n which_o agree_v with_o rome_n no_o such_o quere_z as_o this_o be_v propound_v by_o the_o lady_n as_o appear_v in_o the_o former_a word_n of_o a._n c._n it_o be_v all_o one_o to_o she_o whether_o rome_n must_v always_o agree_v with_o the_o catholic_n church_n or_o the_o catholic_n church_n always_o agree_v with_o rome_n such_o punctilio_n as_o these_o the_o lady_n never_o dream_v of_o nor_o be_v they_o so_o much_o as_o hint_v at_o by_o a._n c._n it_o be_v enough_o for_o the_o lady_n satisfaction_n to_o know_v whether_o rome_n and_o all_o particular_a church_n agree_v with_o she_o in_o doctrine_n and_o communion_n or_o constantinople_n if_o you_o please_v and_o those_o which_o communicate_v with_o she_o or_o the_o english-protestant_n church_n and_o they_o who_o consent_n with_o it_o be_v the_o catholic_a church_n thus_o that_o the_o jesuit_n may_v be_v think_v to_o have_v singularity_n and_o novelty_n in_o their_o doctrine_n find_v none_o of_o their_o own_o he_o have_v endeavour_v to_o coin_v one_o for_o they_o which_o he_o esteem_v a_o strange_a paradox_n though_o indeed_o it_o be_v none_o for_o put_v case_n a._n c._n have_v affirm_v that_o the_o church_n be_v style_v catholic_n by_o agree_v with_o rome_n yet_o have_v it_o be_v no_o jesuitism_n but_o a_o receive_v and_o know_v truth_n in_o the_o ancient_a church_n 5._o for_o the_o better_a understanding_n of_o this_o we_o be_v to_o note_v the_o word_n catholic_n may_v be_v use_v in_o three_o different_a acception_n viz._n either_o formal_o causal_o or_o by_o way_n of_o participation_n formal_o the_o universal_a church_n that_o be_v the_o society_n of_o all_o true_a particular_a church_n unite_v together_o in_o one_o body_n in_o one_o communion_n and_o under_o one_o head_n be_v call_v catholic_n causal_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v style_v catholic_n because_o it_o have_v a_o influence_n and_o force_n to_o cause_v universality_n in_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n to_o which_o universality_n two_o thing_n be_v necessary_a one_o be_v multitude_n which_o serve_v as_o a_o analogical_a matter_n whereof_o it_o consist_v for_o where_o there_o be_v no_o multitude_n there_o can_v be_v no_o universality_n the_o other_o be_v in_o place_n of_o form_n viz._n unity_n for_o multitude_n without_o unity_n will_v never_o make_v universality_n take_v away_o say_v st._n austin_n 26._o unity_n from_o multitude_n and_o it_o be_v turba_n a_o rout_n but_o join_v to_o it_o unity_n an_o it_o become_v populus_fw-la a_o community_n the_o roman_a church_n therefore_o which_o as_o a_o centre_n of_o ecclesiastical_a communion_n infuse_v this_o unity_n which_o be_v the_o form_n of_o universality_n into_o the_o catholic_n church_n and_o thereby_o cause_v in_o her_o universality_n may_v be_v call_v catholic_n causal_o though_o she_o be_v but_o a_o particular_a church_n so_o he_o that_o command_v in_o chief_a over_o a_o whole_a army_n and_o make_v a_o unity_n in_o that_o military_a body_n be_v style_v general_n though_o he_o be_v but_o a_o particular_a person_n three_o every_o particular_a orthodox_n church_n be_v term_v catholic_n participatiuè_n by_o way_n of_o participation_n because_o they_o agree_v in_o and_o participate_v of_o the_o doctrine_n and_o communion_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n in_o this_o sense_n the_o church_n of_o smyrna_n address_v her_o epistle_n thus_o to_o the_o catholic_n church_n of_o philomilion_n and_o to_o all_o the_o catholic_a church_n which_o be_v 5._o spread_v through_o the_o whole_a world_n thus_o we_o see_v both_o how_o proper_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v call_v catholic_n and_o how_o the_o catholic_n church_n itself_o take_v causal_o the_o denomination_n of_o universal_a or_o catholic_n from_o the_o roman_a consider_v as_o the_o chief_a particular_a church_n infuse_v unity_n to_o all_o the_o rest_n as_o have_v dependence_n of_o she_o and_o relation_n to_o she_o nay_o it_o be_v a_o ordinary_a practice_n in_o primitive_a time_n to_o account_v those_o catholic_n who_o agree_v with_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a and_o this_o be_v manifest_a by_o many_o example_n st._n 〈◊〉_d relate_v that_o his_o brother_n satyrus_n go_v on_o shore_n in_o a_o certain_a city_n of_o sardinia_n where_o he_o desire_v to_o be_v baptize_v demand_v of_o the_o bishop_n of_o
if_o there_o have_v be_v a_o change_n let_v it_o appear_v when_o and_o in_o what_o the_o change_n be_v make_v for_o the_o same_o reason_n also_o if_o it_o be_v now_o the_o true_a church_n it_o be_v ever_o so_o have_v always_o adhere_v to_o st._n peter_n successor_n and_o the_o doctrine_n by_o he_o deliver_v 1._o but_o the_o relatour_n assert_n that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v and_o ibidem_fw-la be_v not_o a_o right_a and_o orthodox_n church_n before_o luther_n make_v a_o breach_n from_o it_o for_o in_o the_o prime_a time_n of_o it_o it_o be_v a_o most_o right_a and_o orthodox_n church_n but_o if_o we_o look_v upon_o the_o immediate_a time_n before_o luther_n than_o it_o be_v a_o corrupt_a and_o taint_a church_n in_o this_o i_o say_v the_o relatour_n beg_v the_o question_n for_o the_o roman_a church_n remain_v always_o the_o same_o it_o be_v from_o the_o beginning_n because_o in_o this_o dispute_n the_o roman_a signify_v the_o catholic_a church_n according_a to_o that_o of_o dr._n stapleton_n apud_fw-la veteres_fw-la 3._o pro_fw-la eodem_fw-la habita_fw-la fuit_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la romana_fw-la &_o ecclesia_fw-la catholica_fw-la among_o the_o ancient_n say_v he_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o the_o catholic_a church_n be_v take_v for_o the_o same_o we_o add_v they_o be_v now_o also_o to_o be_v hold_v for_o the_o same_o and_o the_o reason_n give_v by_o stapleton_n whatever_o the_o bishop_n think_v do_v not_o at_o all_o destroy_v the_o say_a identity_n his_o reason_n be_v quia_fw-la ejus_fw-la communio_fw-la erat_fw-la evidenter_fw-la &_o certissimè_fw-la cum_fw-la totâ_fw-la catholicâ_fw-la because_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v most_o certain_o and_o evident_o with_o the_o whole_a catholic_a and_o by_o consequence_n the_o whole_a catholic_n with_o it_o wherefore_o as_o the_o catholic_a church_n continue_v ever_o the_o same_o and_o incorrupt_a so_o do_v the_o roman_a which_o be_v the_o same_o with_o the_o catholic_a this_o a._n c._n sufficient_o express_v when_o he_o mention_v the_o roman_a church_n not_o only_o as_o it_o contain_v the_o city_n and_o diocese_n of_o rome_n but_o all_o that_o agree_v with_o it_o in_o doctrine_n and_o communion_n for_o it_o be_v clear_a by_o roman_a church_n in_o that_o sense_n he_o can_v understand_v no_o other_o but_o the_o catholic_a we_o deny_v then_o that_o any_o abuse_n or_o error_n do_v at_o any_o time_n more_o corrupt_a or_o taint_v the_o roman_a church_n than_o they_o do_v the_o catholic_a wherefore_o it_o seem_v very_o strange_a to_o hear_v his_o lordship_n say_v that_o the_o roman_a church_n never_o be_v nor_o ever_o can_v be_v the_o right_n or_o the_o holy_a catholic_a church_n for_o when_o it_o be_v a_o right_a church_n as_o he_o himself_o grant_v it_o once_o be_v if_o we_o take_v it_o in_o a._n c_n sense_n viz._n not_o only_o for_o that_o church_n which_o be_v within_o the_o city_n or_o diocese_n of_o rome_n but_o for_o all_o that_o agree_v with_o it_o what_o difference_n will_v he_o find_v betwixt_o the_o holy_a catholic_a church_n and_o all_o other_o agree_v with_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n what_o he_o assert_v of_o the_o immediate_a time_n before_o luther_n or_o some_o age_n before_o that_o then_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v a_o corrupt_a and_o taint_a church_n and_o far_o from_o be_v a_o right_a church_n sound_v very_o harsh_o in_o a_o christian_n ear_n for_o if_o in_o all_o those_o age_n the_o roman_a church_n that_o be_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o all_o other_o church_n agree_v with_o she_o be_v wrong_v corrupt_a and_o taint_v and_o all_o those_o likewise_o that_o disagree_v from_o she_o viz._n hussites_n albigenses_n waldenses_n wickleffist_n greek_n abyssins_n armenian_n etc._n etc._n have_v in_o they_o corrupt_a doctrine_n during_o those_o age_n as_o it_o be_v certain_a they_o have_v neither_o can_v the_o relatour_n deny_v it_o i_o say_v if_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v thus_o corrupt_a it_o follow_v that_o not_o only_o for_o some_o time_n but_o for_o many_o age_n before_o luther_n yea_o even_o up_o to_o the_o apostle_n time_n there_o be_v no_o one_o visible_a church_n untainted_a incorrupt_a right_a orthodox_n throughout_o the_o whole_a world_n and_o consequent_o that_o during_o the_o say_a age_n every_o good_a christian_a be_v in_o conscience_n oblige_v in_o some_o point_n of_o christian_a belief_n or_o other_o to_o contradict_v the_o doctrine_n and_o desert_n the_o communion_n of_o all_o visible_a church_n in_o the_o world_n since_o no_o church_n not_o confess_o heretical_a can_v be_v show_v that_o do_v not_o communicate_v both_o in_o doctrine_n and_o discipline_n with_o the_o roman_a during_o all_o that_o time_n whence_o it_o will_v further_o follow_v that_o schism_n or_o separation_n from_o the_o external_a communion_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n may_v be_v not_o only_o lawful_a which_o be_v contrary_a to_o all_o the_o holy_a father_n as_o dr._n hammond_n well_o prove_v in_o his_o book_n of_o 2._o schism_n but_o even_o necessary_a which_o be_v impossible_a as_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o very_a essential_a predicate_v of_o schism_n which_o be_v define_v to_o be_v a_o voluntary_a or_o wilful_a departure_n such_o as_o no_o just_a cause_n or_o reason_n can_v be_v give_v of_o it_o from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n 2._o his_o great_a marginal_a note_n out_o of_o petrus_n de_fw-it alliaco_fw-it signify_v but_o little_a for_o as_o it_o mention_n not_o any_o false_a doctrine_n teach_v by_o the_o roman_a church_n so_o neither_o do_v it_o threaten_v that_o any_o shall_v be_v teach_v by_o it_o after_o his_o time_n but_o clear_o speak_v of_o schism_n and_o heresy_n raise_v against_o the_o church_n not_o foster_v by_o she_o in_o all_o part_n of_o christendom_n otherwise_o we_o must_v esteem_v that_o learned_a cardinal_n a_o man_n either_o very_o ignorant_a or_o very_o impious_a to_o make_v the_o church_n itself_o ecclesiam_fw-la dei_fw-la as_o he_o speak_v guilty_a of_o schism_n and_o heresy_n which_o even_o in_o our_o adversary_n opinion_n be_v hold_v to_o be_v incompatible_a with_o the_o church_n of_o god_n and_o destructive_a of_o it_o it_o be_v certain_a bellarmin_n acknowledge_v no_o error_n in_o pope_n but_o only_o as_o they_o be_v private_a doctor_n he_o admit_v not_o any_o error_n to_o have_v be_v define_v by_o they_o by_o authority_n proper_o papal_a or_o ex_fw-la cathedrâ_fw-la for_o christ_n doctrine_n or_o to_o be_v believe_v by_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o indeed_o he_o even_o clear_v they_o of_o error_n in_o the_o first_o kind_n so_o far_o as_o to_o show_v that_o they_o do_v never_o so_o much_o as_o personal_o or_o in_o quality_n of_o private_a doctor_n err_v or_o teach_v any_o error_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n public_o define_v and_o admit_v for_o such_o by_o the_o whole_a church_n which_o though_o it_o be_v a_o very_a pious_a opinion_n yet_o no_o man_n be_v oblige_v to_o embrace_v it_o as_o a_o point_n of_o faith_n for_o catholic_a faith_n in_o this_o particular_a only_o oblige_v we_o to_o maintain_v that_o the_o pope_n be_v infallible_a when_o he_o define_v with_o a_o general_n council_n to_o what_o good_a purpose_n than_o do_v the_o relatour_n in_o his_o margin_n pin_v this_o follow_a assertion_n upon_o bellarmin_n et_fw-la papas_n quosdam_fw-la grave_n errores_fw-la seminasse_n in_fw-la ecclesiâ_fw-la christi_fw-la luce_fw-fr clarius_fw-la est_fw-la there_o be_v nothing_o like_o such_o a_o proposition_n in_o the_o whole_a chapter_n cite_v by_o the_o bishop_n almainus_n speak_v not_o of_o error_n in_o faith_n at_o all_o much_o less_o do_v he_o ibidem_fw-la say_v the_o pope_n teach_v the_o whole_a church_n such_o error_n but_o only_a of_o error_n or_o rather_o abuse_n in_o point_n of_o manner_n which_o may_v happen_v by_o the_o bad_a example_n of_o pope_n or_o their_o remissness_n in_o the_o execution_n of_o their_o pastoral_a office_n but_o what_o if_o some_o of_o they_o shall_v be_v prove_v to_o have_v teach_v error_n in_o doctrine_n as_o private_a man_n that_o destroy_v not_o the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o church_n nor_o of_o the_o pope_n as_o we_o maintain_v it_o no_o more_o than_o his_o permit_v or_o suffer_v other_o through_o his_o negligence_n to_o teach_v such_o error_n hence_o also_o his_o simile_n of_o tare_n sow'n_v among_o wheat_n be_v nothing_o to_o the_o purpose_n for_o if_o he_o mean_v by_o tare_n sow'n_v false_a doctrine_n public_o and_o definitive_o teach_v by_o the_o pope_n or_o receive_v by_o the_o church_n in_o this_o sense_n we_o absolute_o deny_v that_o ever_o any_o tare_n be_v sow'n_v or_o ever_o shall_v be_v sow'n_v in_o the_o field_n of_o god_n church_n but_o if_o he_o mean_v sow'n_v only_o by_o private_a person_n and_o grow_v up_o but_o for_o some_o time_n through_o negligence_n of_o particular_a pastor_n until_o the_o supreme_a pastor_n either_o by_o himself_o or_o assist_v with_o his_o council_n
use_v his_o own_o language_n enterfeire_n shrewd_o for_o speak_v of_o the_o whole_a church_n militant_a he_o tell_v we_o if_o she_o can_v err_v either_o from_o the_o foundation_n or_o in_o it_o she_o can_v be_v no_o long_o holy_a and_o that_o article_n of_o the_o creed_n be_v go_v i_o believe_v the_o holy_a catholic_a church_n yet_o present_o after_o speak_v of_o the_o same_o church_n he_o say_v if_o she_o err_v in_o the_o foundation_n that_o be_v in_o some_o one_o or_o more_o fundamental_a point_n of_o faith_n than_o she_o may_v be_v a_o church_n of_o christ_n still_o but_o not_o holy_a but_o become_v heretical_a these_o word_n i_o say_v hang_v not_o well_o together_o for_o a_o heretical_a congregation_n can_v be_v a_o church_n of_o christ_n because_o by_o pertinacious_a and_o obstinate_a err_a especial_o against_o the_o fundamental_a and_o prime_a article_n of_o the_o creed_n it_o become_v neither_o holy_a nor_o church_n of_o christ_n believe_v no_o more_o any_o part_n of_o christian_a doctrine_n with_o divine_a and_o supernatural_a faith_n then_o if_o it_o have_v fall_v into_o a_o general_a apostasy_n from_o the_o whole_a foundation_n it_o be_v therefore_o very_o strange_a to_o hear_v he_o say_v that_o if_o the_o church_n err_v in_o one_o or_o more_o fundamental_a point_n than_o she_o may_v be_v a_o church_n of_o christ_n still_o though_o not_o holy_a but_o heretical_a be_v there_o two_o sort_n of_o christs-churche_n upon_o earth_n one_o holy_a the_o other_o unholy_a one_o catholic_n the_o other_o heretical_a be_v a_o church_n err_v in_o the_o very_a foundation_n itself_o and_o that_o in_o more_o than_o one_o point_n of_o it_o a_o church_n of_o christ_n still_o what_o call_v he_o then_o i_o pray_v the_o synagogue_n of_o satan_n have_v he_o so_o quite_o forget_v that_o by_o the_o unanimous_a consent_n of_o all_o christian_n both_o ancient_a and_o modern_a all_o heretical_a congregation_n whatever_o be_v esteem_v sever_v from_o the_o catholic_a church_n i_o add_v therefore_o and_o confident_o aver_v that_o any_o error_n in_o faith_n whatever_o much_o more_o in_o and_o against_o the_o foundation_n pertinacious_o defend_v against_o the_o church_n render_v the_o congregation_n that_o maintain_v it_o no_o church_n of_o christ._n no_o error_n thus_o defend_v be_v to_o be_v account_v of_o mean_a alloy_n or_o weak_a tincture_n they_o be_v all_o die_v in_o grain_n they_o all_o remove_v holiness_n from_o the_o assembly_n that_o so_o err_v and_o whole_o un-church_n it_o the_o reason_n hereof_o have_v be_v give_v above_o viz._n because_o all_o such_o error_n implicit_o and_o virtual_o at_o least_o either_o affirm_v something_o to_o be_v god_n word_n which_o be_v not_o or_o deny_v that_o to_o be_v his_o word_n which_o be_v it_o either_o assert_n error_n to_o be_v god_n word_n or_o god_n word_n to_o be_v a_o error_n both_o which_o be_v in_o so_o high_a a_o degree_n injurious_a and_o derogatory_n to_o the_o veracity_n of_o god_n can_v be_v no_o less_o than_o mortal_a sin_n against_o the_o virtue_n of_o divine_a faith_n and_o by_o consequence_n destructive_a of_o it_o which_o be_v also_o in_o effect_n warrant_v by_o that_o say_n of_o our_o saviour_n in_o the_o gofpel_n si_fw-mi ecclesiam_fw-la non_fw-la audierit_fw-la etc._n etc._n 17._o if_o he_o will_v not_o hear_v the_o church_n let_v he_o be_v to_o thou_o as_o a_o heathen_a or_o a_o publican_n that_o be_v account_v he_o no_o christian_a whatever_o he_o seem_v to_o profess_v hence_o it_o appear_v that_o a._n c_n inference_n be_v very_o reasonable_a when_o ibidem_fw-la he_o tell_v the_o bishop_n he_o may_v safe_o grant_v not_o only_o that_o protestant_n do_v make_v the_o division_n but_o further_o that_o it_o be_v ill_o do_v of_o they_o who_o first_o make_v the_o separation_n i_o may_v just_o add_v it_o be_v likewise_o ill_o do_v of_o those_o who_o continue_v in_o it_o for_o as_o all_o the_o father_n teach_v and_o the_o most_o learned_a 2._o of_o english_a protestant_n acknowledge_v there_o neither_o be_v nor_o ever_o can_v be_v just_a cause_n give_v for_o any_o man_n or_o number_n of_o man_n particular_a church_n or_o church_n to_o separate_v themselves_o or_o continue_v in_o schism_n out_o of_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o holy_a catholic_a church_n chap._n 12._o of_o keep_v faith_n with_o heretic_n argument_n 1._o that_o faith_n ought_v to_o be_v keep_v with_o heretic_n be_v the_o constant_a tenet_n of_o all_o catholic_a divine_n 2._o what_o kind_n of_o safe-conduct_a john_n huss_n have_v from_o the_o emperor_n and_o hierome_n of_o prague_n from_o the_o council_n of_o constance_n 3._o the_o council_n decree_v in_o this_o business_n insincere_o cite_v by_o the_o bishop_n and_o simancha_n egregious_o sophisticated_a 4._o neither_o the_o council_n nor_o the_o emperor_n just_o unblamable_a in_o their_o proceed_n 5._o the_o absurd_a partiality_n of_o protestant_n impose_v most_o unequal_a condition_n upon_o the_o church_n while_o they_o admit_v not_o any_o to_o be_v impose_v on_o themselves_o 1._o mr._n fisher_n have_v in_o the_o precedent_a discourse_n brief_o yet_o very_o just_o and_o true_o charge_v protestant_n with_o the_o crime_n of_o schism_n a._n c._n prosecute_v the_o matter_n and_o undertake_v to_o justify_v and_o clear_v the_o church_n proceed_n towards_o they_o from_o such_o imputatition_n as_o they_o usual_o cast_v upon_o she_o to_o this_o purpose_n he_o think_v fit_a to_o mind_v his_o adversary_n that_o after_o this_o breach_n be_v make_v the_o church_n 7_o of_o rome_n do_v invite_v the_o protestant_n public_o with_o safe_a conduct_n to_o rome_n to_o a_o general_n council_n free_o to_o speak_v what_o they_o can_v for_o themselves_o this_o passage_n of_o a._n c._n give_v the_o bishop_n a_o new_a theme_n viz._n concern_v keep_v faith_n with_o heretic_n a_o theme_n which_o for_o the_o most_o part_n our_o adversary_n love_v to_o dwell_v upon_o as_o think_v they_o have_v some_o great_a advantage_n against_o we_o therein_o the_o relatour_n gloss_n upon_o a._n c_n word_n and_o tell_v we_o this_o kind_a invitation_n be_v only_o to_o bring_v they_o within_o our_o net_n that_o the_o conduct_v grant_v be_v safe_a for_o go_v thither_o viz._n to_o rome_n but_o not_o for_o come_v thence_o that_o the_o jesuit_n write_v and_o maintain_v that_o faith_n give_v be_v not_o to_o be_v keep_v with_o heretic_n that_o john_n huss_n and_o hierome_n of_o prague_n be_v burn_v for_o all_o their_o safe_a conduct_n thus_o the_o bishop_n beoanus_fw-la treat_v this_o matter_n praefat_fw-la very_o well_o observe_v that_o our_o adversary_n in_o this_o be_v like_o the_o pharisee_n of_o old_a who_o though_o they_o hear_v from_o our_o saviour_n own_o mouth_n that_o they_o shall_v give_v to_o caesar_n the_o thing_n which_o belong_v to_o caesar_n yet_o have_v the_o face_n open_o before_o pilate_n to_o accuse_v he_o of_o forbid_a tribute_n to_o be_v give_v to_o caesar._n in_o like_a manner_n we_o do_v both_o private_o and_o public_o in_o word_n and_o writing_n teach_v and_o profess_v that_o faith_n be_v to_o be_v keep_v as_o well_o with_o heretic_n as_o catholic_n yet_o our_o adversary_n by_o their_o clamorous_a accusation_n seem_v as_o if_o they_o will_v force_v we_o to_o hold_v the_o contrary_a whether_o we_o will_v or_o no._n but_o before_o i_o prove_v that_o faith_n have_v be_v keep_v with_o heretic_n even_o in_o those_o example_n which_o the_o bishop_n allege_v i_o observe_v that_o he_o himself_o keep_v not_o faith_n with_o catholic_n at_o least_o in_o his_o citation_n otherwise_o he_o will_v not_o have_v miscit_v his_o adversary_n word_n for_o thus_o he_o make_v he_o speak_v but_o a._n c._n go_v on_o say_v he_o and_o tell_v we_o that_o after_o this_o breach_n be_v make_v yet_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v so_o kind_a and_o careful_a to_o seek_v protestant_n that_o she_o invite_v they_o public_o with_o safe_a conduct_n to_o rome_n to_o a_o general_n council_n free_o to_o speak_v what_o they_o can_v for_o themselves_o whereas_o the_o word_n of_o a._n c._n speak_v of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n proceed_v with_o protestant_n in_o this_o case_n be_v only_o these_o which_o do_v at_o first_o seek_v to_o recall_v they_o from_o their_o novel_a opinion_n and_o after_o their_o breach_n do_v permit_v yea_o invite_v they_o public_o to_o rome_n to_o a_o general_n council_n etc._n etc._n in_o a._n c_n word_n right_o cite_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v only_o say_v to_o seek_v to_o recall_v protestant_n from_o their_o novel_a opinion_n or_o error_n a_o thing_n no_o way_n liable_a to_o cavil_v whereas_o in_o the_o bishop_n allegation_n of_o the_o word_n they_o be_v so_o place_v and_o such_o word_n of_o his_o own_o add_v to_o they_o as_o if_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n by_o her_o seek_n have_v aim_v at_o nothing_o else_o but_o how_o to_o entrap_v protestant_n when_o a._n c._n not_o
priestly_a function_n to_o have_v any_o commerce_n with_o rome_n and_o a_o capital_a crime_n even_o to_o hear_v mass_n or_o but_o harbour_v a_o priest_n and_o what_o i_o pray_v be_v true_a piety_n in_o god_n sight_n if_o all_o these_o be_v capital_a offence_n but_o enough_o of_o this_o parallel_n his_o lordship_n even_o during_o the_o schism_n of_o jeroboam_n will_v yet_o needs_o have_v israel_n a_o true_a church_n but_o i_o answer_v they_o be_v no_o true_a church_n because_o they_o reject_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o high_a priest_n refuse_v to_o communicate_v in_o the_o sacrifice_n and_o worship_n of_o god_n at_o jerusalem_n and_o adore_v the_o golden_a calf_n of_o jeroboam_n it_o be_v true_a there_o be_v many_o holy_a person_n inhabitant_n of_o the_o same_o country_n with_o the_o rest_n who_o keep_v themselves_o undefiled_a from_o those_o idolatry_n and_o division_n who_o though_o they_o be_v not_o perhaps_o suffer_v to_o go_v up_o to_o jerusalem_n to_o worship_n yet_o never_o consent_v to_o go_v to_o dan_fw-mi or_o bethel_n these_o we_o acknowledge_v remain_v part_n of_o the_o true_a church_n notwithstanding_o the_o schism_n as_o many_o catholic_n do_v now_o continue_v true_a member_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n though_o live_v dispersedly_z in_o heretical_a country_n and_o the_o prophet_n who_o be_v among_o they_o be_v also_o a_o part_n of_o the_o true_a church_n at_o jerusalem_n for_o which_o reason_n for_o the_o most_o part_n the_o king_n of_o israel_n persecute_v they_o as_o catholic_n also_o now_o be_v common_o persecute_v by_o heathen_a mahometan_a and_o heretical_a prince_n the_o having-prophet_n therefore_o among_o they_o argue_v the_o ten_o tribe_n no_o more_o to_o be_v part_n of_o the_o true_a church_n than_o it_o will_v argue_v the_o protestant_n in_o holland_n to_o be_v part_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n if_o some_o roman_a catholic_n shall_v be_v find_v among_o they_o have_v the_o spirit_n of_o prophecy_n but_o his_o lordship_n will_v prove_v by_o some_o text_n of_o scripture_n that_o the_o ten_o tribe_n continue_v a_o church_n notwithstanding_o their_o schism_n and_o idolatry_n but_o to_o that_o of_o 〈◊〉_d 9_o 17._o i_o answer_v first_o this_o prophet_n prophesy_v both_o against_o juda_n and_o israel_n and_o the_o word_n israel_n be_v a_o appellative_a common_a to_o all_o the_o seed_n of_o jacob_n it_o be_v not_o certain_a he_o always_o mean_v by_o it_o the_o ten_o schismatical_a tribe_n only_o and_o not_o sometime_o the_o tribe_n of_o juda_n also_o second_o i_o say_v the_o relatours_n gloss_n add_v to_o the_o text._n god_n do_v not_o there_o threaten_v to_o cast_v israel_n away_o in_o non_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la as_o the_o bishop_n speak_v that_o be_v to_o un-church_n they_o as_o if_o forsooth_o before_o that_o threaten_a they_o have_v be_v a_o true_a church_n this_o be_v the_o relatour_n own_o voluntary_a addition_n or_o fiction_n rather_o but_o he_o threaten_v simple_o to_o deprive_v they_o of_o his_o wont_a protection_n to_o deliver_v they_o into_o their_o enemy_n hand_n and_o as_o the_o very_a next_o word_n show_v to_o make_v they_o night-wanderer_n among_o the_o nation_n that_o shall_v take_v they_o captive_a to_o that_o of_o 4._o reg._n 9_o 6._o where_o they_o be_v call_v the_o people_n of_o the_o lord_n i_o answer_v in_o a_o general_a sense_n all_o abraham_n seed_n according_a to_o the_o flesh_n be_v style_v the_o people_n of_o god_n by_o reason_n of_o that_o promise_n of_o god_n make_v to_o abraham_n gen._n 18._o i_o will_v be_v a_o god_n to_o thou_o and_o to_o thy_o seed_n after_o thou_o but_o abraham_n seed_n only_o according_a to_o the_o spirit_n that_o be_v the_o faithful_a make_v the_o true_a church_n to_o his_o last_o argument_n which_o he_o advance_v as_o ad_fw-la hominem_fw-la that_o multitude_n be_v a_o note_n of_o the_o church_n i_o answer_v we_o do_v not_o contend_v that_o of_o christian_n the_o great_a multitude_n be_v a_o infallible_a mark_n of_o the_o true_a church_n there_o be_v a_o time_n when_o the_o arrian_n be_v report_v to_o be_v more_o numerous_a than_o the_o orthodox_n 3._o the_o procession_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n from_o the_o son_n as_o well_o as_o from_o the_o father_n be_v a_o truth_n always_o acknowledge_v in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n and_o receive_v in_o general_a council_n long_o before_o the_o controversy_n touch_v that_o point_n arise_v between_o the_o latin_n and_o the_o greek_n witness_v that_o epistle_n of_o st._n cyril_n patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n which_o he_o write_v as_o bellarmin_n tell_v we_o from_o the_o council_n of_o alexandria_n to_o that_o omissis_fw-la of_o ephesus_n wherein_o be_v these_o word_n spiritus_fw-la appellatus_fw-la est_fw-la veritatis_fw-la &_o veritas_fw-la christus_fw-la est_fw-la unde_fw-la &_o ab_fw-la isto_fw-la similiter_fw-la sicut_fw-la &_o ex_fw-la patre_fw-la procedit_fw-la the_o holy_a ghost_n say_v he_o be_v call_v the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n and_o christ_n be_v the_o truth_n whence_o follow_v that_o he_o proceed_v as_o well_o from_o he_o as_o from_o the_o father_n thus_o he_o now_o this_o epistle_n of_o st._n cyril_n and_o the_o council_n of_o alexandria_n as_o bellarmin_n likewise_o show_v be_v receive_v not_o only_o by_o the_o council_n of_o ephesus_n which_o be_v about_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n 434._o but_o also_o by_o four_o other_o general_n council_n hold_v in_o greece_n itself_o and_o consequent_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n procession_n be_v a_o truth_n so_o ancient_o know_v in_o the_o church_n that_o it_o can_v not_o well_o seem_v a_o novelty_n to_o any_o when_o the_o express_a confession_n of_o it_o come_v to_o be_v more_o frequent_a and_o public_a in_o the_o latin_a church_n it_o matter_n not_o much_o in_o what_o capacity_n it_o be_v promulgate_v by_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n whether_o as_o a_o particular_a church_n as_o the_o bishop_n contend_v or_o as_o head_n 2._o of_o the_o church_n universal_a as_o we_o think_v for_o either_o way_n it_o can_v not_o but_o be_v very_o lawful_a for_o that_o church_n to_o do_v it_o nor_o can_v it_o help_v his_o lordship_n cause_n which_o way_n foever_o it_o be_v do_v for_o supppose_v a_o particular_a church_n may_v in_o some_o case_n promulgate_v a_o orthodox_n truth_n not_o as_o yet_o catholique_o receive_v or_o define_v by_o the_o whole_a church_n do_v it_o thence_o follow_v that_o a_o particular_a church_n or_o church_n may_v repeal_v and_o reverse_v any_o thing_n that_o the_o whole_a church_n have_v already_o catholick_o and_o definitive_o receive_v sure_o no._n yet_o this_o be_v his_o lordship_n and_o the_o protestant_n case_n 4._o hence_o the_o relatour_n egregious_a fallacy_n be_v manifest_a while_o from_o the_o add_v of_o a_o word_n only_o by_o some_o particular_a church_n for_o explication_n of_o a_o know_v ancient_a and_o general_o receive_v suprà_fw-la truth_n such_o as_o be_v the_o procession_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n both_o from_o the_o father_n and_o son_n he_o pretend_v to_o infer_v both_o these_o proposition_n viz._n that_o a_o particular_a church_n may_v publish_v any_o thing_n that_o be_v catholic_n where_o the_o whole_a church_n be_v silent_a and_o that_o a_o particular_a church_n may_v reform_v any_o thing_n that_o be_v not_o catholic_a where_o the_o whole_a church_n be_v negligent_a or_o will_v not_o for_o though_o the_o former_a of_o these_o proposition_n be_v not_o so_o enormous_a as_o the_o latter_a because_o it_o suppose_v not_o any_o actual_a error_n contrary_a to_o catholic_a doctrine_n to_o be_v maintain_v by_o the_o whole_a church_n but_o only_o a_o non_fw-fr declaration_n or_o at_o most_o some_o negligence_n to_o promulgate_v a_o catholic_n truth_n whereas_o the_o other_o suppose_v error_n of_o something_o uncatholick_a to_o be_v teach_v or_o admit_v by_o the_o whole_a church_n yet_o be_v they_o both_o utter_o paradoxical_a and_o false_a and_o no_o way_n to_o be_v infer_v from_o the_o example_n or_o practice_v of_o the_o roman_a church_n in_o declare_v the_o holy_a ghost_n proceed_v from_o the_o son_n for_o that_o be_v of_o a_o point_n ancient_o and_o general_o receive_v in_o the_o church_n much_o 〈◊〉_d can_v it_o justify_v the_o protestant_n proceed_n who_o declaration_n promulgation_n confession_n or_o what_o ever_o you_o will_v call_v they_o make_v upon_o their_o several_a pretend_a reformation_n be_v only_o of_o new_a and_o unheard_a of_o doctrine_n direct_o contrary_a to_o what_o the_o catholic_n church_n universal_o hold_v and_o teach_v before_o they_o for_o catholic_a truth_n for_o about_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n 1517._o when_o their_o pretend_a reformation_n begin_v be_v not_o the_o real_a presence_n of_o our_o saviour_n body_n and_o blood_n in_o the_o eucharist_n by_o a_o true_a substantial_a change_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n general_o hold_v by_o the_o whole_a church_n be_v not_o the_o real_a sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n then_o general_o believe_v be_v not_o veneration_n
practice_n not_o only_o of_o the_o roman_a but_o of_o the_o whole_a church_n near_o upon_o a_o thousand_o year_n together_o even_o by_o the_o confession_n of_o protestant_n be_v this_o only_a to_o reform_v themselves_o and_o not_o to_o condemn_v other_o church_n otherwise_o then_o by_o silence_n and_o example_n do_v not_o all_o other_o protestant_a article_n confession_n of_o faith_n speak_v the_o same_o language_n do_v they_o not_o all_o take_v upon_o they_o with_o a_o more_o than_o censorious_a presumption_n to_o condemn_v the_o doctrine_n and_o practice_n of_o the_o roman_a catholic_n that_o be_v of_o the_o whole_a true_a church_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o same_o and_o divers_a other_o contest_v point_n 2._o a._n c._n therefore_o well_o mind_v we_o that_o in_o all_o matter_n of_o difficulty_n 8._o belong_v to_o faith_n particular_a church_n shall_v have_v recourse_n to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n as_o irenaeus_n intimate_v which_o have_v a_o more_o powerful_a principality_n 3._o and_o to_o her_o bishop_n who_o be_v chief_a pastor_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n as_o be_v st._n peter_n successor_n to_o who_o christ_n promise_v the_o key_n math._n 16._o for_o who_o he_o pray_v that_o his_o faith_n may_v not_o fail_v luke_n 22._o and_o who_o he_o charge_v to_o feed_v and_o govern_v his_o flock_n john_n 21._o which_o say_v a._n c._n he_o shall_v never_o refuse_v to_o do_v in_o such_o sort_n as_o that_o his_o neglect_n shall_v be_v a_o just_a cause_n for_o any_o particular_a man_n or_o church_n under_o pretence_n of_o reformation_n in_o manner_n or_o faith_n to_o make_v a_o schism_n or_o separation_n from_o the_o whole_a general_n church_n in_o answer_n to_o this_o the_o bishop_n tell_v we_o the_o roman_a church_n have_v indeed_o a_o more_o powerful_a principality_n than_o any_o other_o particular_a church_n but_o not_o from_o christ_n which_o be_v contrary_a to_o st._n 92._o austin_n or_o rather_o to_o the_o whole_a council_n of_o milevis_n who_o in_o their_o epistle_n to_o innocent_a the_o first_o profess_v that_o the_o pope_n authority_n be_v ground_v upon_o scripture_n and_o consequent_o proceed_v from_o christ._n second_o he_o say_v the_o patriarch_n be_v all_o as_o even_o and_o equal_a for_o any_o principality_n of_o power_n as_o the_o apostle_n be_v but_o this_o be_v first_o equivocal_a the_o apostle_n themselves_o be_v not_o in_o all_o respect_v equal_a or_o of_o even_a authority_n they_o have_v a_o superior_a among_o they_o viz._n saint_n peter_n it_o be_v true_a indeed_o except_o st._n peter_n they_o be_v be_v all_o equal_a among_o themselves_o every_o one_o of_o they_o have_v equal_a mission_n unto_o and_o jurisdiction_n over_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o none_o of_o they_o any_o authority_n preceptive_a or_o coercive_a over_o another_o whereas_o st._n peter_n together_o with_o his_o authority_n apostolical_a over_o the_o whole_a church_n which_o be_v common_a to_o he_o with_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n have_v also_o jurisdiction_n and_o authority_n over_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o as_o be_v in_o the_o number_n of_o christ_n sheep_n commit_v to_o his_o charge_n by_o our_o saviour_n john_n 21._o as_o be_v clear_a in_o all_o antiquity_n second_o it_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a in_o the_o three_o canon_n arabic_n whereof_o which_o concern_v the_o jurisdiction_n of_o patriarch_n the_o authority_n or_o principality_n if_o you_o will_v of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v make_v the_o pattern_n or_o model_n of_o that_o authority_n and_o jurisdiction_n which_o the_o patriarch_n be_v to_o exercise_v over_o the_o provincial_a bishop_n the_o word_n of_o the_o canon_n be_v these_o sicque_fw-la praeest_fw-la patriarcha_fw-la iis_fw-la omnibus_fw-la qui_fw-la sub_fw-la potestate_fw-la ejus_fw-la sunt_fw-la sicut_fw-la ille_fw-la qui_fw-la tenet_fw-la sedem_fw-la romae_fw-la caput_fw-la estet_fw-la princeps_fw-la omnium_fw-la patriarcharum_fw-la the_o patriarch_n say_v they_o be_v in_o the_o same_o manner_n over_o all_o those_o that_o be_v under_o his_o authority_n as_o he_o who_o hold_v the_o sea_n of_o rome_n be_v head_n and_o prince_n of_o all_o the_o patriarch_n and_o in_o the_o same_o canon_n the_o pope_n be_v afterward_o style_v petro_n similis_fw-la &_o autoritate_fw-la par_fw-fr resemble_v saint_n peter_n and_o his_o equal_a in_o authority_n this_o also_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o church_n show_v which_o be_v always_o the_o best_a expositour_n and_o assertour_n of_o the_o canon_n for_o not_o only_o the_o pope_n confirmation_n be_v require_v to_o all_o new-elected_n patriarch_n but_o it_o belong_v likewise_o to_o he_o to_o depose_v unworthy_a one_o and_o restore_v the_o unjust_o depose_v by_o other_o we_o read_v of_o no_o less_o than_o imperat_fw-la eight_o several_a patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n depose_v by_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n sixtus_n the_o three_o depose_v also_o polychronius_n bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n as_o his_o act_n set_v down_o in_o the_o first_o tome_n of_o the_o council_n testify_v on_o the_o contrary_a 7._o athanasius_n patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n and_o paulus_n bishop_n of_o constantinople_n be_v by_o julius_n the_o first_o restore_v to_o their_o respective_a sea_n have_v be_v unjust_o expel_v by_o heretic_n the_o same_o may_v be_v say_v of_o divers_a other_o over_o who_o the_o pope_n do_v exercise_v the_o like_a authority_n which_o he_o can_v never_o have_v do_v upon_o any_o other_o ground_n then_o that_o of_o divine_a right_n and_o as_o be_v general_o acknowledge_v st._n peter_n successor_n in_o the_o government_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n st._n austin_n therefore_o say_v well_o 162._o in_o romanâ_fw-la ecclesiâ_fw-la semper_fw-la apostolicae_fw-la cathedrae_fw-la viguit_fw-la principatus_fw-la in_o the_o roman_a church_n the_o principality_n of_o the_o apostolic_a chair_n have_v always_o flourish_v here_o the_o bishop_n will_v have_v some_o other_o apostolic_a chair_n like_o this_o of_o rome_n viz._n equal_a 10._o to_o it_o in_o authority_n but_o this_o he_o do_v partly_o to_o level_v the_o dignity_n of_o the_o roman_a sea_n contrary_a to_o st._n austin_n and_o all_o antiquity_n and_o partly_o to_o make_v way_n to_o some_o other_o pretty_a perversion_n of_o the_o same_o father_n for_o we_o must_v know_v he_o be_v now_o enter_v upon_o that_o main_a question_n concern_v the_o donatist_n of_o africa_n of_o who_o proceed_n the_o whole_a forecited_a epistle_n of_o st._n austin_n treat_v and_o therefore_o to_o make_v our_o answer_n to_o his_o objection_n more_o compendious_a and_o clear_a it_o will_v not_o be_v amiss_o in_o the_o first_o place_n to_z state_z that_o business_n by_o way_n of_o narrative_n and_o matter_n of_o fact_n only_o which_o i_o shall_v brief_o do_v out_o of_o st._n austin_n and_o optatus_n milevitanus_fw-la thus_o than_o it_o be_v 3._o the_o donatist_n of_o africa_n find_v themselves_o sharp_o oppose_v by_o caecilianus_n archbishop_n of_o carthage_n and_o primate_n of_o africa_n by_o way_n of_o revenge_n 162._o accuse_v he_o of_o have_v in_o time_n of_o persecution_n deliver_v up_o the_o holy_a scripture_n with_o other_o sacred_a utensil_n of_o the_o church_n into_o the_o possession_n of_o the_o heathen_n which_o be_v account_v a_o most_o capital_a crime_n among_o christian_n they_o add_v to_o their_o accusation_n that_o he_o be_v make_v bishop_n by_o one_o guilty_a of_o the_o same_o crime_n viz._n by_o felix_n bishop_n of_o aptung_n and_o they_o prosecute_v the_o business_n so_o hot_o that_o by_o a_o synod_n of_o seventy_o african_a bishop_n caecilian_n be_v condemn_v and_o out_v of_o his_o bishopric_n but_o he_o make_v no_o great_a reckon_n of_o the_o sentence_n as_o be_v condemn_v absent_a and_o unheard_a and_o know_v himself_o to_o be_v in_o communion_n with_o the_o roman_a church_n the_o donatist_n be_v force_v to_o prosecute_v their_o charge_n against_o he_o in_o other_o church_n beyond_o sea_n but_o not_o dare_v to_o appear_v at_o rome_n or_o at_o least_o know_v it_o will_v be_v to_o little_a purpose_n they_o address_v themselves_o to_o the_o emperor_n parmen_fw-la constantin_n and_o desire_v he_o to_o command_v their_o cause_n to_o be_v hear_v by_o some_o bishop_n of_o the_o gaul_n in_o france_n where_o the_o emperor_n then_o reside_v but_o the_o emperor_n be_v so_o far_o from_o favour_v they_o 92._o that_o he_o show_v a_o great_a dislike_n of_o their_o proceed_n tell_v they_o 166._o express_o that_o it_o belong_v not_o to_o he_o neither_o dare_v he_o act_v the_o part_n of_o a_o judge_n in_o a_o cause_n of_o bishop_n nevertheless_o know_v very_o well_o the_o turbulent_a disposition_n of_o schismatic_n and_o perceive_v they_o mean_v not_o to_o acquiesce_v in_o the_o sentence_n of_o any_o ecclesiastical_a tribunal_n to_o which_o they_o be_v immediate_o subject_a he_o think_v good_a to_o take_v a_o middle_a way_n which_o be_v to_o send_v they_o to_o rome_n there_o to_o be_v hear_v and_o judge_v by_o the_o pope_n to_o who_o the_o cause_n do_v most_o proper_o belong_v 5._o but_o yet_o
of_o argument_n to_o disprove_v it_o but_o know_v it_o to_o be_v the_o sense_n of_o all_o antiquity_n wind_v about_o and_o fall_v upon_o that_o odious_a question_n of_o kill_v and_o depose_v king_n wherein_o he_o presume_v it_o will_v be_v more_o easy_a for_o he_o to_o choke_v his_o adversary_n but_o it_o shall_v not_o serve_v his_o turn_n for_o we_o say_v first_o he_o commit_v a_o gross_a fallacy_n argue_v à_fw-la negatione_fw-la speciei_fw-la ad_fw-la negationem_fw-la generis_fw-la which_o be_v a_o new_a kind_n of_o logic_n for_o what_o be_v it_o else_o to_o infer_v the_o pope_n have_v no_o universal_a power_n or_o supremacy_n at_o all_o over_o the_o whole_a church_n because_o he_o have_v not_o such_o or_o such_o a_o particular_a power_n over_o christian_a king_n and_o prince_n his_o lordship_n shall_v have_v remember_v that_o we_o be_v yet_o upon_o the_o question_n an_o sit_v whether_o or_o no_o the_o pope_n have_v a_o universal_a power_n and_o authority_n over_o the_o whole_a church_n which_o till_o it_o be_v fair_o determine_v it_o be_v but_o to_o make_v too_o much_o haste_n and_o pervert_v due_a order_n to_o fall_v upon_o the_o question_n quid_fw-la sit_fw-la and_o dispute_v wherein_o it_o consist_v and_o how_o far_o it_o extend_v second_o we_o answer_v the_o point_n of_o kill_a king_n be_v a_o most_o false_a and_o scandalous_a imputation_n for_o what_o pope_n ever_o kill_v or_o give_v command_v warrant_v or_o authority_n for_o the_o kill_n of_o any_o king_n or_o what_o catholic_a author_n ever_o teach_v that_o he_o have_v power_n from_o christ_n so_o to_o do_v and_o as_o for_o depose_v they_o i_o answer_v it_o be_v no_o point_n of_o our_o faith_n that_o the_o pope_n have_v power_n to_o do_v it_o and_o therefore_o it_o be_v no_o part_n of_o my_o task_n to_o dispute_v it_o but_o what_o protestant_n have_v both_o do_v and_o justify_v in_o the_o worst_a of_o these_o kind_n be_v but_o too_o fresh_a in_o memory_n 4._o a._n c._n do_v not_o beg_v the_o question_n when_o he_o say_v the_o bishop_n of_o 18._o rome_n shall_v never_o refuse_v to_o feed_v and_o govern_v the_o whole_a flock_n of_o christ_n in_o such_o sort_n as_o no_o particular_a man_n or_o church_n shall_v have_v just_a cause_n to_o make_v a_o separation_n from_o it_o see_v it_o be_v the_o clear_a inference_n of_o his_o precedent_a discourse_n it_o be_v rather_o a_o beg_v the_o question_n in_o his_o lordship_n to_o tell_v we_o only_o while_o he_o ought_v to_o prove_v it_o that_o protestant_n have_v make_v no_o separation_n from_o the_o general_n church_n but_o only_o from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o such_o other_o church_n as_o by_o adhere_v to_o she_o have_v hazard_v themselves_o and_o do_v now_o miscall_a themselves_o the_o whole_a catholic_a church_n it_o be_v also_o in_o this_o case_n a_o beg_v the_o question_n to_o affirm_v the_o roman-catholique_a church_n to_o be_v in_o error_n since_o no_o man_n do_v ever_o grant_v his_o lordship_n that_o she_o be_v so_o or_o have_v he_o any_o where_o convince_v she_o of_o error_n he_o have_v often_o say_v it_o and_o suppose_v it_o i_o know_v but_o where_o he_o have_v prove_v it_o i_o know_v not_o it_o be_v therefore_o yet_o to_o be_v prove_v that_o the_o roman-catholique_a church_n have_v err_v in_o any_o doctrine_n public_o define_v by_o she_o again_o we_o deny_v there_o be_v any_o hazard_n in_o adhere_v to_o the_o roman_a church_n she_o be_v the_o unshaken_a rock_n of_o truth_n and_o sole_o able_a to_o show_v a_o continual_a succession_n of_o lawfully-sent_a pastor_n and_o teacher_n from_o christ_n to_o our_o present_a time_n who_o have_v hitherto_o teach_v the_o same_o unchanged_a doctrine_n and_o shall_v infallible_o according_a to_o christ_n promise_n continue_v so_o teach_v it_o unto_o the_o world_n end_n from_o this_o only_a catholic_a church_n protestant_n have_v unhappy_o sever_v themselves_o as_o i_o have_v already_o prove_v 14._o and_o be_v through_o their_o own_o fault_n so_o absolute_o deprive_v of_o all_o communion_n with_o she_o that_o they_o can_v no_o more_o be_v esteem_v member_n of_o this_o church_n in_o the_o condition_n they_o now_o stand_v than_o a_o wither_a branch_n can_v be_v account_v a_o part_n of_o the_o tree_n from_o which_o it_o be_v break_v in_o vain_a therefore_o do_v the_o relatour_n pretend_v that_o protestant_n have_v not_o leave_v the_o church_n in_o her_o essence_n but_o in_o her_o error_n the_o essence_n of_o the_o church_n consist_v in_o her_o faith_n sacrament_n discipline_n in_o all_o these_o it_o be_v too_o manifest_a to_o be_v deny_v protestant_n have_v forsake_v the_o church_n yea_o and_o perpetual_o fight_v against_o she_o wherefore_o they_o have_v leave_v she_o in_o thing_n essential_a or_o pertain_v to_o the_o life_n and_o be_v of_o the_o church_n and_o yet_o they_o have_v the_o confidence_n to_o call_v these_o essential_o error_n which_o be_v a_o bold_a and_o erroneous_a presumption_n wherein_o they_o imitate_v no_o less_o the_o old_a heretic_n in_o the_o primitive_a time_n of_o the_o church_n viz._n the_o novatian_o arian_n nestorian_n etc._n etc._n then_o the_o swarm_n of_o new_a sectary_n among_o themselves_o for_o which_o of_o all_o these_o do_v not_o or_o will_v not_o upon_o occasion_n plead_v they_o forsake_v not_o the_o essence_n of_o the_o church_n but_o her_o error_n they_o separate_v not_o from_o her_o communion_n but_o corruption_n 5._o well_o but_o after_o all_o dispute_v a_o man_n will_v imagine_v that_o our_o learned_a antagonist_n will_v at_o length_n submit_v to_o a_o general_n council_n for_o first_o he_o thus_o profess_v speak_v to_o a._n c._n what_o great_a or_o sure_a 1._o judgement_n you_o can_v have_v where_o sense_n of_o scripture_n be_v doubt_v than_o a_o general_n council_n i_o do_v not_o see_v and_o immediate_o after_o he_o cite_v a_o long_a text_n of_o a._n c_n which_o speak_v to_o this_o purpose_n that_o if_o all_o the_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n be_v gather_v together_o in_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n and_o pray_v unanimous_o for_o the_o promise_a assistance_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n make_v great_a and_o diligent_a search_n and_o examination_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o other_o ground_n of_o faith_n and_o hear_v each_o pastor_n declare_v what_o have_v be_v the_o ancient_a tradition_n of_o this_o church_n shall_v thereupon_o decree_v some_o particular_a point_n or_o matter_n to_o be_v hold_v for_o divine_a truth_n if_o the_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n or_o general_a council_n may_v err_v in_o such_o a_o decree_n what_o can_v be_v firm_a or_o certain_a upon_o earth_n in_o answer_n to_o this_o he_o both_o profess_v that_o it_o seem_v fair_a and_o also_o free_o grant_v that_o a_o general_n council_n be_v the_o best_a judge_n on_o earth_n for_o controversy_n of_o faith_n where_o the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n be_v doubt_v this_o will_v make_v a_o man_n think_v the_o bishop_n intend_v to_o conform_v himself_o to_o such_o a_o decree_n but_o to_o the_o end_n all_o the_o world_n may_v see_v how_o unwilling_o he_o yield_v to_o reason_n especial_o when_o it_o come_v from_o a_o adversary_n he_o present_o again_o begin_v to_o quarrel_v with_o a._n c._n tell_v we_o there_o be_v never_o any_o such_o general_n council_n call_v nor_o indeed_o possible_a to_o be_v call_v as_o a._n c._n speak_v of_o viz._n in_o which_o all_o pastor_n be_v gather_v together_o as_o if_o a._n c._n be_v so_o simple_a as_o by_o all_o pastor_n to_o understand_v numerical_o and_o individual_o all_o that_o be_v every_o one_o of_o they_o without_o exception_n and_o that_o a_o council_n can_v not_o be_v think_v sufficient_o general_n nor_o a_o obligatory_a decree_n of_o faith_n be_v make_v by_o it_o unless_o all_o the_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n in_o this_o sense_n be_v gather_v together_o especial_o he_o have_v so_o clear_o declare_v his_o meaning_n to_o the_o contrary_a in_o defend_v the_o council_n of_o trent_n to_o have_v be_v a_o true_a general_n council_n where_o it_o be_v manifest_a all_o pastor_n whatsoever_o do_v not_o convene_v though_o there_o be_v as_o many_o as_o have_v meet_v in_o some_o other_o general_a council_n esteem_v even_o by_o protestant_n for_o such_o and_o strange_a it_o be_v to_o see_v how_o long_o the_o relatour_n skirmish_n with_o mere_a shadow_n and_o what_o inference_n he_o make_v mere_o upon_o this_o most_o salsly-supposed_a and_o wholly-improbable_a sense_n of_o a._n c_n word_n all_o pastor_n then_o in_o that_o text_n of_o a._n c._n signify_v no_o more_o than_o all_o that_o be_v requisite_a or_o so_o many_o of_o all_o as_o be_v in_o the_o judgement_n of_o reason_n and_o christian_a prudence_n due_o sufficient_a to_o constitute_v a_o true_a and_o lawful_a general_n council_n if_o so_o many_o lawful_o call_v be_v gather_v together_o it_o be_v the_o all_z that_o a._n c._n intend_v and_o
the_o force_n of_o a._n cs._n maxim_n viz._n that_o it_o be_v safe_a in_o order_n to_o salvation_n to_o take_v that_o way_n which_o both_o party_n agree_v in_o which_o import_v not_o any_o agreement_n whatsoever_o indefinite_o speak_v but_o determinate_o and_o special_o such_o a_o agreement_n or_o a_o agreement_n so_o far_o betwixt_o adverse_a party_n concern_v such_o a_o point_n or_o thing_n as_o to_o acknowledge_v the_o belief_n or_o do_v of_o it_o do_v not_o destroy_v salvation_n or_o do_v not_o hinder_v the_o party_n be_v save_v that_o do_v it_o have_v due_a notice_n be_v take_v of_o this_o it_o will_v have_v save_v he_o the_o trouble_n of_o bring_v this_o and_o so_o many_o other_o instance_n to_o no_o purpose_n of_o which_o more_o in_o due_a place_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n we_o conceive_v the_o disparity_n betwixt_o the_o case_n and_o argument_n of_o petilian_n and_o a._n c._n so_o manifest_a that_o it_o need_v no_o further_a illustration_n 10._o but_o here_o the_o relatour_n grow_v into_o choler_n take_v a._n c._n of_o a_o most_o 〈◊〉_d untruth_n and_o such_o as_o a_o ingenuous_a man_n will_v not_o have_v speak_v for_o no_o other_o reason_n but_o for_o say_v there_o be_v confess_o noe_o peril_n of_o damnation_n by_o live_v and_o die_v in_o the_o roman_a church_n i_o answer_v whatever_o the_o bishop_n grant_v or_o grant_v not_o in_o express_a term_n to_o a._n c._n touch_v this_o matter_n it_o be_v certain_a that_o from_o what_o he_o do_v confess_v it_o real_o and_o necessary_o follow_v that_o there_o be_v no_o peril_n of_o damnation_n per_fw-la se_fw-la loquendo_fw-la or_o precise_o by_o live_v and_o die_v in_o the_o roman_a church_n for_o first_o as_o to_o the_o ignorant_a which_o hold_v the_o pretend_a error_n of_o our_o church_n but_o can_v 34._o discern_v they_o those_o he_o profess_o exempt_v from_o peril_n of_o damnation_n if_o they_o conform_v themselves_o to_o a_o religious_a life_n second_o he_o grant_v that_o such_o other_o of_o the_o roman_a church_n as_o do_v even_o 〈◊〉_d and_o know_o associate_v themselves_o to_o the_o gross_a superstition_n of_o the_o romish_a 5_o church_n if_o they_o hold_v the_o foundation_n christ_n and_o live_v according_o be_v not_o to_o be_v deny_v salvation_n whence_o i_o argue_v if_o according_a to_o the_o bishop_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d voluntary_a nor_o involuntary_a superstition_n exclude_v a_o papist_n from_o possibility_n of_o be_v save_v it_o be_v no_o loud_a untruth_n nor_o indeed_o so_o much_o as_o a_o mistake_n to_o say_v that_o in_o the_o roman_a church_n there_o be_v confess_o noe_o peril_n of_o damnation_n in_o the_o sense_n abovesayd_a that_o be_v mere_o by_o live_v and_o die_v in_o that_o communion_n what_o he_o add_v after_o this_o of_o some_o among_o we_o who_o wish_v the_o superstition_n abolish_v which_o they_o know_v and_o pray_v to_o god_n to_o forgive_v their_o error_n in_o what_o they_o know_v not_o and_o will_v have_v all_o thing_n amend_v that_o be_v amiss_o be_v it_o in_o their_o power_n if_o he_o mean_v that_o such_o person_n shall_v know_v any_o superstition_n teach_v and_o allow_v by_o the_o church_n as_o duty_n of_o religion_n or_o that_o they_o will_v have_v any_o thing_n amend_v in_o the_o church_n public_a authorize_v doctrine_n he_o mistake_v very_o much_o in_o suppose_v such_o person_n to_o belong_v to_o our_o church_n and_o communion_n it_o be_v contrary_a to_o catholic_a faith_n to_o believe_v that_o any_o such_o error_n or_o uperstition_n can_v be_v teach_v by_o the_o church_n and_o he_o may_v as_o well_o suppose_v if_o he_o have_v please_v that_o those_o be_v protestant_n who_o go_v to_o church_n and_o join_v with_o protestant_n in_o exterior_a service_n only_o to_o save_v their_o estate_n or_o for_o some_o other_o temporal_a end_n though_o they_o hold_v the_o protestant_a tenet_n contrary_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n for_o no_o better_a than_o heresy_n and_o will_v if_o it_o be_v in_o their_o power_n much_o more_o willing_o hear_v mass_n then_o common_a prayer_n when_o they_o go_v to_o church_n neither_o can_v he_o be_v a_o catholic_a who_o pray_v to_o god_n to_o forgive_v his_o error_n in_o any_o matter_n or_o point_n define_v by_o the_o church_n for_o that_o imply_v a_o belief_n or_o doubt_v that_o the_o church_n may_v have_v err_v in_o define_v some_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n which_o according_a to_o we_o be_v absolute_o inconsistent_a which_o true_a faith_n no_o more_o than_o we_o presume_v he_o can_v have_v be_v think_v a_o christian_a or_o protestant_n in_o the_o bishop_n opinion_n who_o shall_v ask_v god_n forgiveness_n for_o believe_v some_o thing_n deliver_v in_o canonical_a scripture_n in_o answer_n to_o a._n cs._n assertion_n whereby_o he_o prefer_v both_o for_o number_n and_o worth_n those_o who_o deny_v there_o be_v any_o peril_n of_o damnation_n by_o live_v and_o die_v in_o the_o roman_a church_n before_o those_o who_o affirm_v there_o be_v the_o bishop_n that_o he_o may_v more_o easy_o confute_v the_o passage_n first_o of_o all_o cunning_o divide_v it_o and_o endeavour_n to_o show_v that_o number_n alone_o be_v no_o sufficient_a ground_n of_o truth_n who_o say_v it_o be_v not_o a._n c._n i_o be_o sure_a who_o as_o clear_o as_o he_o can_v join_v both_o together_o worth_a to_o number_n as_o a_o necessary_a supplement_n and_o conclude_v what_o he_o intend_v joint_o from_o they_o both_o now_o this_o term_n worth_n comprehend_v not_o only_a eminency_n of_o power_n and_o authority_n but_o also_o of_o virtue_n learning_n zeal_n prudence_n sanctity_n etc_o can_v any_o man_n doubt_v but_o those_o who_o have_v the_o great_a number_n and_o worth_n on_o their_o side_n be_v in_o all_o prudence_n to_o be_v think_v rather_o in_o the_o truth_n than_o those_o who_o have_v incomparable_o less_o or_o indeed_o nothing_o at_o all_o in_o comparison_n of_o they_o his_o long_a marginal_a allegation_n therefore_o which_o mention_n number_n only_o serve_v to_o no_o purpose_n but_o to_o amuse_v and_o yet_o neither_o do_v a._n c._n nor_o any_o of_o we_o say_v that_o our_o faith_n rest_v upon_o the_o number_n or_o worth_n of_o man_n as_o the_o bishop_n will_v needs_o insinuate_v but_o upon_o god_n infallible_a veracity_n and_o authority_n number_n and_o worth_n of_o man_n be_v only_o motive_n of_o credibility_n to_o induce_v and_o direct_v we_o prudent_o to_o determine_v to_o which_o of_o the_o two_o party_n we_o be_v to_o give_v credit_n when_o they_o teach_v we_o contrary_a doctrine_n a._n c._n think_v it_o so_o evident_a a_o thing_n that_o those_o of_o the_o catholic_a ibidem_fw-la belief_n in_o the_o point_v controvert_v betwixt_o we_o and_o protestant_n do_v incomparable_o exceed_v those_o of_o the_o contrary_a party_n as_o the_o bishop_n will_v never_o have_v call_v for_o a_o proof_n of_o it_o as_o indeed_o it_o need_v none_o for_o if_o we_o compare_v those_o spread_v over_o the_o whole_a face_n of_o christendom_n for_o the_o last_o thousand_o year_n a_o space_n of_o time_n common_o grant_v we_o by_o our_o adversary_n who_o believe_v as_o we_o believe_v and_o never_o dream_v of_o any_o peril_n either_o of_o schism_n heresy_n or_o sin_n by_o live_v and_o die_v in_o the_o roman_a church_n with_o those_o few_o that_o since_o yesterday_o as_o it_o be_v begin_v to_o dissent_v from_o we_o and_o pretend_v there_o be_v peril_n of_o schism_n etc._n etc._n by_o live_v and_o die_v in_o the_o say_a church_n we_o shall_v find_v these_o in_o worth_n and_o number_n just_a nothing_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o other_o so_o that_o in_o truth_n the_o relatour_n ibidem_fw-la himself_o have_v he_o well_o consider_v it_o shall_v have_v blush_v at_o his_o own_o extravagant_a objection_n you_o have_v not_o yet_o prove_v your_o party_n more_o worthy_a for_o life_n or_o learning_n than_o the_o protestant_n and_o not_o bid_v his_o adversary_n blush_v for_o speak_v the_o truth_n for_o in_o this_o case_n who_o see_v not_o that_o all_o true_a christian_n who_o for_o a_o thousand_o year_n together_o live_v in_o the_o world_n be_v and_o be_v of_o our_o party_n ii_o but_o let_v we_o consider_v what_o other_o instance_n the_o bishop_n bring_v to_o impugn_v a._n cs._n maxim_n that_o it_o be_v safe_a to_o follow_v that_o way_n in_o religion_n in_o which_o the_o differ_a party_n agree_v there_o be_v possibility_n of_o salvation_n his_o first_o be_v take_v from_o the_o article_n of_o our_o saviour_n descent_n 〈◊〉_d into_o hell_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n say_v he_o and_o the_o church_n of_o england_n dissent_v party_n do_v agree_v that_o our_o saviour_n descend_v into_o hell_n and_o that_o hell_n be_v the_o place_n of_o the_o damn_a therefore_o according_a to_o a._n cs._n rule_n it_o shall_v be_v safe_a to_o believe_v that_o our_o saviour_n descend_v into_o the_o place_n of_o the_o damn_a but_o this_o
teach_v that_o the_o sea_n of_o rome_n be_v ibidem_fw-la the_o root_n and_o matrix_fw-la of_o the_o catholic_a church_n why_o his_o reason_n be_v because_o that_o there_o be_v at_o this_o time_n a_o open_a schism_n at_o rome_n two_o bishop_n cornelius_n and_o novatian_n two_o congregation_n which_o respective_o attend_v and_o observe_v they_o so_o that_o a_o perplex_a question_n must_v needs_o have_v divide_v their_o thought_n which_o of_o these_o two_o have_v be_v the_o root_n and_o matrix_fw-la of_o the_o catbolique_a church_n i_o answer_v first_o suppose_v it_o have_v be_v for_o a_o while_n real_o doubtful_a to_o st._n cyprian_a and_o those_o of_o africa_n which_o of_o the_o two_o bishop_n of_o rome_n cornelius_n or_o novatianus_n be_v the_o right_n and_o lawful_a bishop_n yet_o to_o those_o that_o be_v at_o rome_n and_o understand_v the_o true_a and_o certain_a carriage_n of_o affair_n touch_v their_o respective_a election_n it_o be_v not_o doubtful_a at_o rome_n without_o question_n the_o truth_n concern_v this_o mater_fw-la be_v sufficient_o know_v now_o we_o say_v st._n cyprian_n intent_n in_o the_o word_n allege_v be_v not_o precise_o to_o exhort_v people_n to_o adhere_v either_o to_o cornelius_n or_o novatianus_n in_o particular_a and_o by_o name_n but_o to_o adhere_v to_o he_o they_o shall_v for_o certain_a find_v by_o the_o general_a report_n and_o judgement_n of_o the_o faithful_a at_o rome_n to_o have_v be_v lawful_o and_o canonical_o choose_v bishop_n of_o that_o church_n and_o not_o to_o join_v themselves_o to_o he_o that_o be_v choose_v schismatical_o second_o i_o answer_v it_o be_v not_o so_o certain_a as_o the_o relatour_n suppose_v whether_o at_o the_o write_n of_o this_o very_a epistle_n it_o be_v real_o doubtful_a to_o st._n cyprian_n himself_o which_o of_o the_o two_o cornelius_z or_o novatianus_n be_v the_o true_a and_o lawful_a bishop_n of_o rome_n yea_o unless_o the_o publisher_n of_o st._n cyprian_n epistle_n have_v by_o mistake_n invert_v the_o order_n of_o they_o the_o contrary_a seem_v to_o be_v clear_a because_o by_o the_o 41._o 42._o 44._o all_o precedent_n to_o this_o allege_a by_o the_o bishop_n it_o manifest_o appear_v that_o both_o st._n cyprian_a and_o his_o colleague_n have_v be_v already_o by_o intelligence_n from_o rome_n so_o full_o satisfy_v touch_v the_o lawful_a election_n of_o cornelius_n that_o they_o both_o deny_v 41._o communion_n to_o the_o legate_n of_o novatian_n send_v into_o africa_n ibid._n and_o also_o refuse_v to_o hear_v their_o accusation_n against_o cornelius_n though_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o novatian_a faction_n in_o africa_n they_o think_v good_a to_o send_v their_o legate_n to_o rome_n to_o be_v more_o paticular_o inform_v of_o the_o business_n 42._o and_o do_v not_o require_v the_o people_n of_o their_o respective_a province_n public_o to_o acknowledge_v cornelius_n for_o pope_n till_o they_o have_v receive_v the_o report_n of_o their_o own_o legate_n from_o rome_n now_o this_o suppose_a what_o shall_v hinder_v but_o st._n cyprian_a may_v private_o exhort_v passenger_n to_o rome_n not_o only_o to_o acknowledge_v the_o lawful_a bishop_n of_o that_o church_n but_o even_o cornelius_n by_o name_n notwithstanding_o the_o schism_n that_o be_v by_o some_o raise_v against_o he_o wherefore_o the_o bishop_n follow_v devise_n viz._n that_o st._n cyprian_a shall_v require_v all_o stranger_n travel_v to_o rome_n to_o suspend_v their_o communion_n there_o that_o be_v to_o communicate_v neither_o with_o cornelius_n nor_o novatianus_n till_o they_o see_v how_o the_o catholic_a church_n will_v incline_v to_o approve_v or_o disapprove_v their_o respective_a election_n to_o speak_v truth_n be_v but_o a_o airy_a fiction_n it_o be_v by_o st._n cyprian_a and_o his_o colleague_n presume_v to_o be_v even_o then_o sufficient_o know_v and_o certain_a at_o rome_n which_o of_o the_o two_o be_v lawful_o choose_v bishop_n otherwise_o to_o what_o purpose_n shall_v they_o send_v their_o legate_n out_o of_o africa_n to_o be_v certain_o inform_v of_o the_o truth_n touch_v that_o matter_n i_o add_v when_o or_o how_o can_v the_o catholic_a church_n declare_v her_o judgement_n in_o the_o case_n so_o authentical_o as_o to_o oblige_v all_o person_n to_o acquiescence_n will_v the_o bishop_n have_v have_v all_o christian_a stranger_n to_o suspend_v their_o communion_n both_o from_o the_o one_o and_o the_o other_o till_o a_o general_n council_n have_v determine_v the_o controversy_n or_o how_o can_v a_o council_n possible_o determine_v it_o but_o by_o and_o upon_o such_o ibidem_fw-la ground_n as_o do_v already_o make_v it_o unquestionable_a at_o rome_n which_o of_o the_o two_o be_v the_o true_a pope_n we_o acknowledge_v indeed_o with_o baronius_n here_o cite_v by_o the_o 64._o bishop_n that_o st._n cyprian_a and_o his_o colleague_n do_v for_o a_o while_n suspend_v their_o communion_n from_o both_o party_n which_o upon_o this_o occasion_n they_o may_v just_o do_v yet_o not_o separate_v from_o the_o roman_a church_n as_o the_o relatour_n too_o hasty_o infer_v for_o it_o be_v for_o a_o while_n as_o it_o be_v sede_fw-la vacant_a to_o they_o in_o africa_n till_o they_o have_v receive_v sufficient_a information_n who_o be_v lawful_a bishop_n of_o that_o church_n which_o as_o soon_o as_o ever_o they_o have_v obtain_v they_o show_v by_o their_o practice_n how_o necessary_a they_o hold_v it_o to_o be_v in_o communion_n with_o he_o st._n cyprian_n then_o do_v very_o well_o to_o exhort_v all_o christian_n that_o have_v occasion_n to_o go_v to_o rome_n to_o acknowledge_v and_o stick_v close_o to_o the_o root_n and_o matrix_fw-la of_o the_o church_n that_o be_v not_o to_o suffer_v themselves_o to_o be_v draw_v into_o schism_n or_o to_o side_n with_o the_o schismatic_n but_o constant_o to_o adhere_v to_o the_o true_a and_o lawful_a bishop_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o as_o this_o be_v a_o proper_a exhortation_n for_o st._n cyprian_a to_o make_v so_o be_v it_o also_o a_o just_a and_o sufficient_a apology_n for_o he_o to_o cornelius_n as_o show_v that_o he_o do_v neither_o disowne_n the_o sea_n apostolic_a nor_o slight_v the_o true_a bishop_n thereof_o whereas_o if_o we_o suppose_v he_o to_o mean_v only_o according_a to_o the_o bishop_n exposition_n of_o his_o word_n that_o people_n shall_v acknowledge_v and_o hold_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n in_o general_a but_o suspend_v their_o communion_n both_o with_o novatian_n and_o cornelius_n too_o till_o the_o church_n herself_o shall_v determine_v the_o controversy_n what_o respect_n do_v he_o show_v to_o the_o apostolic_a sea_n and_o its_o lawful_a bishop_n more_o than_o he_o do_v to_o a_o heretical_a party_n and_o the_o schismatique_n which_o they_o follow_v beside_o this_o imaginary_a suspension_n of_o communion_n till_o the_o catholic_a church_n shall_v declare_v her_o approbation_n or_o disapprovement_n of_o the_o say_a election_n be_v clear_o refute_v by_o the_o very_a epistle_n which_o the_o bishop_n cite_v wherein_o st._n cyprian_n and_o his_o colleague_n profess_v in_o esfect_a that_o they_o do_v not_o expect_v any_o such_o declaration_n of_o the_o church_n but_o that_o upon_o the_o first_o report_n or_o answer_v of_o their_o legate_n from_o rome_n touch_v the_o election_n pass_v letter_n be_v present_o to_o be_v send_v to_o all_o the_o bishop_n of_o africa_n to_o suspend_v their_o communion_n no_o long_o cornel._n but_o to_o acknowledge_v cornelius_n the_o lawfully-elect_a bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o his_o communion_n to_o be_v the_o union_n of_o the_o church_n 2._o by_o the_o way_n good_a reader_n i_o pray_v observe_v and_o judge_v whether_o st._n cyprian_n do_v not_o here_o sufficient_o expound_v himself_o and_o show_v what_o he_o mean_v by_o those_o word_n root_n and_o matrix_fw-la of_o the_o catholic_a church_n when_o speak_v of_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o pope_n he_o plain_o pronounce_v that_o it_o be_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n what_o be_v this_o but_o to_o say_v with_o we_o and_o direct_o contrary_a to_o the_o relatours_n gloss_n that_o it_o be_v the_o root_n and_o matrix_fw-la of_o the_o church_n for_o see_v the_o form_n or_o at_o least_o the_o most_o formal_a and_o essential_a property_n of_o the_o church_n be_v unity_n in_o the_o profession_n of_o the_o true_a faith_n if_o the_o pope_n communion_n be_v that_o which_o give_v unity_n to_o the_o church_n and_o tie_v all_o together_o in_o the_o profession_n of_o the_o true_a faith_n as_o st._n cyprian_n here_o affirm_v it_o to_o be_v sure_a no_o man_n can_v be_v so_o unreasonable_a as_o to_o think_v it_o deserve_v not_o to_o be_v style_v the_o root_n and_o matrix_fw-la of_o the_o church_n not_o to_o urge_v that_o in_o these_o very_a epistle_n st._n cyprian_n blame_v the_o schismatic_n at_o rome_n for_o their_o endeavour_v to_o create_v a_o new_a bishop_n there_o against_o one_o that_o be_v already_o lawful_o elect_v and_o ordain_v upon_o this_o ground_n
that_o by_o so_o do_v they_o do_v as_o much_o as_o in_o they_o lay_v procure_v ecclesiam_fw-la alteram_fw-la institui_fw-la the_o form_v 44._o of_o a_o other_o church_n which_o say_v he_o nefas_fw-la est_fw-la nec_fw-la licet_fw-la fieri_fw-la may_v not_o in_o any_o wise_a be_v attempt_v tell_v they_o that_o their_o preceeding_n herein_o be_v contra_fw-la institutionis_fw-la catholicae_fw-la unitatem_fw-la contrary_a to_o that_o unity_n in_o which_o all_o true_a catholic_a christian_n be_v instruct_v by_o the_o very_a principle_n of_o catholic_a religion_n to_o hold_v and_o maintain_v that_o it_o be_v contra_fw-la sacramentum_fw-la semel_fw-la traditum_fw-la divinae_fw-la dispositionis_fw-la &_o catholicae_fw-la unitatis_fw-la against_o that_o order_n or_o authority_n which_o god_n once_o for_o all_o appoint_v in_o his_o church_n for_o the_o preservation_n of_o catholic_a unity_n and_o peace_n among_o christian_n likewise_o not_o to_o urge_v that_o in_o other_o place_n also_o st._n cyprian_n do_v in_o effect_n style_v the_o pope_n chair_n the_o centre_n eccl._n from_o whence_o ecclesiastical_a unity_n be_v derive_v that_o the_o primacy_n be_v therefore_o give_v by_o christ_n to_o st._n peter_n that_o there_o may_v be_v one_o church_n and_o one_o chair_n and_o that_o he_o can_v be_v in_o the_o church_n who_o desert_n the_o chair_n of_o st._n peter_n last_o not_o to_o urge_v the_o confession_n even_o of_o the_o schismatic_n themselves_o some_o of_o they_o at_o least_o voluntary_o yet_o solemn_o make_v when_o they_o return_v to_o the_o pope_n obedience_n ibidem_fw-la whereby_o they_o profess_v that_o as_o god_n be_v one_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n one_o who_o they_o have_v last_o confess_v in_o prison_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n one_o so_o likewise_o in_o the_o catholic_a church_n there_o ought_v to_o be_v acknowledge_v by_o all_o one_o bishop_n viz._n the_o bishop_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n to_o who_o obedience_n and_o communion_n they_o then_o return_v what_o be_v all_o these_o testimony_n but_o so_o many_o evident_a conviction_n and_o demonstration_n of_o the_o relatour_n huge_a mistake_n not_o to_o say_v any_o worse_a when_o he_o pretend_v that_o by_o the_o root_n and_o matrix_fw-la of_o the_o church_n st._n cyprian_n understand_v no_o more_o but_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n in_o general_n nor_o be_v they_o any_o whit_n infringe_v by_o what_o he_o bring_v out_o of_o st._n cyprian_n epistle_n to_o jubaianus_n write_v against_o the_o novatian_n who_o dare_v rebaptize_v catholic_n in_o which_o epistle_n st._n cyprian_n have_v these_o word_n we_o be_v the_o head_n of_o baptism_n what_o make_v this_o against_o we_o for_o first_o the_o bishop_n himself_o acknowledge_v that_o by_o we_o st._n cyprian_n do_v not_o understand_v his_o own_o person_n or_o church_n precise_o but_o include_v all_o other_o particular_a true_a church_n and_o chief_o the_o roman_a where_o novatian_n himself_o be_v baptize_v the_o head_n of_o baptism_n then_o in_o st._n cyprian_n meaning_n be_v all_o true_a church_n as_o they_o stand_v in_o due_a subordination_n and_o communion_n unite_v with_o the_o roman_a and_o not_o otherwise_o which_o we_o willing_o grant_v but_o yet_o it_o follow_v not_o from_o hence_o as_o the_o bishop_n will_v have_v it_o that_o it_o be_v all_o one_o to_o be_v head_n or_o root_n of_o baptism_n and_o to_o be_v head_n and_o root_n of_o the_o church_n for_o the_o whole_a church_n as_o one_o by_o communion_n with_o the_o sea_n of_o rome_n may_v proper_o enough_o be_v style_v the_o head_n of_o baptism_n which_o signify_v no_o more_o then_o that_o the_o chief_a and_o ordinary_a power_n of_o baptise_v be_v in_o the_o catholic_a church_n but_o it_o will_v never_o be_v proper_a to_o say_v the_o church_n be_v the_o head_n and_o root_n of_o the_o church_n for_o that_o be_v to_o make_v the_o whole_a to_o be_v only_o a_o principal_a part_n which_o be_v absurd_a now_o that_o st._n cyprian_n do_v hold_v all_o true_a church_n to_o be_v one_o by_o communion_n with_o the_o roman_a bishop_n and_o church_n be_v sufficient_o evidence_v by_o what_o be_v above_o say_v nor_o can_v he_o with_o reason_n be_v ibidem_fw-la understand_v in_o any_o other_o sense_n when_o he_o speak_v those_o word_n in_o the_o begin_n of_o that_o period_n cite_v by_o the_o bishop_n nos_fw-la qui_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la unius_fw-la caput_fw-la et_fw-la radicem_fw-la tenemus_fw-la etc_n for_o as_o by_o ecclesiae_fw-la unius_fw-la it_o will_v not_o be_v deny_v but_o he_o mean_v the_o church_n catholic_a so_o by_o the_o word_n caput_fw-la et_fw-la radicem_fw-la if_o we_o expound_v he_o with_o conformity_n to_o his_o already_o cite_a assertion_n we_o can_v possible_o understand_v any_o thing_n else_o but_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o his_o sea_n the_o one_o as_o head_n rule_v and_o command_v by_o authority_n the_o other_o as_o matrix_fw-la by_o communion_n embrace_v and_o comprehend_v all_o true_a christian_n or_o the_o whole_a catholic_a church_n on_o earth_n beside_o this_o it_o be_v very_o observable_a what_o the_o relatour_n himself_o allege_v and_o conclude_v out_o of_o a_o other_o epistle_n of_o st._n cyprian_n viz._n that_o st._n cyprian_a and_o the_o bishop_n of_o africa_n send_v their_o legate_n to_o ibidem_fw-la rome_n on_o purpose_n to_o bring_v the_o `_o novatian_n that_o be_v the_o schismatical_a epist._n party_n there_o to_o the_o unity_n and_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n universal_a but_o that_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o obstinacy_n and_o stiffness_n of_o those_o schismatic_n their_o labour_n be_v lose_v now_o for_o aught_o appear_v to_o the_o contrary_a by_o the_o say_a epistle_n the_o reduction_n of_o the_o novatian_n to_o the_o church_n unity_n whereof_o by_o the_o bishop_n own_o confession_n st._n cyprian_n there_o speak_v be_v nothing_o else_o but_o the_o bring_v they_o to_o obedience_n and_o communion_n with_o cornelius_n the_o lawful_a bishop_n of_o rome_n as_o the_o relatour_n himself_o also_o intimate_v and_o consequent_o it_o must_v be_v acknowledge_v there_o be_v something_o in_o resist_v and_o oppose_v the_o lawful_a bishop_n of_o rome_n which_o have_v great_a contrariety_n to_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n than_o there_o be_v in_o resist_v and_o oppose_v any_o other_o particular_a bishop_n and_o if_o it_o be_v otherwise_o why_o shall_v all_o the_o church_n of_o africa_n esteem_v themselves_o and_o the_o whole_a church_n so_o concern_v in_o it_o why_o shall_v they_o send_v bishop_n of_o their_o own_o on_o purpose_n to_o rome_n to_o reduce_v the_o schismatic_n with_o so_o much_o diligence_n and_o care_n to_o the_o obedience_n of_o their_o lawful_a bishop_n what_o reason_n can_v be_v give_v of_o this_o but_o that_o they_o foresee_v and_o fear_v that_o if_o a_o schism_n proceed_v there_o the_o whole_a church_n will_v in_o a_o short_a time_n come_v to_o be_v involue_v in_o it_o and_o divide_v into_o two_o several_a party_n by_o acknowledge_v two_o head_n or_o roman_a bishop_n when_o novatus_fw-la set_v up_o maiorinus_n the_o first_o donatist_n bishop_n at_o carthage_n against_o caecilian_a the_o lawful_a bishop_n and_o when_o meletius_n and_o paulinus_n have_v their_o several_a party_n at_o antioch_n likewise_o when_o anthimus_n a_o eutychian_a heretic_n be_v intrude_v into_o the_o sea_n of_o 〈◊〉_d against_o the_o catholic_a bishop_n thereof_o there_o be_v no_o such_o thing_n fear_v as_o break_v the_o general_n unity_n of_o the_o church_n there_o be_v still_o a_o visible_a and_o certainly-know'n_a head_n of_o the_o church_n catholic_a viz._n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n who_o by_o his_o authority_n keep_v all_o in_o unity_n and_o first_o or_o last_o rectify_v and_o compose_v those_o dissension_n but_o here_o of_o necessity_n it_o will_v have_v be_v otherwise_o for_o the_o breach_n of_o ecclesiastical_a unity_n be_v in_o the_o very_a head_n fountain_n and_o root_v thereof_o will_v unless_o prevent_v avoidable_o in_o no_o long_a time_n spread_v itself_o over_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o thence_o it_o be_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o africa_n think_v it_o necessary_a with_o extraordinary_a diligence_n to_o make_v up_o the_o breach_n there_o and_o reduce_v the_o separate_a party_n to_o unity_n 3._o tertullian_n who_o the_o relatour_n also_o cite_v make_v nothing_o against_o us._n for_o he_o only_o affirm_v that_o all_o those_o many_o and_o great_a ibidem_fw-la church_n found_v by_o the_o apostle_n be_v that_o one_o church_n which_o be_v from_o the_o apostle_n and_o that_o they_o be_v all_o first_o or_o primitive_a 20._o church_n and_o all_o of_o they_o apostolical_a because_o they_o do_v all_o of_o they_o allow_v and_o approve_v one_o unity_n that_o be_v say_v we_o a_o unity_n derive_v from_o one_o and_o centre_v in_o one_o who_o be_v no_o other_o but_o st._n peter_n lawful_a successor_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n by_o subordination_n unto_o who_o in_o faith_n and_o discipline_n as_o unto_o the_o universal_a pastor_n of_o the_o church_n all_o particular_a
nor_o do_v we_o make_v the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o church_n to_o depend_v upon_o the_o pope_n alone_o as_o the_o relatour_n perpetual_o insinuate_v but_o upon_o 27._o the_o pope_n and_o a_o general_n council_n together_o so_o that_o if_o this_o be_v grant_v by_o our_o adversary_n we_o shall_v acquiesce_v and_o require_v no_o more_o of_o they_o because_o this_o only_a be_v matter_n of_o faith_n 13._o but_o neither_o the_o pope_n by_o himself_o alone_o nor_o a_o general_n council_n with_o he_o do_v ever_o take_v upon_o they_o to_o make_v new_a article_n of_o faith_n proper_o speak_v but_o only_o expound_v and_o declare_v to_o we_o what_o be_v before_o yome_a way_n reveal_v either_o in_o scripture_n or_o the_o unwritten_a word_n yet_o they_o declare_v and_o expound_v with_o such_o absolute_a authority_n that_o we_o be_v oblige_v under_o pain_n of_o eternal_a damnation_n neither_o to_o deny_v nor_o question_v any_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n by_o they_o propose_v to_o be_v bclceve_v by_o us._n this_o under_o christ_n be_v the_o true_a foundation_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o religion_n whosoever_o go_v about_o to_o lay_v any_o other_o and_o to_o erect_v superstructure_n upon_o it_o will_v find_v in_o the_o end_n that_o he_o lay_v but_o a_o sandy_a foundation_n and_o raise_v a_o totter_a edisice_n which_o will_v one_o day_n fall_v upon_o his_o own_o head_n and_o crush_v he_o to_o his_o utter_a ruin_n let_v this_o therefore_o remain_v as_o a_o settle_a conclusion_n that_o the_o ibidem_fw-la catholic_a church_n be_v infallible_a in_o all_o her_o definition_n of_o faith_n and_o that_o there_o be_v no_o other_o way_n but_o this_o to_o come_v to_o that_o happy_a meeting_n of_o truth_n and_o peace_n which_o the_o bishop_n will_v seem_v so_o much_o to_o have_v labour_v for_o in_o his_o life-time_n i_o beseech_v god_n to_o give_v all_o man_n light_a to_o see_v this_o truth_n and_o grace_n to_o assent_v unto_o it_o to_o the_o end_n that_o by_o live_v in_o the_o militant_a church_n with_o unity_n of_o faith_n we_o may_v all_o come_v at_o last_o to_o meet_v in_o glory_n in_o the_o triumphant_a church_n of_o heaven_n which_o we_o may_v hope_v for_o by_o the_o merit_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o saviour_n jesus-christ_n to_o who_o with_o the_o father_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v all_o honour_n and_o glory_n world_n without_o end_n amen_o a_o alphabetical_a table_n of_o the_o most_o remarkable_a matter_n contain_v in_o this_o book_n apostle_n christs_n promise_n to_o his_o apostle_n when_o extendible_a to_o their_o successor_n and_o when_o not_o page_n 103_o the_o apostle_n be_v first_o prove_v to_o be_v infallible_a not_o by_o scripture_n but_o by_o their_o miracle_n page_n 56_o 57_o as_o necessary_a for_o the_o church_n in_o some_o case_n that_o the_o apostle_n successor_n be_v guide_v and_o settle_v in_o all_o truth_n as_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o page_n 103_o 104_o appeal_n the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n express_o allow_v appeal_n to_o rome_n page_n 194_o 195_o appeal_n to_o rome_n out_o of_o england_n ancient_o practise_v page_n 189_o from_o all_o part_n of_o christendom_n in_o st._n gregory_n time_n page_n 〈◊〉_d council_n that_o restrain_v they_o look_v only_o at_o the_o abuse_n of_o too_o frequent_a and_o unnecessary_a appeal_n page_n 194_o what_o the_o council_n of_o carthage_n desire_v of_o the_o pope_n in_o the_o matter_n of_o appeal_n ibid._n inferior_a clerk_n only_o forbid_v to_o appeal_n to_o rome_n page_n 188_o authority_n no_o authority_n mere_o humane_a absolute_o infallible_a page_n 123_o nor_o able_a sufficient_o to_o warrant_v the_o scripture_n infallibility_n ibid._n divine_a authority_n necessary_a for_o the_o belief_n of_o scripture_n infallibility_n and_o what_o that_o be_v page_n 64_o 65_o 69_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n sufficient_a to_o ground_n infallible_a assent_n page_n 75_o 78_o 108_o the_o supreme_a authority_n of_o one_o over_o all_o as_o necessary_a now_o as_o ever_o page_n 207._o and_o will_v be_v so_o to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n ibid._n author_n either_o misalledge_v or_o misinterpret_v by_o our_o adversary_n page_z 4_o 7_o 8_o 9_o 10_o 22_o 47_o 80_o 81_o 98_o 113_o 118_o 134_o 135_o 136_o 137_o 138_o 139_o 143_o 175_o 187_o 193_o 201_o 202_o 204_o 210_o 218_o 222_o 240_o 248_o 309_o 310_o baptism_n infant-baptism_n not_o evident_o express_v in_o scripture_n nor_o demonstrative_o prove_v from_o it_o page_n 51_o 52_o 53._o acknowledge_v for_o a_o appstolical_a tradition_n by_o st._n austin_n p._n 26_o 53_o 67_o that_o lawful_a baptism_n may_v not_o be_v reiterated_a a_o tradition_n apostolical_a page_n 67_o bishop_n not_o mere_o the_o pope_n vicar_n or_o substitute_n page_n 219_o 224_o they_o govern_v in_o their_o own_o right_n and_o be_v jure_fw-la divino_fw-la pastor_n of_o the_o church_n no_o less_o than_o the_o pope_n ibid._n yet_o by_o the_o same_o law_n of_o god_n under_o the_o pope_n ibid._n in_o what_o sense_n it_o may_v be_v say_v that_o all_o bishop_n be_v equal_a or_o of_o the_o same_o merit_n and_o degree_n in_o the_o ecclesiastical_a priesthood_n page_n 222_o the_o bishop_n of_o canterbury_n make_v primate_n of_o england_n by_o the_o pope_n p._n 190_o universal_a bishop_n the_o title_n of_o universal_a or_o ecumenical_a bishop_n ancient_o give_v to_o the_o pope_n page_n 196_o but_o never_o assume_v or_o use_v by_o they_o ibid._n use_v by_o the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n but_o never_o lawful_o give_v they_o page_n 196_o what_o the_o more_o ancient_a patriarch_n of_o that_o sea_n intend_v by_o their_o usurp_a title_n ibid._n the_o sea_n of_o constantinople_n always_o subject_a to_o that_o of_o rome_n page_n 196_o 197_o 198_o in_o what_o manner_n gregory_n the_o seven_o give_v the_o title_n of_o universal_a bishop_n to_o his_o successor_n page_n 199_o likewise_o in_o what_o manner_n phocas_n the_o emperor_n may_v be_v say_v to_o give_v it_o ibid._n catholic_n the_o several_a acception_n of_o the_o word_n catholic_n page_n 130_o causal_o the_o particular_a church_n of_o rome_n be_v style_v the_o catholic_n and_o why_o ibid._n no_o such_o great_a paradox_n that_o the_o church_n in_o general_n shall_v be_v style_v catholic_n by_o its_o agree_v with_o rome_n ibid._n in_o what_o sense_n it_o be_v both_o true_a and_o proper_a to_o say_v the_o roman-catholick_n church_n page_n 132_o certainty_n no_o absolute_a certainty_n of_o any_o thing_n reveal_v by_o god_n if_o the_o church_n testimony_n be_v not_o infallible_a page_n 29_o 30_o moral_a certainty_n even_o at_o the_o high_a not_o absolute_o infallible_a p._n 123_o church_n the_o church_n can_v err_v and_o general_a council_n can_v err_v synonymous_n with_o catholic_n page_n 19_o 20_o 177_o the_o church_n definition_n make_v not_o divine_a revelation_n more_o certain_a in_o itself_o but_o more_o certain_o know_v to_o we_o page_n 21_o 24_o how_o the_o church_n definition_n may_v be_v say_v to_o be_v the_o church_n foundation_n page_n 35_o nothing_n matter_n of_o faith_n in_o the_o church_n decree_n but_o the_o naked_a definition_n page_n 64_o what_o the_o ground_n of_o church-definition_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n be_v and_o must_v of_o necessity_n ever_o be_v page_n 230_o roman_a church_n the_o principality_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n derive_v from_o christ._n p._n 183_o the_o roman_a church_n tradition_n esteem_v of_o old_a the_o only_a touchstone_n of_o apostolical_a and_o orthadox_n doctrine_n page_n 202_o no_o peril_n of_o damnation_n in_o adhere_v to_o the_o roman_a church_n page_n 212_o no_o error_n or_o abuse_n in_o religion_n at_o any_o time_n more_o imputable_a to_o the_o roman_a then_o to_o the_o whole_a catholic_n church_n of_o christ._n page_n 142_o the_o african_a church_n always_o in_o communion_n with_o the_o roman_a p._n 190_o 191_o the_o roman_a church_n define_v of_o superstructure_n or_o non-fundamental_a point_n no_o cause_n of_o schism_n page_n 332_o the_o roman_a church_n right_o style_v the_o root_n and_o matrix_fw-la of_o the_o catholic_a page_n 391_o 392_o 393_o 394_o 395_o church_n of_o jerusalem_n why_o with_o some_o other_o style_v sometime_o mother-church_n p._n 389_o 390_o and_o why_o pamelius_n in_o his_o list_n of_o those_o church_n may_v reckon_v they_o before_o the_o roman_a page_n 397_o contradiction_n slip_v from_o our_o adversary_n pen._n page_n 51_o 54_o 70_o 83_o 90_o 99_o 112_o 124_o 146_o 150_o 223_o 249_o 308_o 310_o council_n general_n and_o ecumenical_a council_n of_o how_o great_a authority_n page_n 32_o the_o most_o proper_a remedy_n for_o error_n and_o abuse_n that_o concern_v the_o whole_a church_n page_n 165_o national_a and_o provincial_a council_n determine_v nothing_o in_o matter_n of_o faith_n without_o consult_v the_o apostolic_a sea_n page_n 164_o 166_o 167_o 168_o to_o confirm_v general_a council_n no_o novelty_n but_o the_o pope_n ancient_a right_n page_n 215_o the_o church_n
acceptation_n only_o a_o secondary_a and_o accessary_a confirmation_n of_o they_o ibid._n not_o absolute_o necessary_a as_o the_o pope_n be_v ibid._n in_o what_o sense_n it_o be_v say_v that_o all_o pastor_n be_v gather_v together_o in_o general_a council_n page_n 213_o the_o whole_a church_n consent_n virtual_o include_v and_o effectual_o declare_v by_o a_o general_n council_n page_n 216_o the_o prelate_n in_o general_a council_n assemble_v may_v proceed_v against_o the_o pope_n himself_o if_o his_o crime_n be_v notorious_a page_n 231_o 233_o what_o kind_n of_o free_a council_n it_o be_v that_o protestant_n call_v for_o page_n 233_o no_o condition_n or_o rule_n for_o hold_v a_o general_n council_n just_o assignable_a now_o which_o have_v not_o be_v competent_o observe_v by_o such_o former_a general_n council_n as_o protestant_n reject_v page_n 240_o the_o church_n universal_a indispensable_o oblige_v to_o embrace_v the_o doctrine_n of_o general_n council_n page_n 250_o the_o decree_n of_o general_a council_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n to_o be_v receive_v not_o as_o the_o decision_n of_o man_n but_o as_o the_o dictate_v of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n p._n 252_o general_a council_n not_o of_o humane_a but_o divine_a institution_n page_n 245_o no_o know_a heretic_n or_o schismatic_a have_v right_o to_o sit_v in_o general_a council_n page_n 233_o in_o what_o case_n general_a council_n may_v be_v amend_v the_o former_a by_o the_o latter_a page_n 255_o 256_o 257_o 258_o they_o be_v infallible_a in_o the_o conclusion_n though_o not_o in_o the_o mean_n or_o argument_n on_o which_o the_o conclusion_n be_v ground_v page_n 263_o 264_o infallibility_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o succeed_a council_n how_o they_o differ_v page_n 265_o 266_o the_o council_n of_o arimini_fw-la and_o second_o of_o ephesus_n no_o lawful_a general_n council_n page_n 268_o 339_o the_o supposition_n of_o a_o general_a council_n err_v in_o one_o point_n render_v it_o liable_a to_o err_v in_o all_o page_n 378_o creed_n st._n athanasius_n his_o creed_n no_o absolute_a summary_n of_o the_o catholic_a faith_n page_n 350_o 351_o no_o not_o even_o suppose_v the_o creed_n of_o the_o apostle_n ibid._n what_o the_o author_n intent_n be_v in_o compose_v it_o ibid._n st._n athanasius_n first_o compose_v and_o publish_v it_o in_o the_o latin_a tongue_n page_n 351_o donatist_n a_o narrative_n of_o their_o proceed_n in_o the_o business_n of_o cecilianus_n their_o archbishop_n and_o primate_n of_o africa_n page_n 185_o 186_o donatist_n why_o they_o address_v themselves_o to_o the_o emperor_n constantine_n ibid._n the_o emperor_n open_o profess_v that_o the_o donatists_n cause_n belong_v not_o to_o his_o cognizance_n ibid._n what_o he_o do_v in_o it_o be_v force_v from_o he_o by_o importunity_n page_n 185_o 187_o he_o promise_v to_o ask_v pardon_n of_o the_o bishop_n for_o meddle_v in_o the_o donatists_n business_n page_n 186_o the_o donatist_n thrice_o condemn_v page_n 185_o 186_o emperor_n no_o secret_a compact_n between_o the_o emperor_n sigismond_n and_o the_o council_n of_o constance_n in_o the_o cause_n of_o huss_n page_n 156_o no_o just_a sentence_n ever_o pronounce_v by_o a_o emperor_n against_o the_o pope_n p._n 192_o in_o what_o manner_n the_o emperor_n for_o some_o time_n ratisy_v the_o pope_n election_n ibid._n that_o custom_n 〈◊〉_d long_o since_o by_o the_o emperor_n themselves_o p._n 193._o the_o emperor_n favour_n some_o advantage_n to_o the_o pope_n temporal_a interest_n no_o ground_n of_o his_o spiritual_a authority_n page_n 200_o the_o surmise_n of_o have_v one_o emperor_n over_o all_o king_n as_o well_o as_o one_o pope_n over_o all_o bishop_n a_o mere_a chimaera_n or_o fiction_n page_n 225_o the_o emperor_n as_o supreme_a over_o his_o subject_n in_o all_o civil_a affair_n as_o the_o pope_n be_v in_o matter_n spiritual_a page_n 226_o the_o pope_n never_o practise_v to_o bring_v the_o emperor_n under_o they_o in_o civil_a affair_n ibid._n no_o catholic_n emperor_n ever_o take_v upon_o they_o to_o reform_v religion_n without_o or_o contrary_a to_o the_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n ibid._n error_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n though_o not_o fundamental_a inconsistent_a with_o the_o acknowledge_a holiness_n of_o the_o church_n page_n 150_o every_o congregation_n unchurch_v that_o hold_v error_n in_o faith_n and_o the_o reason_n why_o page_n 151_o eucharist_n that_o the_o holy_a eucharist_n be_v receive_v fast_v be_v a_o tradition_n apostolical_a page_n 67_o receive_v it_o under_o one_o kind_n no_o error_n in_o faith_n page_n 207_o 271_o nor_n contrary_a to_o christ_n institution_n ibid._n the_o non-obstante_a in_o the_o council_n of_o constance_n decree_n touch_v the_o eucharist_n to_o what_o it_o refer_v page_n 271_o 272_o 273_o the_o eucharist_n under_o one_o kind_n a_o perfect_a sacrament_n page_n 271_o frequent_o receive_v in_o primitive_a time_n under_o one_o kind_n page_n 289_o give_v by_o christ_n himself_o in_o one_o kind_n page_n 318_o why_o necessary_a that_o the_o priest_n who_o consecrate_v shall_v receive_v in_o both_o kind_n page_n 319_o excommunication_n never_o pronounce_v in_o the_o catholic_a church_n but_o where_o obstinacy_n and_o perverseness_n enforce_v it_o page_n 48_o incur_v ipso_fw-la facto_fw-la by_o all_o english_a protestant_n for_o deny_v any_o one_o of_o the_o 39_o article_n page_n 49_o the_o english_a church_n more_o just_o censurable_a for_o tyranny_n in_o point_n of_o excommunication_n than_o the_o roman_a page_n 49_o 50_o faith_n divine_a and_o infallible_a faith_n inconsistent_a with_o the_o denial_n of_o any_o one_o point_n sufficient_o propound_v by_o the_o church_n page_n 17_o faith_n implicit_a what_o it_o import_v in_o catholic_a sense_n page_n 20_o implicit_a faith_n necessary_a to_o be_v have_v of_o all_o divine_a revelation_n whatsoever_o explicite_fw-la only_o of_o what_o the_o church_n define_v and_o propound_v for_o such_o page_n 20_o the_o english_a protestant_n faith_n not_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n page_n 328_o 329_o 330_o 331_o implicit_a faith_n not_o use_v by_o catholic_n at_o pleasure_n page_n 346_o 347_o roman_n faith_n the_o consequence_n of_o this_o argument_n make_v good_a the_o roman_a faith_n be_v once_o the_o one_o save_v faith_n ergo_fw-la it_o be_v so_o still_o p._n 340_o 350_o father_n catholic_n show_v all_o due_a respect_n to_o the_o father_n yet_o without_o derogation_n from_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o present_a church_n page_n 60_o 61_o the_o father_n account_v none_o catholic_n but_o such_o as_o agree_v with_o the_o roman_a church_n page_n 131_o proof_n of_o the_o church_n infallibility_n from_o the_o father_n page_n 102_o 105_o 108._o 131_o 137_o 178_o protestant_n profession_n to_o stand_v to_o the_o father_n what_o it_o signify_v page_n 208_o fundamental_a a_o word_n in_o religion_n of_o various_a and_o ambiguous_a acception_n page_z 14_o how_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v take_v in_o the_o present_a dispute_n page_n 14_o 34_o 44_o catholic_n allow_v a_o distinction_n of_o fundamental_a and_o non-fundamental_a point_n in_o some_o sense_n page_z 15_o 20_o 21_o 23_o 34_o 44_o all_o point_n define_v by_o the_o church_n and_o sufficient_o know_v to_o be_v so_o be_v fundamental_a that_o be_v not_o to_o be_v doubt_v of_o or_o deny_v under_o pain_n of_o damnation_n page_z 15_o 16_o 27_o point_n not-fundamental_a deposit_v with_o the_o church_n by_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n no_o less_o than_o point_v fundamental_a page_n 38_o point_n fundamental_a necessary_a to_o be_v know_v in_o specie_fw-la or_o particular_o page_n 45_o 176_o 177_o 217_o 243_o government_n the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n in_o a_o monarchical_a way_n not_o changeable_a by_o any_o power_n on_o earth_n page_n 221_o 222_o the_o difference_n between_o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n and_o religion_n and_o the_o government_n of_o the_o state_n in_o matter_n of_o policy_n and_o civil_a concern_v page_n 243_o 244_o 245_o greek_n their_o error_n against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n procession_n from_o the_o son_n proper_o heretical_a page_z 6_o 7_o king_n james_z his_o censure_n of_o the_o greek_a church_n page_n 5_o ancient_a greek_n differ_v only_o in_o word_n or_o manner_n of_o speak_v from_o the_o latin_n not_o in_o sense_n page_z 7_o 8_o 21_o 22_o the_o greek_n exclude_v from_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n not_o by_o the_o pope_n summons_n but_o by_o their_o own_o schism_n page_n 233_o divers_a orthodox_n bishop_n of_o the_o greek_a church_n present_a in_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n page_n 233_o 234_o modern_a greek_n no_o true_a church_n page_z 10_o 11_o the_o business_n of_o hieremias_n the_o greek_a patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n page_n 238_o his_o censure_n of_o the_o lutheran_n doctrine_n a_o sufficient_a testimony_n of_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o greek_a church_n ibid._n he_o utter_o reject_v the_o lutheran_n communion_n ibid._n hell_n the_o word_n hell_n do_v not_o always_o signify_v the_o place_n of_o the_o
observe_v again_o epist._n pag._n 19_o that_o no_o one_o thing_n have_v make_v conscientious_a man_n of_o his_o party_n more_o waver_a in_o their_o mind_n and_o more_o apt_a to_o be_v draw_v beside_o from_o the_o religion_n profess_v in_o the_o church_n of_o england_n then_o want_v of_o of_o uniform_a and_o decent_a order_n etc._n etc._n thereupon_o take_v occasion_n to_o enlarge_v himself_o on_o the_o subject_n of_o ceremony_n show_v their_o usefulness_n and_o necessity_n in_o the_o public_a exercise_n of_o religion_n wherein_o i_o have_v no_o reason_n to_o contradict_v he_o only_o this_o i_o must_v note_v by_o the_o way_n that_o whereas_o out_o of_o indulgence_n to_o his_o ordinary_a humour_n he_o tax_v the_o roman_a church_n with_o thrust_v in_o many_o that_o be_v unnecessary_a and_o superstitious_a he_o may_v have_v know_v that_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n itself_o not_o only_o enable_v but_o enjoin_v all_o particular_a bishop_n in_o their_o respective_a diocese_n and_o all_o archbishop_n and_o metropolitan_o in_o their_o respective_a province_n to_o reform_v what_o ever_o they_o may_v find_v amiss_o in_o this_o kind_n and_o this_o his_o crimination_n be_v no_o more_o than_o be_v object_v to_o himself_o by_o his_o own_o people_n we_o shall_v in_o due_a place_n show_v in_o what_o sense_n it_o be_v we_o maintain_v that_o out_o of_o rome_n that_o be_v out_o of_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o roman-catholique_a church_n there_o be_v no_o salvation_n at_o present_v it_o may_v suffice_v to_o say_v that_o we_o do_v not_o shut_v up_o salvation_n in_o such_o a_o narrow_a conclave_n as_o the_o bishop_n will_v have_v his_o reader_n believe_v when_o he_o parallel_v we_o with_o the_o donatist_n we_o teach_v no_o other_o doctrine_n concern_v the_o attainment_n of_o salvation_n than_o what_o have_v be_v hold_v in_o all_o age_n in_o all_o time_n and_o in_o all_o place_n and_o be_v now_o visible_o teach_v and_o profess_v throughout_o the_o christian_a world_n viz._n that_o out_o of_o the_o true_a catholic_a church_n salvation_n be_v not_o to_o be_v expect_v nor_o do_v we_o shut_v heaven-gate_n as_o the_o relatour_n insinuate_v to_o any_o that_o be_v willing_a to_o enter_v provide_v they_o be_v willing_a to_o enter_v and_o go_v that_o way_n which_o christ_n have_v appoint_v but_o it_o be_v the_o bishop_n and_o his_o party_n that_o do_v real_o shut_v heaven-gate_n to_o those_o who_o otherwise_o may_v enter_v even_o while_o they_o pretend_v to_o open_v they_o for_o by_o teach_v the_o way_n to_o heaven_n to_o be_v wide_a than_o it_o be_v and_o that_o salvation_n may_v be_v attain_v by_o such_o mean_n and_o in_o such_o way_n as_o according_a to_o god_n ordinary_a providence_n it_o can_v what_o do_v they_o but_o put_v man_n into_o a_o false_a way_n and_o in_o stead_n of_o lead_v they_o in_o that_o straight_a path_n to_o eternal_a happiness_n which_o the_o gospel_n prescribe_v trace_v out_o that_o broad_a way_n to_o they_o which_o lead_v to_o death_n i_o shall_v close_v my_o preface_n with_o a_o advertisement_n to_o such_o as_o be_v apt_a to_o quarrel_v at_o word_n beyond_o the_o meaning_n of_o those_o that_o use_v they_o the_o infallible_a which_o in_o treat_v of_o the_o church_n and_o general_n council_n i_o have_v have_v frequent_a occasion_n to_o make_v use_n of_o be_v cunning_o raise_v by_o our_o adversary_n to_o so_o high_a a_o pitch_n of_o signification_n as_o though_o it_o can_v import_v no_o less_o than_o the_o ascribe_v of_o a_o intrinsical_a unerring_a power_n in_o all_o thing_n to_o those_o we_o account_v infallible_a which_o be_v clear_o to_o pervert_v our_o meaning_n we_o intend_v to_o signify_v no_o more_o when_o we_o say_v the_o church_n or_o general_n council_n be_v infallible_a then_o that_o by_o virtue_n of_o christ_n promise_n they_o have_v never_o err_v nor_o ever_o shall_v in_o definition_n of_o faith_n in_o fine_a good_a reader_n that_o thou_o may_v see_v and_o embrace_v the_o truth_n be_v the_o hearty_a wish_n of_o he_o that_o bid_v thou_o no_o less_o hearty_o farewell_n labyrinthus_n cantuariensis_n or_o dr._n lawed_n labyrinth_n be_v a_o answer_n to_o his_o lordship_n relation_n of_o a_o conference_n between_o himself_o and_o mr._n fisher_n etc._n etc._n chap._n i._o state_v the_o conference_n between_o the_o bishop_n and_o mr._n fisher_n for_o satisfaction_n of_o a_o person_n of_o honour_n argument_n 1._o the_o introduction_n 2._o the_o bishop_n artifice_n in_o wave_v a_o direct_a answer_n to_o the_o question_n 3._o his_o pretend_a solution_n to_o certain_a authority_n refer_v to_o a_o fit_a place_n for_o answer_n 4._o his_o maintain_v the_o greek_n not_o to_o have_v lose_v the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o that_o they_o be_v a_o true_a church_n 5._o the_o modern_a greek_n in_o error_n not_o the_o ancient_n 6._o why_o filioque_fw-la insert_v into_o the_o nicene_n creed_n 1._o though_o dedalus_n that_o ingenious_a artificer_n may_v possible_o show_v no_o less_o skill_n in_o contrive_v his_o cretan_a labyrinth_n than_o do_v the_o principal_a architect_n employ_v by_o solomon_n in_o build_v that_o magnisicent_a temple_n at_o jerusalem_n yet_o their_o labour_n be_v of_o a_o different_a nature_n for_o whereas_o the_o latter_a exercise_v his_o art_n in_o raise_v a_o noble_a elevate_v lightsome_a structure_n the_o former_a dedalus_n use_v all_o his_o inventive_a industry_n in_o frame_v a_o subterraneous_a darksome_a prison_n with_o such_o redouble_a turn_n perplex_v wind_n and_o tortuous_a meander_n that_o who_o ever_o enter_v into_o it_o may_v indeed_o wander_v up_o and_o down_o within_o its_o involve_a and_o recur_v path_n but_o never_o be_v able_a to_o get_v either_o back_n or_o through_o it_o now_o allude_v to_o these_o different_a work_n we_o may_v not_o unfit_o compare_v the_o learned_a labour_n of_o the_o father_n doctor_n and_o worthy_a divine_n of_o god_n church_n to_o this_o stately_a temple_n of_o solomon_n be_v the_o rich_a and_o illustrious_a monument_n of_o their_o piety_n zeal_n and_o erudition_n whereas_o by_o the_o cretan_a labyrinth_n be_v fit_o symbolise_v the_o artificial_a but_o pestiferous_a work_n of_o all_o heretical_a author_n who_o forsake_v the_o ever-visible_a and_o conspicuous_a church_n of_o christ_n and_o know_v consent_n of_o christendom_n induce_v themselves_o and_o follower_n to_o believe_v the_o novel_a fancy_n of_o their_o own_o fanatic_a brain_n these_o man_n labour_n be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v lightsome_a monument_n that_o they_o be_v rather_o labyrinth_n or_o intricate_a dungeon_n for_o poor_a seduce_v soul_n who_o be_v once_o engage_v in_o the_o perplexity_n of_o their_o entangle_a flexure_n see_v not_o the_o radiant_a light_n of_o god_n church_n some_o few_o only_o except_v who_o of_o his_o great_a mercy_n he_o be_v please_v to_o show_v the_o way_n out_o and_o reduce_v into_o his_o fold_n now_o it_o have_v already_o be_v show_v by_o other_o that_o the_o work_n of_o many_o late_a protestant_a writer_n of_o this_o nation_n be_v of_o the_o aforesaid_a intangle_a nature_n and_o i_o doubt_v not_o by_o god_n help_n but_o to_o evidence_n that_o this_o their_o grand_a author_n book_n i_o be_o now_o about_o to_o answer_v be_v very_o liable_a to_o the_o same_o reproach_n for_o to_o describe_v it_o right_o it_o be_v a_o labyrinth_n most_o artificial_o compose_v with_o as_o many_o abstruse_a turn_n ambiguous_a wind_n and_o intricate_a meander_n as_o that_o of_o dedalus_n and_o therefore_o equal_o inextricable_a but_o a_o more_o sure_a and_o strong_a clew_n than_o ariadne_n the_o line_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n authority_n and_o tradition_n join_v with_o holy_a scripture_n have_v not_o only_o carry_v i_o through_o it_o but_o by_o god_n good_a assistance_n enable_v i_o to_o render_v it_o pervious_a to_o all_o by_o the_o discovery_n and_o directive_n mark_v i_o have_v set_v on_o the_o leave_n that_o compose_v this_o present_a volume_n yet_o before_o i_o descend_v to_o particular_n i_o must_v advertise_v the_o reader_n that_o i_o design_v not_o the_o defence_n either_o of_o mr._n fisher_n or_o any_o other_o author_n further_o than_o they_o deliver_v the_o general_o receive_v doctrine_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n which_o be_v that_o i_o undertake_v to_o maintain_v the_o three_o lead_a page_n of_o the_o bishop_n book_n contain_v the_o occasion_n of_o the_o conference_n between_o himself_o and_o mr._n fisher_n viz._n for_o the_o satisfaction_n 2._o of_o a_o honourable_a lady_n who_o have_v hear_v it_o grant_v on_o the_o protestant_a part_n in_o a_o former_a conference_n that_o there_o must_v be_v a_o continual_a visible_a company_n ever_o since_o christ_n teach_v unchanged_a doctrine_n in_o all_o point_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n and_o find_v it_o seem_v in_o her_o own_o reason_n that_o such_o a_o company_n or_o church_n must_v not_o be_v fallible_a in_o its_o teach_v be_v in_o quest_n of_o a_o continual_a visible_a and_o infallible_a church_n as_o
must_v be_v a_o true_a church_n though_o a_o erroneous_a one_o in_o this_o particular_a here_o the_o bishop_n think_v to_o blind_v all_o the_o church_n of_o christendom_n with_o a_o trifle_n he_o grant_v that_o whoever_o make_v a_o inequality_n between_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o the_o son_n or_o deny_v the_o consubstantiality_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n with_o the_o son_n be_v a_o heretic_n but_o he_o go_v not_o about_o to_o show_v in_o divinity_n though_o he_o talk_v much_o of_o it_o how_o all_o this_o can_v be_v viz._n that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n shall_v be_v in_o all_o respect_v equal_a and_o consubstantial_a with_o the_o son_n unless_o he_o proceed_v from_o the_o son_n this_o it_o seem_v be_v matter_n too_o deep_a for_o his_o lordship_n to_o wade_v into_o and_o therefore_o very_o dexterous_o he_o put_v it_o off_o as_o a_o business_n of_o no_o great_a moment_n and_o to_o hide_v his_o face_n from_o a_o open_a profession_n with_o the_o greek_n against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n proceed_v from_o the_o son_n he_o first_o cast_v a_o vail_n over_o the_o reader_n eye_n give_v he_o a_o dark_a expression_n that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v the_o spirit_n of_o the_o son_n and_o then_o bold_o tell_v he_o non_fw-la est_fw-la aliud_fw-la it_o be_v the_o same_o to_o say_v the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v the_o spirit_n of_o the_o son_n as_o to_o say_v the_o holy_a ghost_n proceed_v from_o the_o son_n but_o i_o ask_v his_o lordship_n whether_o the_o modern_a greek_n say_v the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v the_o spirit_n of_o the_o son_n for_o he_o cite_v none_o but_o st._n john_n damascen_n for_o it_o who_o be_v none_o of_o the_o modern_n second_o whether_o the_o spirit_n he_o here_o set_v forth_o do_v true_o proceed_v from_o the_o son_n if_o not_o then_o he_o trade_v with_o some_o other_o spirit_n and_o not_o with_o the_o holy_a ghost_n what_o i_o have_v hitherto_o say_v be_v i_o doubt_v not_o sufficient_a to_o undeceive_v any_o indifferent_a reader_n touch_v the_o question_n in_o dispute_n yet_o to_o press_v the_o point_n a_o little_a hard_o i_o thus_o argue_v in_o form_n against_o his_o lordship_n and_o that_o out_o of_o his_o own_o concession_n if_o the_o greek_n error_n be_v not_o only_o concern_v but_o against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n than_o according_a to_o the_o bishop_n own_o distinction_n they_o have_v lose_v all_o assistance_n of_o that_o bless_a spirit_n and_o be_v become_v no_o true_a church_n but_o their_o error_n be_v not_o only_o concern_v but_o against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n therefore_o they_o have_v lose_v all_o the_o assistance_n of_o that_o bless_a spirit_n and_o be_v become_v no_o true_a church_n the_o major_n or_o first_o proposition_n contain_v the_o bishop_n own_o doctrine_n the_o minor_a or_o second_o proposition_n viz._n that_o the_o greek_n error_n be_v not_o only_o concern_v but_o against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n i_o thus_o prove_v all_o error_n special_o opposite_a to_o the_o particular_a and_o personal_a procession_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v according_a to_o all_o divine_n not_o only_o error_n concern_v but_o error_n against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n but_o the_o greek_n error_n be_v opposite_a to_o the_o particular_a and_o personal_a procession_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o be_v already_o prove_v ergo_fw-la their_o error_n be_v not_o only_o concern_v but_o against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n who_o assistance_n therefore_o they_o have_v lose_v not_o only_o according_a to_o the_o first_o but_o even_o latter_a branch_n of_o the_o bishop_n distinction_n and_o consequent_o remain_v no_o true_a church_n but_o here_o the_o bishop_n may_v seem_v to_o have_v provide_v against_o the_o force_n of_o this_o argument_n by_o hint_v a_o difference_n between_o error_n fundamental_a and_o not_o fundamental_a which_o point_n i_o shall_v purposely_o examine_v in_o the_o follow_a chapter_n in_o the_o interim_n i_o observe_v that_o his_o lordship_n have_v be_v for_o a_o while_o serious_a begin_v now_o to_o quibble_n upon_o the_o word_n filioque_fw-la on_o occasion_n of_o the_o pope_n insert_v it_o into_o the_o creed_n and_o first_o he_o grumble_v that_o the_o pope_n shall_v add_v and_o anathematise_v too_o i_o hope_v 25._o he_o will_v give_v the_o holy_a ghost_n leave_v to_o assist_v the_o church_n in_o add_v expression_n for_o the_o better_a explication_n of_o any_o article_n of_o faith_n and_o then_o the_o pope_n have_v leave_v and_o command_v too_o to_o anathematise_v all_o such_o as_o shall_v not_o allow_v the_o use_n of_o such_o expression_n 6._o now_o to_o come_v to_o the_o debate_n of_o filioque_fw-la it_o be_v true_a that_o many_o hundred_o of_o year_n have_v pass_v from_o the_o time_n of_o the_o apostle_n before_o filioque_fw-la be_v add_v to_o the_o nicene_n creed_n and_o more_o since_o the_o declaration_n and_o decree_n be_v sufficient_o publish_v and_o in_o all_o these_o year_n salvation_n be_v have_v in_o the_o church_n without_o mention_n of_o filioque_fw-la but_o it_o be_v also_o true_a that_o the_o addition_n of_o filioque_fw-la to_o the_o creed_n be_v make_v many_o year_n before_o the_o difference_n break_v out_o between_o the_o latin_n and_o greek_n so_o that_o the_o insert_v this_o word_n filioque_fw-la into_o the_o creed_n be_v not_o the_o first_o occasion_n of_o schism_n but_o grudge_n arise_v among_o the_o greek_n who_o have_v be_v a_o large_a flourish_a church_n with_o a_o number_n of_o most_o learned_a and_o zealous_a prelate_n and_o hold_v the_o article_n still_o though_o upon_o empty_a head_n such_o quick_o fill_v with_o wind_n think_v their_o swell_a place_n and_o great_a city_n of_o constantinople_n may_v hold_v up_o against_o rome_n they_o begin_v to_o quarrel_v not_o for_o place_n that_o be_v too_o mean_a a_o motive_n for_o such_o as_o look_v so_o big_a but_o first_o they_o will_v make_v it_o appear_v they_o can_v teach_v rome_n nay_o they_o spy_v out_o heresy_n in_o it_o the_o old_a way_n of_o all_o heretic_n and_o so_o fall_v to_o question_v the_o procession_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o must_v needs_o have_v filioque_fw-la out_o of_o the_o creed_n to_o return_v unto_o which_o after_o the_o meaning_n of_o the_o latin_a church_n be_v understand_v and_o that_o the_o word_n filioque_fw-la lie_v in_o the_o creed_n to_o confess_v that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n proceed_v from_o the_o son_n as_o true_o as_o from_o the_o father_n and_o that_o whoever_o deny_v the_o filioque_fw-la must_v be_v suppose_v to_o deny_v the_o procession_n than_o it_o become_v a_o heresy_n to_o deny_v it_o and_o the_o church_n do_v right_o anathematise_v all_o such_o denier_n none_o can_v be_v so_o ignorant_a as_o to_o think_v the_o church_n in_o compose_v the_o creed_n intend_v to_o thrust_v in_o all_o point_n of_o faith_n concern_v the_o trinity_n it_o be_v clear_a more_o may_v be_v add_v yet_o but_o when_o the_o church_n understand_v that_o some_o of_o her_o truant_n child_n begin_v to_o stumble_v at_o a_o particular_a point_n the_o holy_a ghost_n proceed_v from_o the_o son_n than_o she_o think_v it_o high_a time_n to_o speak_v a_o loud_a word_n that_o may_v keep_v her_o good_a child_n from_o fall_v neither_o be_v the_o roman-catholick_n church_n just_o accusable_a of_o cruelty_n though_o the_o bishop_n tax_v she_o of_o it_o because_o she_o be_v quick_a and_o sharp_a against_o those_o that_o fall_v into_o heresy_n it_o be_v not_o the_o libertine_n heretic_n the_o church_n look_v so_o eager_o after_o to_o have_v he_o punish_v as_o a_o motherly_a compassion_n of_o her_o other_o child_n yet_o good_a lest_o they_o shall_v come_v to_o be_v infect_v if_o sinner_n can_v be_v bad_a themselves_o only_o and_o not_o infuse_v their_o venom_n into_o other_o nor_o give_v scandal_n the_o church_n may_v possible_o have_v reason_n to_o mitigate_v her_o severity_n but_o see_v the_o bishop_n bring_v in_o st._n peter_n with_o the_o key_n at_o his_o girdle_n to_o show_v his_o mildness_n may_v not_o i_o represent_v to_o his_o lordship_n st._n peter_n proceed_v with_o ananias_n and_o sapphira_n act_v 5._o 5_o 10._o strike_v they_o dead_a at_o his_o foot_n for_o retain_v some_o part_n of_o their_o good_n though_o they_o have_v deliver_v the_o far_o great_a part_n of_o they_o to_o st._n peter_n yea_o why_o may_v i_o not_o join_v st._n paul_n to_o he_o chastise_v most_o severe_o such_o untoward_a child_n 1_o cor._n 5._o 5._o 1_o tim._n 1._o 20_o certain_o the_o church_n punish_v not_o her_o delinquent_n to_o increase_v the_o suffering_n of_o such_o as_o be_v to_o die_v but_o to_o strike_v a_o terror_n into_o the_o live_n who_o fear_v many_o time_n more_o than_o the_o love_n of_o god_n keep_v from_o sin_v chap._n 2._o of_o fundamental_o or_o necessary_n to_o salvation_n argument_n 1._o the_o catholic_a tenet_n concern_v fundamental_o no_o step_n to_o the_o roman_a greatness_n 2._o his_o lordship_n different_a acception_n of_o the_o
fasten_v to_o the_o undeniable_a motive_n of_o credibility_n accompany_v and_o point_v out_o the_o true_a church_n which_o motive_n be_v the_o ground_n or_o reason_n why_o we_o believe_v the_o church_n to_o be_v infallible_a independent_o of_o scripture_n whereby_o we_o avoid_v even_o the_o shadow_n of_o a_o circle_n now_o our_o adversary_n on_o the_o other_o side_n though_o he_o grant_v true_a christian_a faith_n to_o be_v essential_o divine_a and_o infallible_a and_o that_o divine_a revelation_n or_o god_n word_n be_v the_o ultimate_a foundation_n or_o formal_a object_n of_o faith_n as_o also_o that_o we_o can_v believe_v with_o true_a divine_a faith_n unless_o we_o have_v some_o infallible_a ground_n and_o authority_n to_o assure_v we_o of_o the_o say_v divine_a revelation_n or_o word_n of_o god_n yet_o do_v he_o not_o it_o be_v therefore_o to_o be_v suppose_v he_o can_v not_o show_v any_o such_o infallible_a authority_n or_o ground_n for_o his_o believe_a scripture_n or_o any_o other_o point_n of_o faith_n to_o be_v divine_a revelation_n or_o the_o word_n of_o god_n the_o private_a spirit_n however_o mask_v under_o the_o title_n of_o grace_n have_v be_v find_v to_o come_v far_o short_a in_o that_o respect_n the_o inbred_a light_n of_o scripture_n itself_o have_v be_v evidence_v to_o be_v too_o weak_a and_o dim_a for_o that_o purpose_n neither_o can_v these_o defective_a mean_n viz._n of_o private_a spirit_n and_o inbred_a light_n of_o scripture_n be_v ever_o heighten_v or_o improve_v to_o that_o prerogative_n to_o wit_n of_o give_v infallible_a assurance_n by_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o present_a church_n unless_o that_o tradition_n be_v grant_v to_o be_v infallible_a which_o the_o bishop_n absolute_o refuse_v to_o admit_v and_o thereby_o leave_v both_o himself_o and_o his_o own_o party_n destitute_a of_o such_o a_o infallible_a ground_n for_o believe_a scripture_n to_o be_v god_n word_n as_o himself_o confess_v necessary_a for_o attain_v supernatural_a and_o divine_a faith_n the_o consequence_n i_o leave_v to_o the_o serious_a consideration_n of_o the_o judicious_a reader_n i_o beseech_v god_n he_o may_v make_v benefit_n of_o it_o to_o his_o eternal_a felicity_n chap._n x._o of_o the_o universal_a church_n argument_n 1._o the_o lady_n question_n what_o it_o be_v and_o how_o divert_v by_o the_o bishop_n 2._o in_o what_o sense_n the_o roman_a church_n be_v style_v the_o church_n 3._o every_o true_a church_n a_o right_a or_o orthodox_n church_n and_o why_o 4._o the_o lady_n question_n and_o a._n c_n miscit_v 5._o how_o the_o church_n and_o how_o particular_a church_n be_v call_v catholic_n 6._o why_o and_o in_o what_o sense_n it_o be_v not_o only_o true_a but_o proper_a to_o say_v the_o romane-catholique_a church_n 7._o the_o bishop_n pretend_a solution_n of_o beauties_n authority_n refer_v chap._n 1._o to_o a_o fit_a place_n here_o more_o particular_o answer_v 1._o the_o lady_n at_o length_n cut_v off_o the_o the_o thread_n of_o his_o lordship_n long_a discourse_n and_o by_o a_o quere_z gives_z a_o rise_z to_o a_o new_a one_o her_o demand_n according_a to_o mr._n fisher_n relation_n be_v whether_o the_o bishop_n 1._o will_v grant_v the_o roman_a church_n to_o be_v the_o right_a church_n what_o be_v the_o bishop_n answer_n to_o this_o he_o grant_v that_o it_o be_v but_o since_o it_o seem_v he_o repent_v himself_o for_o grant_v so_o much_o for_o afterward_o in_o his_o book_n he_o deny_v that_o either_o the_o question_n be_v ask_v in_o this_o form_n or_o that_o the_o answer_n be_v such_o have_v we_o the_o lady_n question_v in_o some_o authentical_a autography_n of_o her_o own_o hand_n it_o will_v decide_v this_o verbal_a controversy_n however_o it_o be_v very_o likely_a the_o lady_n ask_v not_o this_o question_n out_o of_o curiosity_n since_o she_o desire_v only_o to_o know_v that_o which_o may_v settle_v she_o in_o point_n of_o religion_n be_v at_o that_o time_n so_o deep_o perplex_v as_o she_o be_v now_o what_o satisfaction_n will_v it_o have_v give_v she_o to_o know_v that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v a_o particular_a and_o true_a church_n in_o the_o precise_a essence_n of_o a_o church_n in_o which_o she_o may_v possible_o be_v save_v if_o it_o be_v neither_o the_o true_a church_n that_o be_v the_o catholic_a church_n out_o of_o which_o she_o can_v not_o be_v save_v nor_o the_o right_a church_n in_o which_o she_o may_v certain_o be_v save_v this_o only_o be_v her_o doubt_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o whole_a dispute_n this_o have_v be_v inculcate_v to_o she_o by_o those_o of_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o it_o be_v likely_a she_o frame_v her_o question_n according_a to_o her_o doubt_n but_o whatever_o her_o word_n be_v she_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v to_o demand_v this_o alone_a viz._n whether_o the_o roman_a be_v not_o the_o true_a visible_a infallible_a church_n out_o of_o which_o none_o can_v be_v save_v for_o herein_o she_o have_v from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o conference_n desire_v satisfaction_n see_v mr._n fisher_n relation_n pag._n 42._o wherein_o it_o be_v say_v the_o lady_n desire_v to_o have_v proof_n bring_v to_o show_v which_o be_v that_o continual_a infallible_a visible_a church_n in_o which_o one_o may_v and_o out_o of_o which_o one_o can_v attain_v salvation_n 2._o to_o our_o present_a purpose_n it_o be_v all_o one_o in_o which_o of_o these_o term_n the_o question_n be_v demand_v for_o in_o the_o present_a subject_n the_o roman_a church_n can_v not_o be_v any_o church_n at_o all_o unless_o it_o be_v the_o church_n and_o a_o right_a church_n the_o reason_n be_v because_o st._n peter_n successor_n be_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o head_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n as_o i_o shall_v full_o prove_v anon_o that_o must_v needs_o be_v the_o church_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d if_o it_o be_v any_o church_n at_o all_o in_o like_a manner_n if_o it_o be_v not_o a_o right_a church_n it_o may_v be_v a_o synagogue_n or_o conventicle_n but_o not_o a_o true_a church_n of_o christ._n for_o that_o imply_v a_o company_n of_o man_n agree_v in_o the_o profession_n of_o the_o same_o christian_a faith_n and_o communion_n of_o the_o same_o sacrament_n under_o the_o government_n of_o lawful_a pastor_n and_o chief_o of_o one_o vicar_n of_o christ_n upon_o earth_n it_o be_v evident_a this_o church_n can_v be_v but_o one_o and_o therefore_o if_o it_o be_v a_o true_a church_n it_o be_v a_o right_a church_n this_o notwithstanding_o hinder_v not_o the_o universal_a church_n from_o be_v divide_v into_o many_o diocese_n all_o which_o agree_v in_o the_o same_o faith_n and_o communion_n of_o the_o same_o sacrament_n and_o in_o the_o acknowledgement_n of_o the_o same_o vicar_n of_o christ_n make_v up_o one_o and_o the_o same_o universal_a church_n but_o where_o there_o be_v difference_n in_o any_o of_o these_o the_o congregation_n that_o depart_v from_o the_o abovesaid_a one_o faith_n communion_n and_o obedience_n of_o necessity_n cease_v to_o be_v a_o church_n any_o long_o why_o so_o because_o bonum_fw-la ex_fw-la integrâ_fw-la causâ_fw-la malum_fw-la ex_fw-la quolibet_fw-la defectu_fw-la it_o be_v true_a the_o church_n signify_v most_o proper_o either_o the_o whole_a catholic_a church_n or_o if_o it_o be_v apply_v to_o a_o particular_a church_n the_o chief_a church_n and_o by_o consequence_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n st._n peter_n have_v fix_v his_o chair_n to_o that_o place_n and_o by_o that_o mean_v make_v his_o successor_n bishop_n of_o rome_n but_o have_v st._n peter_n place_v his_o chair_n elsewhere_o that_o church_n where_o ever_o it_o have_v be_v will_v have_v be_v call_v the_o church_n as_o the_o roman_a church_n now_o be_v the_o roman_a church_n therefore_o be_v style_v the_o church_n because_o it_o be_v the_o seat_n of_o the_o vicar_n of_o christ_n and_o chief_a pastor_n of_o the_o church_n universal_a yet_o all_o other_o church_n be_v true_a right_a and_o orthodox_n church_n of_o christ_n otherwise_o they_o will_v be_v no_o church_n at_o all_o in_o a_o word_n i_o will_v fain_o see_v some_o grave_a ancient_a father_n who_o ever_o maintain_v a_o congregation_n of_o christian_n to_o be_v a_o true_a church_n and_o yet_o hold_v it_o not_o to_o be_v orthodox_n 3._o this_o be_v so_o all_o his_o lordship_n subtlety_n fall_v to_o the_o ground_n which_o suppose_v that_o some_o congregation_n of_o christian_n may_v remain_v a_o true_a church_n and_o yet_o teach_v false_a doctrine_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n for_o how_o can_v you_o call_v that_o a_o true_a church_n in_o which_o man_n be_v not_o teach_v the_o way_n to_o heaven_n but_o to_o eternal_a perdition_n such_o needs_o must_v be_v all_o false_a doctrine_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n because_o it_o either_o teach_v something_o to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n which_o be_v not_o or_o deny_v that_o to_o be_v his_o word_n which_o be_v
that_o city_n fratr_n whether_o he_o consent_v with_o the_o catholic_n bishop_n that_o be_v say_v he_o with_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o in_o this_o sense_n the_o church_n of_o alexandria_n theophil_n according_a to_o st._n hierome_n make_v it_o her_o glory_n to_o participate_v of_o the_o roman_a faith_n and_o john_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n write_v thus_o to_o pope_n hermisda_n conc._n we_o promise_v say_v he_o not_o to_o recite_v in_o the_o sacred_a mystery_n the_o name_n of_o those_o who_o be_v sever_v from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n that_o be_v to_o say_v who_o consent_v not_o in_o all_o thing_n with_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a thus_o saint_n austin_n address_v himself_o to_o the_o donatist_n tell_v they_o that_o the_o 9_o succession_n of_o the_o roman_a bishop_n be_v the_o rock_n which_o the_o proud_a gate_n of_o hell_n overcome_v not_o thereby_o 〈◊〉_d that_o the_o very_a succession_n of_o those_o bishop_n be_v in_o some_o true_a sense_n the_o catholic_a church_n so_o optatus_n milevitanus_fw-la after_o he_o have_v say_v 2._o sy_n peter_n be_v head_n of_o all_o the_o apostle_n and_o that_o he_o will_v have_v be_v a_o sohismatick_a who_o shall_v have_v erect_v another_o chair_n against_o that_o singular_a one_o of_o st._n peter_n as_o also_o that_o in_o that_o chair_n of_o st._n peter_n be_v but_o one_o unity_n be_v to_o be_v keep_v by_o all_o he_o add_v that_o with_o syricius_n than_o pope_n he_o himself_o be_v unite_v in_o communion_n ibidem_fw-la with_o who_o the_o whole_a world_n say_v he_o mean_v the_o whole_a catholic_a church_n agree_v by_o communicatory_a letter_n in_o one_o society_n of_o communion_n see_v here_o how_o clear_o he_o make_v the_o union_n with_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n the_o measure_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n which_o the_o bishop_n call_v a_o jesuitism_n and_o further_o prove_v himself_o to_o be_v in_o the_o catholic_n church_n ibid._n because_o he_o be_v in_o communion_n with_o the_o sea_n of_o peter_n st._n herome_n 47._o profess_v the_o church_n be_v build_v upon_o st._n peter_n sea_n and_o that_o whoever_o eat_v the_o lamb_n that_o be_v pretend_v to_o believe_v in_o christ_n and_o 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o sacrament_n out_o of_o that_o house_n that_o be_v out_o of_o the_o communion_n of_o that_o church_n be_v profane_a and_o a_o alien_n yea_o that_o he_o belong_v to_o antichrist_n and_o not_o to_o christ_n whoever_o consent_v not_o with_o the_o successor_n of_o st._n peter_n st._n fulgentius_n 11._o style_v the_o roman_a church_n the_o top_n of_o the_o world_n and_o eulalius_n bishop_n of_o syracuse_n tell_v the_o same_o fulgentius_n that_o it_o will_v avail_v he_o nothing_o to_o go_v into_o those_o country_n which_o he_o desire_v to_o visit_v because_o 15._o say_v he_o the_o inhabitant_n thereof_o certain_a religious_a man_n be_v sever_v by_o a_o faithless_a dissension_n from_o the_o sea_n of_o peter_n last_o gratian_n the_o emperor_n make_v a_o decree_n 2._o that_o the_o church_n former_o possess_v by_o heretic_n shall_v be_v restore_v to_o those_o bishop_n who_o be_v of_o pope_n damasus_n his_o communion_n understand_v thereby_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n the_o communion_n therefore_o with_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n in_o his_o day_n be_v the_o measure_n and_o distinctive_a badge_n whereby_o to_o know_v who_o be_v and_o who_o be_v not_o of_o the_o catholic_a church_n 6._o hence_o it_o appear_v that_o what_o his_o lordship_n be_v please_v to_o term_v a_o perfect_a jesuitism_n in_o a._n c._n be_v a_o perfect_a mistake_n of_o the_o bishop_n and_o a_o lose_v himself_o in_o his_o own_o labyrinth_n neither_o be_v that_o vulgar_a exception_n against_o roman_a catholic_n any_o better_a for_o as_o all_o country_n how_o distant_a soever_o from_o one_o another_o under_o the_o command_n and_o obedience_n of_o the_o roman_a emperor_n be_v call_v the_o roman_a empire_n take_v collective_o because_o the_o chief_a seat_n of_o their_o emperor_n be_v at_o rome_n so_o all_o the_o church_n subject_n to_o the_o roman_a bishop_n be_v call_v the_o roman_a church_n because_o their_o supreme_a head_n and_o pastor_n under_o christ_n sit_v at_o rome_n and_o see_v in_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n the_o whole_a church_n of_o the_o israelite_n be_v proper_o call_v the_o jewish_a church_n which_o name_n strict_o take_v belong_v only_o to_o the_o tribe_n of_o juda_n because_o the_o chief_a city_n of_o it_o appertain_v to_o that_o tribe_n where_o the_o high_a priest_n reside_v and_o officiate_v why_o may_v not_o also_o the_o whole_a orthodox_n christian_n church_n be_v name_v the_o roman_a church_n because_o its_o supreme_a bishop_n keep_v his_o residence_n in_o the_o roman_a city_n the_o truth_n be_v in_o all_o doubt_n concern_v matter_n of_o doctrine_n recourse_n be_v to_o be_v have_v to_o st._n peter_n successor_n who_o at_o least_o with_o a_o general_n council_n can_v infallible_o resolve_v all_o difficulty_n this_o infallibility_n be_v independent_a of_o all_o place_n insomuch_o that_o as_o st._n peter_n have_v be_v infallible_a though_o he_o have_v never_o be_v at_o rome_n so_o though_o his_o successor_n shall_v leave_v to_o reside_v in_o that_o city_n yet_o shall_v he_o not_o leave_v to_o be_v infallible_a in_o the_o manner_n specify_v and_o shall_v as_o well_o then_o as_o now_o judge_v both_o the_o roman_a faith_n and_o the_o faith_n of_o all_o other_o church_n this_o i_o have_v say_v to_o show_v how_o the_o faith_n of_o every_o particular_a church_n be_v to_o be_v examine_v and_o prove_v to_o be_v catholic_a to_o wit_n by_o its_o conformity_n to_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n conclude_v nothing_o whither_o the_o pope_n can_v transfer_v his_o chair_n from_o rome_n or_o not_o and_o whether_o the_o clergy_n of_o rome_n can_v desert_v he_o and_o the_o true_a faith_n or_o not_o for_o these_o question_n make_v nothing_o to_o our_o present_a purpose_n 7._o by_o way_n of_o appendix_n to_o this_o chapter_n since_o so_o fair_a a_o occasion_n be_v present_v we_o it_o will_v not_o be_v amiss_o to_o perform_v what_o we_o promise_v chap._n 1._o viz._n to_o examine_v a_o little_a more_o full_o his_o lordship_n pretend_a solution_n of_o beauties_n authority_n which_o the_o bishop_n bring_v §_o 3._o num_fw-la 3._o but_o my_o intention_n be_v to_o maintain_v they_o so_o far_o only_a as_o they_o make_v for_o the_o infallible_a authority_n of_o the_o church_n or_o of_o the_o pope_n define_v article_n of_o faith_n in_o a_o general_n council_n for_o we_o be_v oblige_v to_o no_o more_o the_o first_o authority_n be_v out_o of_o st._n cyprian_n who_o shall_v here_o speak_v a_o little_o full_a then_o either_o the_o bishop_n or_o bellarmin_n cite_v he_o to_o the_o end_n the_o force_n of_o his_o word_n may_v the_o better_o appear_v this_o holy_a martyr_n write_v thus_o to_o cornelius_n bish_n 〈◊〉_d of_o rome_n 1648._o post_fw-la ista_fw-la adhuc_fw-la insuper_fw-la pseudoepiscopo_a sibi_fw-la ab_fw-la haereticis_fw-la constituto_fw-la navigare_fw-la audent_fw-la ad_fw-la petri_n cathedram_fw-la atque_fw-la ad_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la principalem_fw-la unde_fw-la unitas_fw-la sacerdotalis_fw-la exorta_fw-la est_fw-la à_fw-la schismaticis_fw-la &_o 〈◊〉_d literas_fw-la far_o nec_fw-la cogitare_fw-la eos_fw-la esse_fw-la romanos_fw-la quorum_fw-la fides_fw-la apostolo_n praedicante_fw-la laudata_fw-la est_fw-la ad_fw-la quos_fw-la perfidia_fw-la habere_fw-la non_fw-la 〈◊〉_d accessum_fw-la why_o call_v he_o st._n peter_n chair_n ecclesiam_fw-la principalem_fw-la the_o chief_a church_n but_o because_o it_o be_v the_o head_n to_o which_o all_o other_o church_n must_v be_v subordinate_a in_o matter_n of_o doctrine_n the_o word_n follow_v signify_v as_o much_o unde_fw-la unitas_fw-la sacerdotalis_fw-la exorta_fw-la est_fw-la from_o which_o chair_n of_o st._n peter_n as_o it_o be_v from_o its_o fountain_n unity_n in_o priesthood_n and_o consequent_o unity_n in_o faith_n be_v derive_v why_o bring_v he_o the_o apostle_n himself_o as_o panegyrist_n of_o the_o roman_a faith_n quorum_fw-la fides_fw-la apostolo_n praedicante_fw-la laudataest_n be_v it_o forsooth_o because_o no_o malicious_a 〈◊〉_d in_o matter_n of_o trust_n or_o error_n in_o fact_n against_o the_o discipline_n and_o government_n of_o the_o church_n can_v have_v access_n unto_o they_o as_o the_o bishop_n will_v needs_o misinterpret_v the_o place_n or_o rather_o because_o no_o error_n in_o faith_n can_v approach_v the_o sea_n apostolic_a certain_a it_o be_v perfidia_fw-la in_o this_o sentence_n be_v diametrical_o oppose_v to_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o roman_n immediate_o before_o commend_v by_o the_o apostle_n which_o be_v true_a christian_a faith_n and_o consequent_o it_o must_v of_o necessity_n be_v take_v for_o the_o quite_o contrary_a viz._n misbelief_n or_o error_n in_o faith_n hence_o his_o other_o explication_n also_o vanish_v into_o smoke_n viz._n when_o he_o assert_n that_o 〈◊〉_d non_fw-la potest_fw-la may_v be_v take_v hyperbolical_o for_o non_fw-la facile_fw-la potest_fw-la because_o this_o
drive_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n to_o a_o hard_a strait_n that_o it_o evident_o argue_v the_o truth_n and_o uncorruptedness_n of_o that_o church_n which_o be_v so_o clear_a that_o even_o her_o adversary_n can_v but_o confess_v it_o neither_o do_v the_o roman_a church_n reject_v all_o that_o ruffinus_n write_v even_o in_o that_o book_n wherein_o he_o express_v his_o heresy_n but_o only_o such_o part_n of_o it_o as_o be_v dissonant_n to_o the_o receive_a doctrine_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o if_o one_o condemn_v of_o error_n by_o another_o may_v not_o be_v cite_v in_o any_o thing_n wherein_o he_o favour_v the_o party_n that_o condemn_v he_o why_o do_v the_o relatour_n so_o often_o cite_v our_o author_n who_o he_o condemn_v of_o error_n in_o faith_n when_o they_o seem_v to_o favour_v he_o the_o bishop_n have_v examine_v beauty_n authority_n in_o the_o manner_n you_o see_v return_v again_o to_o a.c._n and_o the_o jesuit_n tell_v we_o in_o very_o positive_a 14._o term_n that_o no_o jesuit_n nor_o any_o other_o be_v able_a to_o prove_v any_o particular_a church_n infallible_a but_o to_o this_o i_o have_v often_o answer_v that_o it_o be_v neither_o to_o the_o lady_n purpose_n nor_o we_o to_o dispute_v concern_v a_o particular_a infallible_a church_n it_o suffice_v that_o the_o pope_n be_v infallible_a at_o least_o with_o a_o general_n council_n which_o question_n as_o i_o have_v often_o observe_v the_o relatour_n wise_o decline_v and_o divert_v another_o way_n namely_o to_o a_o unnecessary_a dispute_n with_o bellarmin_n about_o the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o particular_a church_n or_o diocese_n of_o rome_n viz._n whether_o the_o roman_a clergy_n can_v at_o any_o time_n forsake_v the_o pope_n and_o his_o doctrine_n or_o not_o or_o whether_o the_o chair_n of_o st._n peter_n can_v be_v transfer_v to_o another_o place_n and_o the_o roman_a church_n upon_o that_o account_n be_v leave_v subject_n to_o error_n as_o be_v no_o long_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a both_o which_o be_v matter_n of_o that_o nature_n that_o they_o do_v no_o way_n engage_v i_o to_o contend_v with_o his_o lordship_n about_o they_o further_o then_o to_o tell_v he_o that_o they_o be_v nothing_o at_o all_o to_o his_o purpose_n nor_o to_o the_o satisfaction_n of_o the_o lady_n and_o seem_v to_o have_v be_v thrust_v into_o his_o book_n only_o to_o fill_v up_o some_o vacant_a page_n and_o to_o avoid_v the_o question_n which_o he_o be_v oblige_v but_o not_o able_a direct_o to_o answer_v in_o the_o same_o page_n i_o observe_v the_o bishop_n charge_v the_o roman_a church_n with_o err_v in_o the_o worship_n of_o image_n in_o alter_v christ_n institution_n in_o the_o 15._o bless_a sacrament_n by_o take_v away_o the_o cup_n from_o the_o people_n and_o divers_a other_o particular_n but_o because_o he_o endeavour_v not_o in_o any_o sort_n to_o prove_v his_o charge_n i_o presume_v i_o may_v take_v liberty_n to_o answer_v in_o a_o more_o convenient_a place_n to_o wit_n where_o the_o bishop_n dispute_v formal_o against_o they_o but_o his_o lordship_n will_v not_o part_v without_o another_o fling_n at_o bellarmin_n he_o think_v he_o have_v spy_v a_o great_a inconsistency_n in_o some_o word_n of_o the_o cardinal_n the_o matter_n thus_o bellarmin_n lib._n 4._o de_fw-fr rom._n pont._n cap._n 4._o §_o 2._o as_o the_o bishop_n cite_v he_o of_o this_o proposition_n the_o particular_a church_n of_o rome_n can_v err_v in_o faith_n so_o long_o as_o st._n peter_n chair_n be_v at_o rome_n say_v it_o be_v a_o most_o true_a proposition_n but_o praesenti_fw-la after_o speak_v of_o it_o say_v only_o peradventure_o it_o be_v as_o true_a as_o this_o viz._n the_o pope_n when_o he_o teach_v the_o whole_a church_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n can_v err_v at_o this_o the_o bishop_n exclaim_v as_o at_o a_o great_a absurdity_n of_o speech_n what_o say_v he_o a_o proposition_n most_o true_a and_o yet_o 15._o but_o peradventure_o as_o true_a as_o another_o that_o be_v not_o possible_a with_o he_o but_o soft_a and_o fair_a what_o need_v so_o much_o noise_n let_v we_o see_v what_o ground_n the_o relatour_n have_v for_o this_o criticism_n first_o he_o shall_v have_v reflect_v that_o in_o such_o expression_n as_o this_o there_o be_v always_o a_o latitude_n of_o moral_a sense_n and_o meaning_n to_o be_v allow_v even_o by_o common_a right_n and_o custom_n of_o speak_v when_o i_o say_v for_o example_n such_o a_o man_n be_v vir_fw-la prudentissimus_fw-la or_o vir_fw-la optimus_fw-la a_o most_o wise_a and_o most_o honest_a man_n i_o be_o not_o present_o think_v to_o prefer_v he_o in_o those_o respect_n before_o all_o the_o man_n in_o the_o world_n nor_o shall_v i_o be_v count_v i_o hope_v a_o liar_n though_o some_o other_o man_n be_v find_v as_o wise_a and_o honest_a as_o he_o bellarmin_n therefore_o may_v have_v be_v excuse_v with_o indifferent_a judge_n for_o say_v what_o he_o do_v upon_o no_o other_o ground_n but_o this_o but_o i_o shall_v not_o here_o use_v this_o plea_n let_v the_o word_n verissima_fw-la be_v take_v in_o the_o strict_a rigour_n of_o scholastical_a sense_n that_o can_v be_v yet_o may_v not_o a_o proposition_n be_v right_o say_v most_o true_a viz._n in_o its_o proper_a rank_n and_o order_n of_o such_o proposition_n and_o yet_o be_v but_o peradventure_o as_o true_a as_o a_o proposition_n of_o another_o and_o high_a rank_n for_o certainty_n or_o infallibility_n of_o truth_n it_o be_v manifest_a bellarmin_n hold_v his_o first_o proposition_n touch_v the_o pope_n infallibility_n when_o he_o teach_v the_o whole_a church_n to_o be_v true_a veritate_fw-la fidei_fw-la for_o he_o hold_v it_o to_o be_v a_o proposition_n of_o faith_n but_o this_o other_o touch_v the_o roman_a clergy_n not_o err_v or_o not_o depart_v from_o the_o pope_n doctrine_n so_o long_o as_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a continue_v there_o to_o be_v true_a only_a veritate_fw-la theologiae_n as_o other_o theological_a proposition_n be_v true_a which_o be_v not_o divine_o reveal_v but_o mere_o by_o humane_a discourse_n and_o way_n of_o argument_n deduce_v from_o other_o theological_a proposition_n and_o principle_n who_o truth_n consequent_o be_v never_o so_o absolute_o infallible_a as_o that_o of_o matter_n of_o faith_n but_o only_o more_o or_o less_o certain_a according_a as_o the_o principle_n or_o proposition_n whence_o we_o deduce_v they_o be_v more_o or_o less_o infallible_a and_o the_o deduction_n of_o they_o from_o such_o principle_n more_o or_o less_o evident_a and_o necessary_a what_o absurdity_n then_o be_v it_o for_o bellarmin_n to_o say_v this_o proposition_n viz._n of_o the_o roman_a clergy_n never_o forsake_v the_o pope_n doctrine_n etc._n etc._n be_v most_o true_a meaning_n in_o the_o quality_n of_o a_o theological_a conclusion_n and_o yet_o but_o peradventure_o as_o true_a as_o that_o other_o viz._n of_o the_o pope_n not_o err_v when_o he_o teach_v the_o whole_a church_n which_o latter_a proposition_n bellarmin_n undoubted_o hold_v to_o be_v a_o proposition_n of_o divine_a faith_n but_o do_v not_o hold_v the_o other_o to_o be_v such_o true_o just_a as_o much_o absurdity_n as_o it_o be_v to_o say_v of_o a_o little_a man_n that_o in_o comparison_n of_o a_o pygmie_n he_o be_v a_o tall_a fellow_n but_o in_o comparison_n of_o some_o yeoman_n of_o the_o guard_n he_o be_v but_o a_o dwarf_n thus_o have_v acquit_v myself_o of_o what_o i_o stand_v oblige_v by_o promise_n at_o the_o begin_n of_o this_o treatise_n i_o return_v again_o to_o the_o bishop_n in_o pursuit_n of_o his_o present_a discourse_n chap._n ii_o protestant_n schismatic_n argument_n 1._o no_o pure_a church_n in_o the_o world_n since_o the_o apostle_n time_n if_o the_o roman_a church_n corrupt_v 2._o petrus_n de_fw-it alliaco_fw-it favour_n not_o the_o bishop_n card._n bellarmin_n most_o false_o quote_v by_o he_o almainus_n cassander_n etc._n etc._n not_o for_o he_o 3._o schism_n and_o heresy_n in_o rome_n but_o not_o in_o the_o roman_a church_n 4._o who_o make_v the_o present_a schism_n roman-catholiques_a or_o protestant_n 5._o st._n bernard_n and_o st._n augustine_n word_n right_o urge_v by_o a._n c._n and_o beauty_n as_o wrongful_o by_o the_o bishop_n 6._o protestant_n though_o they_o will_v have_v the_o church_n unerrable_a in_o fundamental_o only_o yet_o can_v never_o be_v bring_v to_o give_v a_o list_n of_o they_o 7._o christ_n church_n by_o inseparable_a property_n both_o caththolique_a and_o holy_a the_o relatour_n be_v still_o make_v personal_a reflection_n upon_o a._n c._n here_o he_o will_v have_v he_o trouble_v again_o about_o the_o form_n of_o the_o lady_n question_n 5._o but_o i_o see_v no_o reason_n he_o have_v to_o be_v trouble_v whether_o the_o lady_n ask_v her_o question_n by_o be_v or_o be_v because_o if_o the_o roman_a be_v the_o right_a church_n it_o still_o be_v so_o see_v no_o change_n can_v be_v show_v in_o her_o doctrine_n
find_v no_o difficulty_n to_o do_v three_o his_o lordship_n except_v against_o the_o application_n of_o the_o place_n bring_v by_o a._n c._n out_o of_o st._n bernard_n and_o st._n austin_n but_o we_o answer_v his_o exception_n do_v not_o weaken_v the_o force_n of_o the_o say_a place_n for_o first_o concern_v that_o of_o st._n bernard_n let_v we_o suppose_v as_o the_o relatour_n contend_v that_o st._n bernard_n by_o those_o word_n quae_fw-la major_n superbia_fw-la etc._n etc._n resurrect_v what_o great_a pride_n can_v there_o be_v then_o for_o one_o man_n to_o prefer_v his_o judgement_n before_o the_o whole_a congregation_n as_o if_o he_o alone_o have_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n mean_v only_o that_o particular_a congregation_n to_o which_o he_o be_v then_o preach_v yet_o be_v his_o say_n not_o unapt_o apply_v by_o a._n c._n to_o our_o present_a purpose_n by_o a_o argument_n à_fw-fr minore_fw-la ad_fw-la majus_fw-la to_o show_v the_o more_o exorbitant_a pride_n of_o those_o who_o prefer_v their_o private_a fanatic_a opinion_n before_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o whole_a catholic_a church_n this_o certain_o protestant_n do_v by_o their_o solemn_a protestation_n and_o obstinate_a maintain_v their_o private_a opinion_n what_o the_o relatour_n add_v that_o it_o be_v one_o thing_n for_o a_o private_a man_n to_o prefer_v his_o judgement_n before_o the_o whole_a congregation_n and_o another_o thing_n for_o a_o intelligent_a man_n in_o some_o thing_n unsatisfied_a modest_o to_o propose_v his_o doubt_n even_o to_o the_o catholic_a church_n be_v of_o no_o advantage_n to_o he_o for_o first_o though_o we_o shall_v grant_v his_o lordship_n that_o martin_n luther_n ulrick_n 〈◊〉_d john_n calvin_n theodore_n beza_n john_n knox_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o that_o crew_n be_v to_o be_v account_v intelligent_a person_n yet_o will_v he_o or_o can_v he_o say_v they_o propose_v their_o doubt_n modest_o to_o the_o church_n sure_o not_o and_o whoever_o say_v so_o will_v easy_o be_v convince_v of_o ignorance_n in_o their_o opinion_n or_o practice_n but_o put_v case_n a_o more_o modest_a propound_v of_o doubt_n have_v be_v use_v as_o the_o bishop_n seem_v to_o wish_v yet_o unless_o the_o doubt_n be_v in_o point_n undecided_a by_o the_o church_n the_o modest_a proposal_n of_o they_o can_v not_o at_o all_o help_n the_o protestant_a cause_n in_o regard_n their_o doubt_n be_v in_o point_n of_o faith_n already_o determine_v for_o such_o by_o authority_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n to_o question_v any_o of_o which_o with_o what_o seem_a modesty_n soever_o be_v sinful_a heretical_a and_o damnable_a his_o exception_n against_o a._n c_n interpretation_n of_o st._n austin_n be_v no_o less_o weak_a the_o holy_a doctor_n affirm_v that_o it_o be_v a_o most_o insolent_a madness_n for_o a_o man_n to_o dispute_v whether_o that_o aught_o to_o be_v to_o be_v do_v which_o be_v 5._o usual_o hold_v and_o do_v by_o the_o whole_a church_n the_o bishop_n first_o except_v that_o there_o be_v not_o a_o word_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n but_o only_o of_o the_o catholic_a yet_o have_v often_o show_v that_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o the_o catholic_a be_v all_o one_o and_o see_v a._n c._n add_v to_o roman_a faith_n the_o practice_n of_o the_o church_n this_o authority_n remain_v still_o entire_a against_o he_o next_o he_o say_v a._n c._n apply_v this_o text_n of_o st._n austin_n to_o the_o roman_a faith_n whereas_o it_o be_v speak_v of_o the_o rite_n and_o ceremony_n of_o the_o church_n but_o first_o i_o answer_v a._n c._n apply_v the_o place_n both_o to_o the_o roman_a faith_n and_o practice_n of_o the_o church_n of_o which_o practice_n the_o place_n be_v most_o proper_o understand_v even_o in_o that_o sense_n which_o the_o bishop_n himself_o give_v to_o the_o word_n second_o if_o it_o be_v madness_n to_o dispute_v against_o the_o rite_n and_o ceremony_n of_o the_o church_n much_o great_a will_v it_o be_v to_o dispute_v against_o any_o point_n of_o faith_n hold_v by_o the_o church_n so_o that_o the_o application_n of_o the_o place_n be_v still_o good_a by_o the_o rule_n à_fw-fr minore_fw-la ad_fw-la majus_fw-la and_o reach_n to_o every_o person_n that_o in_o any_o matter_n whatever_o obstinate_o oppose_v himself_o against_o the_o church_n of_o god_n the_o reason_n may_v be_v because_o there_o be_v always_o some_o point_n or_o matter_n of_o faith_n involve_v in_o every_o universally-practised_a rite_n and_o ceremony_n of_o the_o church_n wherefore_o a_o pertinacious_a defend_n of_o any_o point_n whatsoever_o contrary_a to_o what_o the_o catholic_a church_n teach_v be_v by_o st._n austin_n term_v a_o most_o insolent_a madness_n we_o deny_v not_o but_o a_o right-sobe_a man_n modest_o proceed_v may_v in_o some_o case_n dispute_v a_o point_n with_o the_o roman_a either_o church_n or_o prelate_n as_o irenaeus_n do_v with_o pope_n victor_n in_o the_o controversy_n which_o arise_v towards_o the_o end_n of_o the_o second_o century_n provide_v it_o be_v do_v with_o submission_n and_o profession_n of_o due_a obedience_n to_o that_o church_n and_o prelate_n which_o can_v never_o be_v unless_o the_o dispute_n be_v about_o matter_n as_o yet_o undecided_a by_o the_o church_n 6._o touch_v a._n c's_o illation_n i_o answer_v since_o it_o be_v certain_a the_o whole_a catholic_a or_o roman_a church_n in_o the_o sense_n often_o explicate_v can_v err_v a._n c._n do_v well_o infer_v that_o there_o can_v be_v no_o just_a cause_n to_o make_v a_o divorce_n or_o schism_n from_o it_o the_o relatour_n grant_v that_o the_o whole_a church_n 5._o can_v universal_o err_v in_o absolute_a fundamental_a doctrine_n and_o blame_v bellarmin_n for_o needless_o busy_v himself_o to_o prove_v that_o the_o visible_a church_n can_v never_o fall_v into_o heresy_n but_o i_o answer_v beauties_n labour_n be_v not_o needless_a since_o protestant_n grant_v not_o the_o church_n exempt_v from_o all_o error_n save_v only_o in_o fundamental_o as_o they_o call_v they_o whereas_o bellarmin_n prove_v it_o equal_o of_o all_o fundamental_o or_o not-fundamentals_a moreover_o bellarmin_n well_o observe_v that_o protestant_n general_o grant_v this_o only_a to_o the_o invisible_a church_n whereas_o he_o prove_v 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o visible_a and_o though_o the_o bishop_n in_o the_o margin_n endeavour_v to_o show_v they_o hold_v the_o same_o also_o of_o the_o visible_a church_n yet_o this_o only_a prove_n that_o protestant_n contradict_v one_o another_o which_o we_o deny_v not_o and_o bellarmin_n likewise_o observe_v it_o 1._o elsewhere_o yea_o calvin_n himself_o here_o cite_v by_o the_o bishop_n when_o he_o say_v the_o church_n can_v err_v add_v this_o restriction_n if_o she_o do_v not_o propose_v doctrine_n beside_o the_o scripture_n so_o that_o if_o she_o do_v it_o seem_v according_a to_o he_o she_o may_v err_v but_o i_o must_v confess_v i_o have_v often_o desire_v and_o do_v yet_o much_o long_o to_o know_v which_o be_v doctrine_n absolute_o fundamental_a and_o necessary_a to_o all_o man_n salvation_n according_a to_o the_o opinion_n of_o protestant_n i_o believe_v scarce_o any_o man_n will_v be_v able_a to_o set_v they_o down_o our_o tenet_n be_v that_o the_o catholic_a church_n be_v infallible_a in_o all_o point_n of_o faith_n and_o that_o whatever_o be_v sufficient_o propose_v to_o we_o by_o the_o catholic_a church_n can_v be_v deny_v under_o pain_n of_o damnation_n and_o consequent_o be_v fundamental_a to_o we_o and_o to_o all_o true_a christian_n so_o that_o these_o follow_a word_n of_o the_o bishop_n viz._n that_o she_o may_v err_v in_o superstructure_n and_o deduction_n and_o other_o by_o and_o unnecessary_a truth_n if_o her_o curiosity_n or_o other_o weakness_n carry_v she_o beyond_o or_o cause_v she_o to_o fall_v short_a of_o her_o rule_n be_v injurious_a to_o the_o church_n and_o inconsistent_a with_o that_o prerogative_n of_o holiness_n which_o as_o he_o himself_o in_o this_o very_a place_n confess_v always_o accompany_v the_o true_a church_n 7._o this_o holiness_n consist_v chief_o in_o the_o verity_n of_o faith_n so_o the_o relatour_n himself_o profess_v in_o these_o word_n the_o holiness_n of_o the_o church_n ibidem_fw-la consist_v as_o much_o if_o not_o more_o in_o the_o verity_n of_o the_o faith_n as_o in_o the_o integrity_n of_o manner_n etc._n etc._n insomuch_o that_o if_o the_o church_n fail_v in_o the_o verity_n of_o faith_n she_o can_v be_v no_o long_o holy_a nay_o it_o will_v follow_v that_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n have_v prevail_v much_o against_o she_o contrary_a to_o the_o promse_n of_o christ._n i_o assert_v therefore_o that_o the_o present_a church_n be_v 18._o no_o more_o liable_a to_o error_n through_o curiosity_n or_o weakness_n than_o be_v the_o primitive_a nor_o the_o vicar_n of_o christ_n with_o a_o general_n council_n more_o subject_a to_o err_v upon_o that_o account_n than_o be_v the_o apostle_n of_o christ._n in_o the_o follow_a word_n the_o relatour_n to_o
will_v become_v of_o ecclesiastical_a authority_n immunity_n liberty_n etc._n etc._n every_o heretic_n or_o sectary_n how_o turbulent_a and_o seditious_a soever_o if_o he_o can_v but_o procure_v a_o safe_a conduct_n or_o the_o word_n of_o some_o temporal_a prince_n for_o his_o security_n shall_v be_v exempt_a from_o censure_n may_v preach_v write_v spread_v heresy_n without_o check_n or_o control_v wherefore_o the_o council_n say_v no_o more_o in_o effect_n then_o be_v in_o itself_o evident_a viz._n that_o a_o inseriour_a tribunal_n can_v hinder_v the_o proceed_n of_o a_o superior_a but_o enough_o of_o this_o matter_n to_o his_o lordship_n question_n why_o they_o shall_v go_v to_o rome_n to_o a_o general_n council_n and_o have_v their_o freedom_n of_o speech_n since_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v resolve_v to_o alter_v nothing_o i_o answer_v protestant_n be_v never_o invite_v to_o a_o general_n council_n at_o rome_n to_o reform_v the_o church_n that_o be_v a_o work_n to_o which_o they_o can_v pretend_v no_o competent_a authoriy_n but_o they_o be_v invite_v thither_o to_o be_v better_o instruct_v and_o reclaim_v from_o their_o error_n the_o roman_a church_n be_v sufficient_o authorise_a by_o saint_n paul_n viz._n that_o 1_o though_o a_o angel_n from_o heaven_n shall_v teach_v otherways_o then_o she_o have_v teach_v he_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v believe_v in_o like_a manner_n the_o father_n in_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n may_v with_o good_a reason_n be_v resolve_v firm_o to_o stick_v to_o the_o doctrine_n they_o have_v former_o be_v teach_v by_o the_o catholic_a church_n notwithstanding_o any_o pretend_a difficulty_n or_o objection_n bring_v against_o it_o either_o by_o bishop_n or_o any_o other_o person_n 5._o his_o lordship_n go_v on_o and_o blame_v both_o a._n c._n and_o f._n campian_n 9_o too_o for_o their_o boldness_n in_o say_v that_o no_o good_a answer_n can_v be_v give_v by_o english_a protestant_n why_o they_o refuse_v to_o grant_v a_o public_a disputation_n to_o catholic_n the_o bishop_n think_v it_o a_o very_a good_a answer_n to_o say_v that_o the_o church_n of_o england_n have_v no_o reason_n to_o admit_v of_o a_o public_a dispute_n with_o we_o till_o we_o be_v able_a to_o show_v it_o under_o the_o seal_n and_o power_n of_o rome_n that_o the_o roman_a church_n will_v submit_v to_o a_o three_o who_o may_v be_v a_o indifferent_a judge_n between_o catholic_n and_o protestant_n or_o to_o such_o a_o general_n council_n as_o be_v after_o mention_v but_o i_o will_v fain_o know_v who_o this_o three_o indifferent_a judge_n shall_v be_v if_o he_o prove_v a_o heretic_n or_o schismatique_a he_o will_v hardly_o be_v find_v indifferent_a it_o be_v to_o be_v fear_v he_o will_v be_v partial_a in_o the_o cause_n perchance_o he_o shall_v be_v some_o atheist_n turk_n or_o jew_n judge_n fit_o choose_v indeed_o to_o sit_v upon_o the_o church_n of_o god_n but_o will_v his_o lordship_n think_v you_o have_v take_v it_o for_o a_o satisfactory_a answer_n if_o some_o brownist_n or_o other_o sectary_n in_o his_o time_n upon_o his_o lordship_n vouchsafe_v to_o dispute_v with_o they_o in_o hope_n to_o reduce_v they_o to_o union_n and_o obedience_n shall_v have_v answer_v we_o will_v admit_v a_o dispute_n provide_v your_o lordship_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o your_o prelatical_a church_n of_o england_n will_v accept_v of_o a_o three_o to_o be_v judge_n between_o you_o and_o we_o may_v not_o the_o arrian_n or_o any_o other_o ancient_a heretic_n have_v as_o well_o require_v a_o three_o to_o judge_v between_o they_o and_o catholic_n in_o controversy_n wherein_o they_o differ_v yea_o may_v not_o every_o know_a rebel_n upon_o the_o like_a pretence_n demand_v a_o three_o to_o be_v judge_n between_o he_o and_o the_o king_n his_o sovereign_n and_o in_o case_n of_o refusal_n remain_v obstinate_a in_o his_o rebellion_n even_o as_o well_o as_o the_o protestant_n do_v persist_v in_o their_o spiritual_a disloyalty_n to_o the_o vicar_n of_o christ_n because_o a_o three_o person_n be_v not_o accept_v to_o be_v judge_n between_o he_o and_o they_o to_o what_o he_o intimate_v of_o a_o general_n council_n we_o say_v if_o it_o be_v a_o lawful_a one_o viz._n call_v and_o approve_v by_o the_o pope_n as_o head_n of_o the_o church_n as_o all_o lawful_a general_n council_n hitherto_o have_v be_v we_o shall_v never_o refuse_v to_o submit_v to_o it_o but_o hearty_o wish_v that_o all_o the_o relatour_n party_n will_v do_v the_o same_o chap._n 13._o protestant_n no_o part_n of_o the_o church_n argument_n 1._o how_o the_o separation_n of_o protestant_n from_o the_o church_n be_v make_v 2._o whether_o the_o roman-catholiques_a or_o they_o do_v imitate_v the_o ten_o tribe_n 3._o the_o roman_a doctrine_n concern_v the_o holy_a ghost_n proceed_v etc._n etc._n more_o ancient_a than_o the_o bishop_n pretend_v 4._o in_o what_o case_n particular_a church_n may_v declare_v article_n of_o faith_n 5._o the_o word_n filioque_fw-la when_z add_v to_o the_o creed_n and_o why_o 6._o no_o particular_a church_n have_v power_n to_o reform_v what_o be_v universal_o teach_v and_o receive_v 7._o the_o protestant_n synod_n at_o london_n 1562._o neither_o general_n nor_o free_n 8._o gerson_n and_o all_o his_o other_o proof_n fail_v the_o bishop_n 9_o protestant_n never_o yet_o have_v either_o true_a church_n or_o council_n 1._o we_o be_v again_o tell_v that_o protestant_n do_v not_o depart_v from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n but_o be_v thrust_v out_o by_o she_o without_o cause_n what_o the_o cause_n of_o their_o expulsion_n be_v we_o have_v already_o declare_v and_o shall_v not_o refuse_v here_o again_o brief_o to_o repeat_v it_o be_v because_o by_o their_o heretical_a doctrine_n and_o schismatical_a proceed_n they_o have_v first_o separate_v themselves_o from_o the_o church_n and_o become_v both_o unworthy_a and_o uncapable_a any_o long_a of_o her_o communion_n they_o have_v raise_v a_o new_a separate_a and_o mutinous_a faction_n of_o pretend_a christian_n distinct_a from_o the_o one_o catholic_a or_o general_a body_n of_o the_o church_n they_o have_v choose_v to_o themselves_o new_a pastor_n independent_a of_o any_o ordinary_a and_o lawful_a pastor_n of_o christ_n church_n that_o be_v before_o they_o they_o have_v institute_v new_a rite_n and_o ceremony_n of_o religion_n frame_v new_a liturgy_n or_o form_n of_o divine_a service_n they_o have_v schismatical_o convene_v in_o several_a synod_n or_o conventicle_n and_o there_o broach_v new_a heretical_a confession_n of_o faith_n contrary_a not_o only_o to_o the_o true_a catholic_a faith_n but_o to_o the_o faith_n of_o all_o particular_a church_n what_o ever_o existent_a in_o the_o world_n immediate_o before_o they_o begin_v thus_o protestant_n of_o themselves_o first_o depart_v from_o the_o church_n doctrine_n and_o communion_n and_o persist_v obstinate_a in_o their_o evil_a opinion_n and_o practice_n the_o church_n be_v force_v to_o proceed_v against_o they_o according_a to_o the_o canon_n and_o by_o just_a censure_n cast_v they_o out_o of_o her_o bosom_n lest_o otherwise_o by_o their_o scandalon_n division_n high_a disobedience_n and_o pestilent_a doctrine_n they_o may_v further_o infect_v the_o flock_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v commit_v to_o her_o charge_n the_o bishop_n deny_v he_o ever_o grant_v that_o protestant_n do_v first_o depart_v otherwise_o than_o he_o have_v before_o express_v §_o 21._o num_fw-la 6._o but_o that_o be_v enough_o he_o there_o acknowledge_v that_o a_o actual_a separation_n at_o least_o be_v make_v by_o protestant_n and_o a._n c._n here_o assert_n no_o more_o whether_o this_o actual_a separation_n be_v upon_o a_o just_a cause_n precede_v as_o the_o relatour_n pretend_v be_v a_o thing_n to_o be_v dispute_v between_o a._n c._n and_o he_o although_o indeed_o it_o be_v of_o itself_o clear_a enough_o to_o any_o who_o due_o consider_v it_o that_o protestant_n neither_o have_v nor_o can_v have_v any_o just_a cause_n for_o such_o a_o separation_n as_o a._n c._n pag._n 55_o 56._o and_o all_o catholic_n do_v charge_v they_o with_o for_o it_o be_v a_o separation_n not_o only_o from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n but_o as_o calvin_n himself_o epist._n 14._o confess_v à_fw-la toto_fw-la mundo_fw-la from_o the_o whole_a christian_a world_n and_o such_o a_o separation_n necessary_o involve_v separation_n from_o the_o true_a catholic_a church_n from_o which_o as_o it_o have_v be_v often_o urge_v already_o even_o by_o the_o confession_n of_o protestant_n themselves_z it_o be_v impossible_a there_o shall_v ever_o be_v just_a cause_n to_o separate_v the_o bishop_n grant_v that_o corruption_n in_o manner_n only_o be_v no_o just_a cause_n to_o ibidem_fw-la make_v a_o separation_n from_o the_o church_n of_o god_n yet_o can_v forbear_v to_o have_v a_o fling_n at_o the_o corrupt_a manner_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n quote_v for_o that_o purpose_n dr._n stapleton_n but_o i_o wonder_v our_o adversary_n take_v notice_n of_o
such_o thing_n be_v they_o themselves_o without_o blame_n be_v there_o no_o corruption_n of_o manner_n among_o they_o sure_o yes_o but_o passion_n blind_v they_o and_o they_o be_v like_o those_o who_o be_v bring_v into_o a_o most_o pleasant_a garden_n rich_o beautify_v with_o variety_n of_o useful_a herb_n and_o odoriferous_a flower_n shall_v pass_v over_o all_o this_o and_o only_o entertain_v themselves_o with_o look_v upon_o some_o few_o weed_n which_o their_o curious_a or_o rather_o malicious_a eye_n have_v there_o spy_v for_o they_o take_v no_o notice_n of_o the_o sanctity_n and_o good_a life_n perspicuous_a in_o very_a many_o both_o of_o the_o clergy_n and_o laiety_n in_o the_o roman_a church_n they_o will_v not_o see_v the_o great_a variety_n of_o religious_a order_n wherewith_o the_o garment_n of_o the_o church_n be_v as_o it_o be_v embroider_v astitit_fw-la regina_fw-la à_fw-la dextris_fw-la tuis_fw-la in_o vestitu_fw-la deaurato_fw-la circumdata_fw-la varietate_fw-la psal._n 44._o ver_n 10._o in_o which_o so_o many_o thousand_o of_o both_o sex_n tie_v themselves_o to_o the_o service_n of_o god_n by_o perpetual_a vow_n never_o to_o be_v dissolve_v by_o their_o own_o seek_v pray_v and_o sing_v divine_a hymn_n day_n and_o night_n which_o be_v a_o strange_a unheard_a of_o thing_n among_o protestant_n they_o tell_v we_o of_o many_o pope_n that_o have_v be_v wicked_a but_o they_o never_o mention_v how_o many_o of_o they_o have_v be_v undeniable_o man_n of_o most_o holy_a life_n and_o saintlike_a conversation_n i_o mean_v not_o only_o those_o of_o the_o primitive_a and_o golden_a age_n wherein_o no_o less_o than_o thirty_o or_o more_o successive_o one_o after_o another_o for_o three_o hundred_o year_n together_o and_o upward_o be_v either_o martyr_n or_o glorious_a confessor_n for_o the_o christian_a faith_n but_o even_o of_o late_a and_o in_o this_o our_o iron_n age._n the_o discovery_n of_o some_o few_o mote_n darken_v not_o the_o brightness_n of_o the_o sunshine_n what_o if_o some_o few_o catholic_a author_n be_v of_o opinion_n that_o some_o of_o the_o pope_n as_o private_a doctor_n have_v fall_v into_o heresy_n though_o bellarmin_n and_o other_o deny_v it_o and_o rather_o show_v the_o contrary_a what_o if_o some_o other_o have_v fall_v into_o other_o foul_a crime_n be_v there_o not_o even_o in_o the_o college_n of_o the_o apostle_n one_o that_o deny_v and_o another_o that_o betray_v his_o master_n beside_o it_o may_v be_v worth_a the_o note_n that_o among_o catholic_n though_o sin_n be_v commit_v yet_o they_o be_v seldom_o maintain_v they_o be_v not_o defend_v nor_o justify_v as_o good_a work_n whereas_o among_o protestant_n darkness_n itself_o be_v call_v light_n and_o the_o great_a of_o all_o sin_n viz._n heresy_n schism_n sacrilege_n rebellion_n etc._n etc._n together_o with_o all_o the_o bad_a spawn_n they_o leave_v behind_o they_o be_v cry_v up_o for_o perfect_a virtue_n zeal_n godly_a reformation_n and_o what_o not_o let_v our_o adversary_n therefore_o still_o bark_n they_o shall_v never_o hinder_v sanctity_n of_o life_n from_o be_v a_o mark_n of_o the_o true_a that_o be_v of_o the_o roman_a church_n though_o our_o chief_a quarrel_n with_o they_o for_o the_o present_a be_v for_o endeavour_v to_o brand_v she_o with_o doctrinal_a error_n upon_o which_o account_n they_o 23._o both_o separate_v from_o her_o communion_n and_o attempt_v that_o horrid_a work_n of_o their_o deform_a reformation_n but_o in_o vain_a do_v they_o attempt_v to_o reform_v the_o church_n of_o what_o she_o can_v never_o be_v guilty_a they_o ought_v rather_o to_o reform_v themselves_o and_o disclaim_v those_o error_n which_o with_o heretical_a and_o schismatical_a obstinacy_n they_o have_v so_o long_o maintain_v against_o she_o 2._o but_o i_o return_v to_o his_o lordship_n who_o ground_v himself_o upon_o the_o separation_n of_o the_o ten_o tribe_n aver_v that_o a_o particular_a church_n may_v reform_v itself_o but_o whether_o or_o no_o or_o how_o this_o may_v be_v do_v i_o refer_v my_o reader_n to_o what_o shall_v be_v say_v hereafter_o for_o the_o present_a i_o only_a note_n that_o his_o lordship_n go_v upon_o false_a ground_n thus_o he_o discourse_v be_v it_o not_o lawful_a say_v he_o for_o juda_n to_o reform_v herself_o when_o israel_n 1._o will_v not_o join_v sure_o it_o be_v first_o by_o this_o rhetorical_a interrogation_n and_o answer_n he_o suppose_v that_o juda_n reform_v herself_o which_o be_v false_a for_o juda_n be_v the_o orthodox_n church_n unite_v with_o her_o head_n the_o high_a priest_n and_o not_o taint_v with_o any_o doctrinal_a error_n what_o need_n i_o pray_v be_v there_o of_o her_o reformation_n his_o text_n out_o of_o osee_n 15._o though_o israel_n transgress_v yet_o let_v not_o juda_n sin_n by_o which_o he_o endeavour_v to_o prove_v that_o juda_n reform_v herself_o be_v rather_o against_o then_o for_o he_o because_o in_o any_o indifferent_a man_n judgement_n these_o word_n though_o israel_n transgress_v yet_o at_o least_o let_v not_o juda_n sin_n have_v rather_o this_o sense_n let_v not_o juda_n at_o least_o fall_n into_o schism_n though_o israel_n do_v than_o the_o sense_n follow_v let_v juda_n reform_v herself_o second_o he_o suppose_v that_o juda_n be_v the_o protestant_a party_n which_o be_v also_o false_a for_o if_o you_o be_v juda_n who_o i_o pray_v be_v the_o revolt_a ten_o tribe_n who_o be_v of_o jeroboam_n cabal_n but_o let_v we_o see_v what_o a_o pretty_a parallel_n there_o be_v between_o juda_n and_o you_o juda_n remain_v in_o jerusalem_n you_o leave_v the_o catholic_a jerusalem_n that_o be_v rome_n the_o city_n of_o peace_n in_o who_o bosom_n you_o be_v bring_v up_o juda_n never_o go_v to_o dan_n nor_o bethel_n never_o make_v priest_n of_o baal_n never_o adore_v golden_a calf_n you_o make_v new_a synagogue_n to_o which_o you_o resort_v new_a and_o unheard_a of_o 13._o priest_n without_o altar_n or_o sacrifice_n and_o all_o this_o by_o your_o own_o authority_n juda_n be_v still_o unite_v with_o her_o spiritual_a head_n the_o highpriest_n of_o jerusalem_n nay_o with_o her_o temporal_a head_n also_o king_n roboam_n you_o revolt_v first_o from_o your_o spiritual_a head_n the_o pope_n of_o rome_n and_o afterward_o cast_v off_o also_o your_o loyalty_n due_a to_o temporal_a prince_n as_o appear_v in_o the_o lamentable_a rebellion_n heretofore_o in_o germany_n the_o low_a country_n and_o france_n be_v not_o his_o lordship_n parallel_n then_o between_o juda_n and_o the_o protestant_a party_n very_o pat_o and_o much_o to_o the_o purpose_n he_o will_v have_v have_v far_o better_a success_n have_v he_o compare_v his_o schismatical_a party_n with_o the_o ten_o revolt_a tribe_n of_o israel_n for_o this_o parallel_n come_v very_a home_n not_o only_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o people_n mislead_v but_o also_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o misleader_n even_o in_o england_n jeroboam_n have_v no_o title_n at_o all_o to_o the_o crown_n of_o israel_n queen_n elizabeth_n be_v declare_v illègitimate_a and_o uncapable_a to_o inherit_v her_o father_n crown_n by_o act_n of_o parliament_n 7._o jeroboam_n out_o of_o ungodly_a policy_n the_o better_a to_o secure_v his_o usurp_a crown_n cause_v the_o ten_o tribe_n to_o desert_n the_o old_a and_o true_a religion_n of_o juda_n which_o they_o have_v ever_o since_o their_o be_v god_n people_n most_o constant_o and_o universal_o profess_v queen_n elizabeth_z more_z out_o of_o policy_n and_o reason_n of_o state_n then_o of_o conscience_n to_o fasten_v the_o crown_n of_o england_n upon_o her_o head_n make_v a_o schism_n from_o the_o roman_a church_n abolish_v the_o catholic_a and_o true_a religion_n which_o have_v be_v profess_v in_o england_n for_o so_o many_o hundred_o year_n before_o purposely_o to_o ingratiate_v herself_o with_o the_o common_a people_n which_o easy_o incline_v to_o all_o licentiousness_n and_o utter_o disable_v that_o party_n from_o ever_o prevail_v afterward_o in_o parliament_n which_o former_o have_v vote_v against_o she_o jeroboam_n to_o the_o end_n his_o rebellious_a party_n may_v never_o return_v to_o jerusalem_n and_o be_v unite_v with_o the_o highpriest_n in_o the_o true_a religion_n set_v up_o a_o new_a synagogue_n new_a priest_n new_a sacrifice_n and_o new_a ceremony_n queen_n elizabeth_z to_o the_o end_n her_o schismatical_a party_n may_v never_o piece_v again_o with_o their_o spiritual_a head_n the_o pope_n of_o rome_n set_v on_o foot_n a_o new_a church_n new_a bishop_n new_a pastor_n new_a liturgy_n and_o new_a ceremony_n in_o fine_a jeroboam_n stretch_v forth_o his_o hand_n against_o the_o true_a 1._o prophet_n of_o juda_n and_o command_v he_o to_o be_v apprehend_v queen_n elizabeth_z stretch_v forth_o her_o hand_n not_o against_o one_o only_a but_o all_o priest_n and_o all_o catholic_n witness_v the_o bloody_a persecution_n raise_v against_o they_o in_o her_o day_n when_o it_o be_v make_v treason_n for_o priest_n to_o come_v into_o england_n to_o exercise_v any_o
any_o case_n yet_o it_o be_v not_o absurd_a that_o in_o some_o case_n the_o prince_n or_o mother_n may_v accuse_v witness_n judge_n and_o if_o need_v be_v execute_v justice_n against_o unjust_a and_o rebellious_a subject_n or_o evil_a child_n to_o this_o the_o bishop_n reply_v that_o for_o the_o present_a he_o will_v suppose_v the_o roman_a church_n to_o be_v both_o a_o prince_n and_o a_o mother_n that_o he_o may_v not_o seem_v to_o avoid_v the_o shock_n of_o a._n c.'s_n argument_n but_o add_v withal_o that_o no_o moderate_a prince_n ever_o 2._o think_v it_o just_a or_o take_v upon_o he_o to_o be_v accuser_n witness_v and_o judge_n in_o any_o case_n of_o moment_n against_o his_o subject_n i_o answer_v that_o a_o prince_n be_v liable_a many_o way_n to_o error_n and_o mistake_v in_o judgement_n aught_o in_o equity_n to_o submit_v to_o some_o indifferent_a judge_n in_o all_o matter_n of_o personal_a and_o private_a interest_n between_o he_o and_o his_o subject_n though_o in_o matter_n of_o public_a concern_v as_o of_o treason_n or_o the_o like_a where_o the_o business_n be_v evident_a and_o admit_v not_o the_o delay_n of_o legal_a formality_n i_o think_v it_o will_v not_o be_v account_v unjust_a for_o the_o prince_n to_o be_v accuser_n witness_v and_o judge_v too_o againct_n a_o traitorous_a subject_n however_o the_o church_n may_v lawful_o judge_v her_o accuser_n because_o she_o be_v infallible_a in_o her_o decision_n of_o faith_n and_o have_v full_a authority_n final_o and_o absolute_o to_o determine_v all_o controversy_n of_o that_o nature_n as_o for_o parent_n the_o bishop_n grant_v that_o while_o child_n be_v young_a they_o may_v chastise_v they_o without_o other_o accuser_n or_o witness_n than_o themselves_o and_o the_o child_n be_v not_o withstand_v such_o correction_n to_o give_v they_o reverence_n but_o say_v he_o when_o childen_n be_v grow_v up_o and_o come_v to_o some_o full_a use_n of_o reason_n there_o ought_v to_o be_v remedy_n for_o they_o against_o their_o mother_n if_o she_o forget_v all_o good_a nature_n and_o turn_v stepdame_n unto_o they_o which_o i_o willing_o grant_v and_o leave_v such_o injure_a child_n for_o remedy_n to_o the_o magistrate_n and_o the_o law_n to_o both_o which_o the_o child_n may_v lawful_o appeal_v and_o the_o mother_n ought_v to_o submit_v as_o to_o her_o superior_n but_o the_o catholic_a church_n due_o and_o complete_o represent_v in_o a_o general_n council_n have_v no_o superior_a on_o earth_n neither_o be_v it_o lawful_a for_o any_o private_a christian_a or_o christian_n upon_o any_o pretence_n to_o appeal_v from_o she_o to_o any_o three_o person_n in_o cause_n of_o faith_n the_o case_n therefore_o be_v not_o alike_o second_o i_o deny_v the_o bishop_n supposition_n viz._n that_o the_o roman_a church_n take_v in_o the_o sense_n we_o take_v it_o be_v or_o ever_o can_v be_v such_o a_o stepdame_n to_o her_o child_n or_o so_o far_o forget_v her_o duty_n both_o to_o god_n and_o they_o as_o just_o to_o deserve_v the_o accusation_n which_o protestant_n her_o undutiful_a and_o rebellious_a son_n bring_v against_o she_o and_o therefore_o towards_o they_o as_o well_o as_o towards_o the_o rest_n of_o her_o child_n she_o still_o retain_v the_o right_n of_o a_o mother_n and_o they_o must_v not_o take_v it_o ill_o if_o as_o occasion_n serve_v she_o exercise_v towards_o they_o some_o part_n of_o her_o motherly_a authority_n but_o rather_o bethink_v themselves_o of_o return_v to_o their_o due_a obedience_n and_o conform_v themselves_o to_o that_o holy_a exhortation_n of_o st._n peter_n which_o 2._o for_o their_o better_a content_n i_o shall_v give_v they_o out_o of_o their_o own_o bible_n viz._n that_o lay_v aside_o all_o malice_n and_o all_o guile_n and_o hypocrisy_n and_o envy_n and_o evil_a speaking_n as_o newborn_a babe_n they_o desire_v the_o sincere_a milk_n of_o the_o word_n that_o be_v the_o pure_a uncorrupted_a christian_a catholic_n doctrine_n that_o they_o may_v grow_v thereby_o to_o salvation_n 2._o but_o even_o abstract_v from_o the_o church_n infallibility_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n her_o proceed_n towards_o protestant_n will_v be_v find_v upon_o due_a examination_n most_o just_a for_o though_o a_o prince_n or_o parent_n may_v not_o in_o all_o case_n be_v accuser_n witness_n and_o judge_n of_o their_o subject_n or_o child_n because_o it_o may_v possible_o be_v evident_a that_o they_o tyrannize_v over_o they_o or_o treat_v they_o injurious_o yet_o when_o matter_n of_o fact_n be_v so_o evident_a that_o it_o can_v be_v deny_v by_o their_o respective_a child_n or_o subject_n when_o law_n and_o custom_n of_o the_o whole_a nation_n do_v also_o evident_o declare_v the_o thing_n criminal_a for_o which_o they_o be_v punish_v what_o need_n be_v there_o absolute_o speak_v of_o any_o further_a witness_n or_o judge_n to_o punish_v they_o now_o this_o be_v our_o case_n the_o thing_n for_o which_o the_o roman_a church_n condemn_v and_o punish_v protestant_n be_v clear_o matter_n of_o fact_n viz._n preach_v and_o teach_v such_o doctrine_n as_o the_o church_n forbid_v to_o be_v teach_v actual_a disobedience_n to_o her_o canon_n separate_v themselves_o from_o the_o communion_n of_o other_o catholic_a christian_n oppose_v and_o contradict_v their_o lawful_a pastor_n in_o matter_n concern_v religion_n etc._n etc._n all_o which_o be_v criminal_a action_n and_o clear_o punishable_a not_o only_o by_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o church_n but_o by_o the_o law_n and_o constitution_n of_o every_o catholic_a country_n no_o need_n sure_o of_o accuser_n and_o witness_n where_o the_o offence_n be_v notorious_a well_o therefore_o may_v the_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n who_o be_v their_o proper_a judge_n proceed_v to_o canonical_a sentence_n against_o they_o see_v as_o i_o say_v it_o be_v notorious_o evident_a and_o by_o themselves_o not_o deny_v that_o they_o oppose_v and_o contradict_v not_o only_o the_o public_a doctrine_n and_o belief_n of_o all_o christian_n general_o throughout_o the_o world_n but_o also_o the_o law_n both_o ecclesiastical_a and_o temporal_a statute_n decree_n custom_n and_o practice_n universal_o in_o force_n in_o all_o nation_n where_o they_o begin_v their_o pretend_a reformation_n when_o the_o separatist_n of_o england_n in_o queen_n elizabeth_n or_o king_n james_n his_o time_n pretend_v to_o reform_v the_o protestant_a church-decree_n and_o custom_n in_o england_n and_o call_v for_o a_o judge_n between_o the_o prelate_n and_o they_o do_v the_o then-church-governour_n scruple_n to_o condemn_v and_o punish_v they_o though_o they_o neither_o esteem_v themselves_o infallible_a nor_o to_o act_v by_o any_o infallible_a rule_n for_o their_o commission_n to_o do_v this_o be_v only_o from_o the_o king_n and_o state_n and_o their_o rule_n not_o the_o scripture_n which_o the_o separatist_n pretend_v to_o as_o much_o as_o themselves_o but_o either_o the_o book_n of_o common_a prayer_n or_o the_o thirty_o nine_o article_n or_o the_o queen_n injunction_n and_o book_n of_o canon_n do_v not_o their_o canon_n excommunicate_v all_o that_o deliberate_o oppose_v any_o of_o their_o say_v thirty_o nine_o article_n do_v they_o not_o for_o this_o reason_n ordinary_o summon_v anabaptist_n brownist_n familist_n and_o other_o separatist_n to_o appear_v at_o their_o spiritual_a court_n as_o they_o call_v they_o do_v they_o not_o proceed_v to_o sentence_n of_o excommunication_n and_o other_o censute_v as_o the_o case_n requit_v and_o the_o law_n of_o their_o church_n enable_v they_o to_o do_v nay_o do_v they_o not_o upon_o this_o ground_n oftentimes_o excommunicate_v we_o roman_a catholic_n for_o refuse_v to_o frequent_v their_o church_n do_v they_o not_o bring_v we_o into_o sequestration_n imprisonment_n and_o a_o thousand_o other_o trouble_n will_v they_o hear_v we_o when_o we_o appeal_v either_o to_o scripture_n father_n church_n council_n or_o any_o other_o three_o person_n to_o be_v judge_n between_o they_o and_o we_o behold_v a_o very_a just_a proceed_n when_o they_o fall_v foul_a either_o upon_o we_o or_o their_o own_o separatist_n they_o be_v content_a to_o be_v accuser_n witness_n and_o judge_n but_o when_o they_o be_v call_v to_o justify_v their_o act_n against_o the_o roman_a church_n than_o forsooth_o it_o be_v a_o unjust_a and_o unreasonable_a thing_n then_o they_o call_v for_o a_o three_o person_n to_o judge_v not_o because_o they_o be_v indeed_o willing_a to_o be_v judge_v or_o regulate_v by_o any_o authority_n under_o heaven_n except_o themselves_o but_o because_o they_o know_v that_o a_o competent_a judge_n between_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o they_o distinct_a from_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v impossible_a to_o be_v find_v a._n c._n therefore_o have_v reason_n to_o tell_v the_o bishop_n that_o never_o any_o competent_a judge_n have_v so_o censure_v the_o church_n as_o he_o have_v do_v and_o that_o indeed_o no_o power_n on_o earth_n or_o in_o hell_n itself_o can_v so_o far_o prevail_v against_o the_o
to_o their_o execution_n but_o sure_o one_o and_o a_o chief_a one_o of_o those_o all_z be_v to_o teach_v infallible_o the_o whole_a doctrine_n of_o christ_n gospel_n wherefore_o christ_n be_v still_o present_a with_o his_o minister_n enable_v they_o to_o perform_v this_o so_o important_a a_o work_n when_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o be_v execute_v that_o be_v when_o the_o necessity_n of_o the_o church_n require_v some_o point_n in_o controversy_n among_o christian_n to_o be_v determine_v nor_o will_v that_o conclusion_n hence_o follow_v which_o his_o lordship_n fear_n viz._n that_o all_o the_o sermon_n of_o every_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n will_v be_v infallible_a ibidem_fw-la for_o it_o be_v no_o way_n necessary_a that_o every_o particular_a pastor_n shall_v be_v infallible_a but_o it_o be_v absolute_o necessary_a that_o the_o church_n in_o general_n or_o a_o general_n council_n shall_v be_v infallible_a because_o otherwise_o there_o will_v no_o mean_n be_v leave_v in_o the_o church_n sufficient_a to_o determine_v controversy_n of_o faith_n or_o prevent_v the_o spread_a of_o schism_n and_o heresy_n to_o the_o end_n my_o reader_n may_v the_o better_o conceive_v this_o he_o be_v to_o understand_v there_o be_v divers_a degree_n of_o christ_n presence_n and_o assistance_n in_o reference_n to_o the_o minister_n of_o his_o church_n all_o of_o they_o can_v challenge_v all_o privilege_n but_o must_v be_v content_a with_o those_o that_o proper_o belong_v to_o their_o respective_a state_n and_o condition_n in_o the_o sacred_a hierarchy_n and_o yet_o as_o all_o the_o say_a degree_n be_v ground_v upon_o this_o and_o the_o like_a promise_n of_o our_o saviour_n so_o it_o be_v necessary_a they_o be_v all_o verify_v according_a to_o the_o respective_a necessity_n of_o the_o church_n the_o supreme_a degree_n we_o affirm_v to_o be_v that_o of_o infallible_a assistance_n and_o therefore_o assign_v it_o only_o to_o those_o who_o have_v supreme_a authority_n in_o the_o church_n and_o in_o case_n only_o of_o most_o urgent_a necessity_n for_o prevent_v of_o heresy_n and_o schism_n in_o all_o other_o case_n and_o in_o reference_n to_o all_o other_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n we_o profess_v that_o so_o long_o as_o the_o teach_v and_o govern_v part_n of_o they_o be_v continual_o so_o assist_v by_o christ_n that_o it_o general_o lead_v not_o his_o flock_n into_o error_n in_o faith_n nor_o neglect_v to_o teach_v they_o the_o observation_n of_o all_o thing_n christ_n command_v the_o promise_n be_v sufficient_o perform_v on_o christ_n part_n and_o st._n leo_n word_n in_o omnibus_fw-la 91._o quae_fw-la ministris_fw-la suis_fw-la commisit_fw-la exequenda_fw-la right_o enough_o explicate_v though_o every_o private_a pastor_n become_v not_o a_o prophet_n and_o every_o pulpit_n a_o oracle_n as_o the_o relatour_n vain_o surmize_v the_o three_o place_n urge_v by_o a._n c._n be_v out_o of_o st._n luke_n 22._o 32._o where_o christ_n prayer_n for_o st._n peter_n be_v as_o efficacious_a as_o his_o promise_n both_o of_o they_o imply_v a_o infallibility_n in_o the_o church_n against_o all_o error_n in_o faith_n whatsoever_o the_o word_n be_v these_o simon_n simon_n behold_v satan_n have_v require_v to_o have_v you_o to_o sift_v as_o wheat_n but_o i_o have_v pray_v for_o thou_o that_o thy_o faith_n fail_v not_o and_o thou_o once_o convert_v confirm_v thy_o brethren_n it_o be_v clear_a that_o christ_n here_o pray_v that_o faith_n in_o the_o church_n may_v not_o fail_v either_o by_o pray_v for_o st._n peter_n as_o he_o be_v a_o figure_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n which_o be_v the_o exposition_n of_o the_o parisian_n or_o by_o pray_v immediate_o for_o st._n peter_n person_n and_o mediate_o for_o the_o whole_a church_n which_o he_o represent_v and_o thus_o at_o least_o that_o our_o saviour_n in_o that_o tax_v pray_v for_o the_o whole_a church_n bellarmin_n express_o grant_v in_o the_o very_a beginning_n of_o the_o chapter_n cite_v by_o the_o ivitio_fw-la bishop_n it_o seem_v strange_a therefore_o that_o his_o authority_n shall_v be_v bring_v for_o denial_n of_o our_o saviour_n pray_v here_o for_o the_o church_n the_o prayer_n then_o of_o christ_n extend_v itself_o to_o st._n peter_n and_o his_o successor_n and_o by_o they_o to_o the_o whole_a church_n according_a to_o those_o word_n of_o st._n bernard_n dignum_fw-la namque_fw-la arbitror_fw-la ibi_fw-la potissimum_fw-la resarciri_fw-la damna_fw-la fidei_fw-la innocent_n ubi_fw-la non_fw-la possit_fw-la fides_n sentire_fw-la defectum_fw-la cui_fw-la enim_fw-la alteri_fw-la sedi_fw-la dictum_fw-la est_fw-la aliquando_fw-la ego_fw-la rogavi_fw-la pro_fw-la te_fw-la ut_fw-la non_fw-la deficiat_fw-la fides_fw-la tua_fw-la etc._n etc._n i_o think_v it_o fit_v say_v he_o that_o the_o damage_n in_o faith_n shall_v be_v there_o chief_o repair_v where_o faith_n can_v suffer_v no_o defect_n for_o to_o what_o other_o chair_n be_v it_o ever_o say_v i_o have_v pray_v for_o thou_o that_o thy_o faith_n fail_v not_o take_v therefore_o which_o of_o these_o exposition_n you_o please_v if_o a_o infallible_a assistance_n of_o christ_n be_v once_o grant_v whereby_o his_o church_n be_v sufficient_o preserve_v from_o all_o error_n in_o faith_n whether_o that_o assistance_n be_v immediate_o intend_v in_o this_o prayer_n to_o st._n peter_n and_o his_o successor_n as_o supreme_a teacher_n of_o the_o church_n or_o to_o the_o church_n immediate_o as_o represent_v in_o st._n peter_n yet_o still_o the_o church_n will_v be_v infallible_a by_o virtue_n of_o this_o prayer_n of_o our_o saviour_n 8._o the_o four_o place_n name_v by_o a._n c._n be_v that_o of_o st._n john_n chap._n 14._o 16._o to_o which_o he_o add_v a_o consequent_a place_n john_n 16._o 13._o both_o of_o they_o contain_v another_o promise_n of_o christ_n to_o his_o apostle_n and_o in_o they_o to_o his_o church_n viz._n that_o the_o comforter_n the_o holy_a ghost_n shall_v come_v and_o abide_v with_o they_o for_o ever_o teach_v they_o all_o thing_n etc._n etc._n and_o guide_v they_o into_o all_o truth_n we_o have_v already_o sufficient_o explicate_v these_o place_n in_o proof_n of_o the_o church_n infallibility_n so_o that_o our_o chief_a labour_n at_o present_a shall_v be_v to_o observe_v the_o bishop_n various_a trip_n and_o wind_n in_o his_o review_n of_o they_o first_o he_o say_v these_o promise_n if_o you_o apply_v they_o to_o the_o church_n consist_v of_o all_o believer_n and_o include_v the_o apostle_n be_v absolute_a and_o without_o any_o restriction_n which_o certain_o be_v but_o a_o loose_a assertion_n take_v it_o in_o the_o bishop_n sense_n which_o be_v that_o the_o apostle_n be_v free_a not_o only_o from_o all_o error_n but_o from_o all_o 2._o ignorance_n in_o divine_a thing_n for_o so_o his_o author_n a_o dr._n field_n speak_v who_o he_o cite_v in_o the_o margin_n be_v the_o apostle_n not_o ignorant_a of_o any_o divine_a matter_n why_o then_o do_v st._n paul_n tell_v we_o 1_o cor._n 13._o 9_o we_o know_v in_o part_n do_v the_o apostle_n understand_v the_o whole_a counsel_n of_o god_n concern_v mankind_n why_o then_o do_v the_o same_o apostle_n cry_v out_o rom._n 11._o 33_o 35._o o_o the_o depth_n of_o the_o wisdom_n and_o knowledge_n of_o god_n how_o unsearchable_a be_v his_o judgement_n etc._n etc._n and_o who_o have_v know_v the_o mind_n of_o our_o lord_n second_o if_o these_o promise_n of_o christ_n be_v so_o absolute_a and_o without_o any_o restriction_n in_o regard_n of_o the_o apostle_n to_o what_o purpose_n be_v that_o text_n of_o 15._o theodoret_n cite_v in_o his_o margin_n which_o say_v express_o they_o ought_v to_o be_v limit_v in_o regard_n of_o they_o and_o that_o they_o do_v not_o signify_v the_o apostle_n shall_v be_v lead_v simple_o into_o all_o truth_n but_o into_o all_o truth_n necessary_a or_o expedient_a to_o salvation_n three_o the_o bishop_n have_v limit_v the_o promise_n of_o be_v teach_v and_o lead_v into_o all_o truth_n as_o they_o relate_v to_o the_o present_a church_n only_o to_o truth_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n he_o be_v not_o yet_o satisfy_v but_o add_v another_o limitation_n to_o that_o viz._n direction_n of_o scripture_n against_o this_o truth_n say_v he_o mean_v truth_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n the_o whole_a 5._o catholic_a church_n can_v err_v keep_v herself_o to_o the_o direction_n of_o scripture_n as_o christ_n have_v appoint_v she_o but_o i_o ask_v what_o privilege_n then_o have_v the_o catholic_a church_n in_o these_o promise_n of_o christ_n more_o than_o every_o private_a christian_n sure_o with_o this_o condition_n of_o follow_v the_o direction_n of_o scripture_n there_o be_v none_o of_o the_o faithful_a but_o may_v pretend_v to_o be_v as_o infallible_a as_o the_o church_n four_o they_o must_v be_v limit_v say_v he_o to_o all_o such_o truth_n as_o our_o saviour_n have_v tell_v they_o but_o the_o apostle_n be_v teach_v divers_a thing_n of_o principal_a concernment_n in_o order_n to_o salvation_n by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n
even_o after_o our_o saviour_n ascension_n have_v they_o no_o promise_n of_o divine_a assistance_n in_o the_o delivery_n of_o those_o truth_n thus_o the_o promise_n of_o christ_n come_v to_o nothing_o but_o if_o one_o shall_v ask_v some_o of_o this_o bishop_n disciple_n how_o their_o master_n prove_v that_o the_o promise_n of_o christ_n be_v to_o be_v limit_v to_o truth_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n they_o must_v answer_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d ipse_fw-la dixit_fw-la just_a as_o pythagoras_n his_o pupil_n do_v of_o old_a when_o they_o be_v urge_v to_o give_v a_o reason_n of_o their_o master_n philosophy_n for_o where_o i_o pray_v have_v christ_n so_o limit_v his_o promise_n where_o do_v the_o apostle_n teach_v we_o to_o understand_v they_o with_o such_o limitation_n neither_o do_v we_o extend_v they_o to_o truth_n whole_o unnecessary_a or_o to_o curious_a truth_n as_o the_o bishop_n seem_v willing_a to_o insinuate_v no_o we_o tell_v he_o there_o be_v a_o medium_n a_o middle_a sort_n of_o truth_n between_o those_o which_o be_v absolute_o necessary_a for_o all_o man_n salvation_n and_o those_o which_o be_v simple_o unnecessary_a or_o curious_a we_o extend_v these_o promise_n to_o all_o truth_n of_o this_o middle_a sort_n that_o be_v to_o all_o such_o truth_n as_o the_o church_n find_v consonant_a to_o catholic_a faith_n and_o piety_n and_o necessary_a to_o be_v define_v for_o the_o prevent_n of_o heresy_n schism_n and_o dissension_n among_o christian_n but_o i_o pray_v observe_v our_o adversary_n unparalleled_a subtlety_n in_o the_o close_a of_o all_o christ_n say_v he_o have_v promise_v that_o the_o spirit_n shall_v lead_v his_o church_n into_o all_o truth_n but_o he_o have_v no_o where_o promise_v that_o the_o church_n shall_v follow_v her_o leader_n what_o a_o rare_a acumen_fw-la be_v here_o then_o belike_o to_o lead_v and_o to_o follow_v be_v not_o relative_n in_o protestant_a logic_n but_o let_v they_o take_v heed_n it_o be_v to_o be_v fear_v they_o will_v be_v find_v relative_n and_o that_o if_o the_o devil_n chance_v to_o lead_v any_o of_o they_o to_o hell_n for_o their_o heresy_n and_o other_o sin_n nothing_o will_v help_v but_o they_o must_v infallible_o follow_v he_o and_o i_o wish_v that_o all_o his_o lordship_n party_n will_v due_o consider_v this_o as_o often_o as_o they_o interpret_v scripture_n after_o this_o manner_n chap._n 15._o of_o the_o roman_a church_n authority_n argument_n 1._o whether_o protestant_n beside_o reform_v themselves_o do_v not_o condemn_v the_o church_n of_o error_n in_o faith_n 2._o that_o st._n peter_n have_v a_o large_a and_o high_a power_n over_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n than_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n 3._o the_o history_n or_o matter_n of_o fact_n touch_v the_o donatists_n appeal_n to_o the_o emperor_n relate_v and_o how_o little_a it_o advantage_n the_o bishop_n or_o his_o party_n 4._o st._n gregory_n authority_n concern_v the_o question_n of_o appeal_n and_o the_o civil_a law_n notable_o wrest_v by_o the_o bishop_n 5._o st._n wilfrid_n archbishop_n of_o york_n twice_o appeal_v to_o rome_n and_o be_v twice_o restore_v to_o his_o bishopric_n by_o virtue_n of_o the_o pope_n authority_n 6._o the_o african_a church_n always_o in_o communion_n with_o the_o roman_a 7._o st._n peter_n place_v his_o sea_n at_o rome_n no_o ground_n of_o his_o successor_n supremacy_n 8._o why_o the_o emperor_n for_o some_o time_n ratify_v the_o pope_n election_n 9_o inferior_a clerk_n only_o forbid_v by_o the_o canon_n to_o appeal_v to_o rome_n 10._o the_o pope_n never_o accuse_v by_o the_o ancient_n of_o falsify_v the_o canon_n and_o that_o he_o may_v just_o cite_v the_o canon_n of_o sardica_n as_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a by_o the_o precedent_n discourse_v it_o appear_v that_o the_o bishop_n main_a task_n for_o a_o long_a time_n have_v be_v to_o prove_v that_o the_o general_n church_n may_v err_v and_o stand_v in_o need_n of_o reformation_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n this_o be_v 7._o the_o thing_n which_o a._n c._n most_o constant_o deny_v but_o his_o lordship_n find_v the_o proof_n of_o this_o not_o so_o easy_a by_o little_a and_o little_o be_v fain_o to_o slide_v into_o another_o question_n concern_v the_o power_n particular_a church_n have_v to_o reform_v themselves_o think_v by_o this_o to_o authorize_v the_o pretend_a reformation_n of_o his_o particular_a english_a church_n to_o this_o purpose_n be_v his_o many_o allegation_n of_o the_o council_n of_o carthage_n rome_n gangre_n toledo_n etc._n etc._n §_o 24._o num_fw-la 5._o which_o how_o they_o succeed_v the_o reader_n may_v easy_o have_v perceive_v by_o our_o answer_n in_o the_o precedent_a chapter_n 1._o he_o go_v on_o with_o his_o wont_a art_n which_o be_v to_o allege_v his_o adversary_n with_o not_o overmuch_o sincerity_n a._n c._n treat_v the_o abovesaid_a question_n touch_v the_o power_n particular_a church_n have_v to_o reform_v themselves_o and_o not_o deny_v but_o in_o some_o case_n particular_a church_n may_v reform_v what_o be_v amiss_o even_o in_o matter_n of_o faith_n for_o great_a caution_n add_v these_o express_a word_n pag._n 58._o when_o the_o need_n of_o reformation_n be_v only_a questionable_a particular_a pastor_n and_o church_n may_v not_o condemn_v other_o of_o error_n in_o faith_n but_o these_o word_n when_o the_o need_n be_v only_o questionable_a the_o bishop_n think_v fit_a to_o leave_v out_o to_o what_o end_n but_o to_o have_v some_o colour_n to_o contradict_v his_o adversary_n and_o abuse_v his_o reader_n let_v we_o now_o see_v whether_o his_o lordship_n party_n be_v far_o from_o judge_v and_o condemn_v other_o church_n as_o he_o seem_v to_o make_v they_o by_o his_o simile_n a_o man_n that_o live_v religious_o say_v he_o do_v not_o by_o and_o by_o sit_v in_o judgement_n and_o condemn_v with_o his_o mouth_n all_o profane_a liver_n but_o yet_o while_o he_o be_v silent_a his_o very_a life_n condemn_v they_o first_o of_o all_o who_o be_v these_o man_n that_o live_v so_o religious_o they_o who_o to_o propagate_v the_o gospel_n the_o better_o marry_v wife_n contrary_a to_o the_o canon_n and_o bring_v forsooth_o scripture_n for_o it_o 18._o non_fw-fr est_fw-fr bonum_fw-la esse_fw-la hominem_fw-la solum_fw-la and_o again_o 5._o numquid_fw-la non_fw-la habemus_fw-la potestatem_fw-la mulierem_fw-la sororem_fw-la circumducendi_fw-la who_o be_v these_o man_n i_o say_v that_o live_v so_o religious_o they_o who_o pull_v down_o monastery_n both_o of_o religious_a man_n and_o woman_n they_o who_o cast_v altar_n to_o the_o ground_n they_o who_o partly_o banish_v priest_n partly_o put_v they_o to_o death_n they_o who_o deface_v the_o very_a tomb_n of_o saint_n and_o will_v not_o permit_v they_o to_o rest_v even_o after_o they_o be_v dead_a these_o be_v the_o man_n who_o live_v so_o religious_o but_o who_o be_v according_a to_o his_o lordship_n profane_a liver_n they_o who_o stick_v close_o to_o st._n peter_n and_o his_o successor_n they_o who_o for_o the_o catholic_a faith_n endure_v most_o willing_o sequestration_n imprisonment_n banishment_n death_n itself_o they_o in_o a_o word_n who_o suffer_v persecution_n for_o righteousness_n these_o in_o his_o lordship_n opinion_n be_v profane_a liver_n i_o return_v now_o to_o the_o relatour_n man_n that_o live_v so_o religious_o do_v these_o man_n never_o condemn_v the_o catholic_a church_n but_o by_o their_o virtuous_a life_n which_o you_o have_v see_v sure_o they_o condemn_v she_o not_o only_o by_o quite_o dissonant_n live_v but_o also_o by_o word_n of_o mouth_n by_o their_o pen_n nay_o by_o public_a and_o solemn_a censure_n witness_v to_o go_v no_o further_o the_o protestant_a church_n of_o england_n artic._n 19_o where_o she_o condemn_v of_o error_n not_o only_o the_o church_n of_o antioch_n and_o alexandria_n but_o even_o of_o rome_n itself_o again_o rogers_n in_o his_o allow_a analyse_v and_o article_n comment_v upon_o the_o say_a article_n pronounce_v that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v not_o only_o shameful_o err_v in_o matter_n of_o faith_n but_o that_o the_o whole_a visible_a church_n may_v likewise_o err_v from_o time_n to_o time_n and_o have_v err_v in_o doctrine_n as_o well_o as_o conversation_n do_v they_o not_o say_v artic._n 21._o that_o general_a council_n may_v err_v and_o have_v err_v even_o in_o thing_n pertain_v to_o god_n do_v they_o not_o pronounce_v of_o purgatory_n pray_v to_o saint_n worship_n of_o image_n and_o relic_n etc._n etc._n artic._n 22._o of_o transubstantiation_n artic._n 28._o and_o of_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n artic._n 31._o respective_o that_o they_o be_v fond_a thing_n vain_o invent_v by_o man_n contrary_a to_o god_n word_n blasphemous_a fable_n and_o dangerous_a deceit_n though_o it_o be_v as_o clear_a as_o the_o sun_n at_o noonday_n that_o both_o these_o and_o many_o other_o point_n deny_v and_o reject_v by_o protestant_n be_v the_o doctrine_n and_o
unto_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n we_o grant_v to_o you_o the_o use_n of_o the_o pall_n the_o proper_a badge_n or_o sign_n of_o archiepiscopal_a dignity_n to_o wear_v it_o when_o you_o say_v mass_n and_o we_o condescend_v that_o you_o ordain_v twelve_o bishop_n under_o your_o jurisdiction_n yet_o so_o that_o the_o bishop_n of_o london_n be_v consecrate_v hereafter_o by_o a_o synod_n of_o his_o own_o bishop_n and_o receive_v the_o pall_n from_o this_o holy_a apostolical_a sea_n wherein_o 〈◊〉_d by_o the_o authority_n of_o god_n do_v now_o serve_v our_o will_n likewise_o be_v that_o you_o send_v a_o bishop_n to_o york_n to_o who_o we_o intend_v also_o to_o give_v the_o pall_n that_o be_v to_o make_v he_o a_o archbishop_n but_o to_o you_o shall_v be_v subject_a not_o only_o the_o bishop_n you_o make_v and_o he_o of_o york_n but_o all_o the_o bishop_n of_o britain_n behold_v here_o the_o original_a charter_n as_o i_o may_v say_v of_o the_o primacy_n of_o canterbury_n in_o this_o letter_n and_o mandate_n of_o the_o pope_n it_o be_v found_v nor_o can_v it_o with_o any_o colour_n of_o reason_n be_v draw_v from_o other_o origin_n by_o virtue_n of_o this_o grant_n have_v all_o the_o succeed_a bishop_n of_o that_o sea_n enjoy_v the_o dignity_n and_o authority_n of_o primate_fw-la in_o this_o nation_n which_o be_v a_o thing_n so_o out_o of_o question_n that_o true_o i_o see_v not_o how_o it_o be_v possible_a either_o to_o excuse_v the_o relatour_n gross_a ignorance_n if_o he_o know_v it_o not_o or_o his_o great_a ingratitude_n if_o know_v it_o he_o will_v be_v so_o unworthy_a as_o to_o belie_v his_o own_o knowledge_n and_o dissemble_v his_o obligation_n to_o that_o pope_n who_o have_v do_v so_o much_o for_o the_o sea_n of_o canterbury_n 6._o in_o the_o follow_a page_n his_o lordship_n spend_v not_o a_o few_o line_n in_o 11._o vain_a labour_v to_o prove_v a_o separation_n of_o the_o african_a church_n from_o that_o of_o rome_n chief_o out_o of_o two_o instrument_n find_v in_o several_a edition_n of_o the_o council_n which_o seem_v to_o testify_v as_o much_o one_o be_v a_o epistle_n or_o supplication_n rather_o which_o eulalius_n bishop_n of_o 〈◊〉_d be_v suppose_v to_o have_v write_v to_o pope_n boniface_n the_o second_o in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o african_a church_n desire_v a_o reconciliation_n with_o the_o roman_a and_o disclaim_v the_o separation_n make_v between_o they_o for_o many_o year_n before_o the_o other_o be_v a_o epistle_n of_o the_o same_o pope_n boniface_n the_o second_o to_o eulalius_n patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n wherein_o he_o impart_v the_o good_a news_n of_o the_o african_a church_n submission_n and_o reconciliation_n with_o the_o roman_a and_o rejoice_v with_o he_o upon_o the_o occasion_n but_o i_o answer_v as_o the_o bishop_n himself_o stand_v not_o to_o maintain_v the_o credit_n of_o these_o epistle_n which_o he_o know_v to_o be_v general_o question_v by_o catholic_n nor_o answer_v the_o exception_n which_o baronius_n and_o bellarmin_n bring_v against_o they_o so_o the_o fin_n use_n he_o make_v of_o they_o be_v to_o very_o little_a purpose_n to_o the_o first_o part_n of_o his_o dilemma_n viz._n if_o the_o say_a instrument_n be_v false_a than_o pope_n boniface_n the_o second_o and_o his_o accomplice_n at_o rome_n or_o some_o for_o they_o be_v notorious_a forger_n etc._n etc._n we_o deny_v the_o consequence_n there_o be_v no_o necessity_n to_o affirm_v that_o either_o boniface_n the_o second_o or_o his_o accomplice_n be_v forger_n of_o these_o pretend_a instrument_n but_o rather_o the_o contrary_n in_o regard_v such_o a_o forgery_n will_v present_o have_v be_v discover_v and_o exclaim_v against_o see_v in_o that_o pope_n time_n no_o such_o man_n as_o eulalius_n be_v bishop_n of_o alexandria_n but_o one_o timotheus_n a_o heretic_n suprà_fw-la and_o great_a opposer_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n neither_o can_v the_o other_o eulalius_n he_o speak_v of_o be_v then_o a_o catholic_a bishop_n of_o carthage_n it_o be_v a_o time_n when_o there_o be_v not_o one_o catholic_a bishop_n in_o all_o africa_a as_o to_o his_o close_a word_n or_o some_o for_o they_o if_o he_o mean_v they_o do_v it_o by_o the_o pope_n consent_n it_o be_v answer_v under_o the_o word_n accomplice_n but_o if_o he_o intend_v no_o more_o but_o that_o they_o be_v forge_v by_o some_o body_n it_o be_v very_o true_a but_o what_o will_v it_o concern_v the_o roman_a sea_n if_o some_o other_o feign_v a_o epistle_n in_o the_o pope_n name_n be_v there_o not_o some_o that_o feign_a epistle_n and_o other_o write_n in_o the_o apostle_n name_n be_v that_o the_o apostle_n fault_n or_o do_v it_o bring_v any_o just_a prejudice_n either_o to_o the_o authority_n or_o integrity_n of_o their_o write_n to_o the_o second_o part_n viz._n if_o these_o instrument_n be_v true_a than_o the_o church_n of_o africa_n do_v separate_v from_o the_o roman_a and_o the_o separation_n continue_v for_o above_o a_o hundred_o year_n i_o answer_v till_o it_o be_v evince_v that_o these_o instrument_n be_v true_a we_o can_v suffer_v by_o they_o but_o his_o lordship_n be_v so_o far_o from_o offer_v at_o this_o that_o he_o do_v not_o so_o much_o as_o positive_o affirm_v it_o he_o show_v we_o indeed_o several_a edition_n of_o the_o council_n wherein_o these_o instrument_n be_v insert_v but_o it_o be_v well_o know_v that_o the_o edition_n of_o council_n cite_v by_o the_o bishop_n have_v many_o other_o apocryphal_a and_o unauthentique_fw-la write_n insert_v in_o they_o beside_o these_o the_o reason_n of_o this_o may_v be_v because_o the_o compiler_n of_o those_o time_n do_v not_o take_v upon_o they_o to_o be_v censurer_n of_o what_o they_o find_v upon_o ancient_a record_n but_o only_o to_o be_v faithful_a publisher_n of_o the_o record_n whence_o it_o be_v that_o as_o they_o do_v not_o except_v against_o these_o instrument_n no_o more_o then_o against_o other_o of_o like_a nature_n so_o neither_o do_v they_o express_o approve_v they_o but_o mere_o publish_v what_o they_o find_v upon_o record_n leave_v the_o further_a scrutiny_n to_o the_o learned_a but_o as_o for_o the_o schismatical_a separation_n of_o the_o african_a church_n from_o the_o roman_a argue_v out_o of_o the_o say_a instrument_n it_o be_v inconsistent_a with_o the_o truth_n of_o story_n and_o confute_v by_o many_o pregnant_a and_o undeniable_a instance_n which_o prove_v that_o the_o african_n notwithstanding_o the_o contest_v in_o the_o six_o council_n of_o carthage_n touch_v matter_n of_o appeal_n be_v always_o in_o true_a catholic_a communion_n with_o the_o roman_a church_n even_o during_o the_o term_n of_o this_o pretend_a separation_n witness_v in_o the_o first_o place_n st._n austin_n himself_o who_o though_o he_o be_v present_a and_o subscribe_v as_o it_o be_v most_o probable_a to_o that_o epistle_n of_o the_o council_n of_o carthage_n which_o give_v all_o the_o offence_n yet_o after_o his_o death_n pope_n celestin_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o the_o bishop_n of_o france_n use_v many_o expression_n of_o high_a commendation_n profess_v gal._n that_o he_o both_o live_v and_o dyid_v in_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n witness_v likewise_o mauritan_n pope_n leo_n the_o first_o who_o for_o some_o time_n of_o the_o say_v pretend_a separation_n have_v his_o legate_n in_o africa_n order_v ecclesiastical_a matter_n there_o and_o receive_v lupicinus_n a_o african_a bishop_n appeal_n unto_o he_o witness_v also_o eugenius_n a_o catholic_a bishop_n of_o carthage_n who_o in_o his_o answer_n to_o the_o 〈◊〉_d require_v a_o disputation_n with_o he_o touch_v matter_n of_o faith_n vandal_n 〈◊〉_d the_o roman_a church_n to_o be_v the_o head_n of_o all_o church_n and_o that_o he_o ought_v not_o to_o enter_v into_o dispute_n with_o any_o concern_v such_o matter_n without_o first_o consult_v that_o church_n witness_v fulgentius_n another_o of_o the_o most_o eminent_a bishop_n of_o the_o african_a church_n live_v also_o within_o the_o say_a term_n who_o testimony_n be_v already_o cite_v chap._n 10._o §_o 5._o pag._n 131_o 132._o witness_v the_o two_o african_a bishop_n restitutus_n and_o octavius_n who_o be_v present_a at_o the_o council_n of_o rome_n under_o colon._n pope_n hilarius_n about_o the_o year_n 467._o and_o subscribe_v the_o canon_n one_o whereof_o be_v that_o none_o ought_v to_o violate_v the_o constitution_n of_o the_o nicen_n council_n nor_o the_o deoree_n of_o the_o apostolic_a sea_n witness_v further_a pope_n gregory_n himself_o etc._n who_o in_o several_a of_o his_o epistle_n acknowledge_v the_o bishop_n of_o carthage_n and_o other_o african_a bishop_n to_o have_v be_v at_o that_o time_n in_o communion_n with_o he_o yea_o particular_o praise_v they_o for_o their_o respect_n to_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a and_o assert_n his_o own_o right_n of_o receive_v appeal_n from_o all_o part_n of_o christendom_n as_o necessity_n require_v witness_v final_o no_o less_o
have_v open_v the_o father_n meaning_n viz._n that_o not_o only_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n as_o it_o be_v a_o particular_a church_n keep_v entire_o the_o apostolical_a tradition_n but_o that_o in_o it_o all_o the_o faithful_a every_o where_o do_v keep_v the_o same_o apostolical_a tradition_n by_o be_v in_o unity_n and_o communion_n with_o she_o thus_o you_o may_v see_v to_o what_o shift_n and_o upon_o what_o shelf_n even_o learned_a man_n be_v often_o drive_v by_o maintain_v error_n from_o the_o premise_n i_o argue_v thus_o all_o the_o faithful_a every_o where_o must_v of_o necessity_n have_v recourse_n to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n propter_fw-la potentiorem_fw-la principalitatem_fw-la by_o reason_n of_o she_o more_o powerful_a principality_n this_o be_v st._n irenaeus_n his_o proposition_n but_o there_o can_v be_v no_o necessity_n they_o all_o shall_v have_v recourse_n to_o that_o church_n by_o reason_n of_o she_o more_o powerful_a principality_n if_o her_o say_a power_n exend_v not_o to_o they_o all_o this_o be_v evident_a to_o reason_n ergo_fw-la this_o more_o powerful_a principality_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n must_v needs_o extend_v to_o all_o the_o faithful_a every_o where_o and_o not_o only_o to_o those_o of_o the_o suburbicary_n church_n or_o patriarchal_a diocese_n of_o rome_n as_o the_o bishop_n plead_v 7._o little_o therefore_o be_v it_o to_o his_o advantage_n what_o he_o pretend_v to_o show_v out_o of_o ruffinus_n viz_o that_o the_o extent_n of_o the_o roman_a patriarchate_n be_v contain_v within_o the_o island_n and_o precinct_n of_o italy_n since_o it_o be_v inconsistent_a with_o the_o vote_n of_o all_o antiquity_n and_o give_v st._n irenaeus_n the_o lie_n nay_o it_o make_v her_o jurisdiction_n incomparable_o less_o than_o any_o of_o the_o other_o patriarchal_a church_n yea_o of_o much_o less_o extent_n than_o many_o metropolitan_a church_n to_o which_o i_o add_v it_o be_v contrary_a even_o to_o the_o common_a compute_v of_o protestant_n themselves_z who_o often_o grant_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n to_o have_v be_v patriarch_n of_o the_o west_n which_o undeniable_o contain_v many_o vast_a province_n and_o nation_n beside_o italy_n and_o the_o island_n about_o it_o wherefore_o as_o the_o bishop_n can_v not_o altogether_o deny_v but_o the_o word_n suburbicary_n be_v undue_o add_v by_o ruffinus_n in_o the_o translation_n of_o the_o nicene_n canon_n so_o i_o say_v it_o be_v necessary_a to_o understand_v it_o unless_o we_o will_v contradict_v all_o the_o world_n not_o in_o the_o bishop_n sense_n as_o signify_v only_o the_o church_n of_o italy_n and_o the_o island_n thereto_o belong_v but_o as_o general_o signify_v all_o church_n and_o city_n any_o way_n suburdinate_a to_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n which_o be_v at_o that_o time_n know_v as_o also_o to_o this_o day_n by_o the_o name_n of_o urbs_fw-la or_o city_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d by_o way_n of_o excellency_n not_o as_o it_o relate_v to_o the_o perfect_a or_o governor_n of_o rome_n in_o regard_n of_o who_o ordinary_a jurisdiction_n we_o confess_v it_o command_v only_o those_o few_o place_n about_o it_o in_o italy_n but_o as_o it_o relate_v to_o the_o emperor_n himself_o in_o which_o sense_n the_o word_n suburbicary_n right_o signify_v all_o city_n or_o church_n whatsoever_o within_o the_o roman_a empire_n as_o the_o word_n romania_n also_o ancient_o signify_v the_o whole_a imperial_a territory_n as_o card._n perron_n clear_o prove_v upon_o this_o subject_a this_o exposition_n of_o ruffinus_n his_o term_n suburbicary_n want_v not_o ground_n even_o in_o his_o own_o text_n who_o make_v as_o it_o be_v a_o contradistinction_n between_o egypt_n and_o the_o suburbicary_n church_n now_o under_o egypt_n he_o comprehend_v lybia_n pentapolis_n and_o ethiopia_n which_o be_v without_o the_o precinct_n of_o the_o empire_n be_v commit_v to_o the_o power_n and_o care_n of_o the_o patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n but_o all_o suburbicary_n city_n that_o be_v such_o as_o be_v under_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n as_o it_o be_v imperial_a be_v leave_v under_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o he_o by_o reason_n of_o his_o seat_n at_o rome_n be_v still_o to_o be_v their_o chief_a prelate_n and_o to_o have_v a_o more_o immediate_a and_o ordinary_a care_n over_o they_o than_o he_o have_v over_o those_o other_o city_n which_o be_v out_o of_o the_o empire_n though_o as_o st._n peter_n successor_n he_o have_v the_o universal_a care_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o that_o full_a potentiorem_fw-la principalitatem_fw-la which_o st._n irenaeus_n ascribe_v unto_o he_o 8._o touch_v calvin_n conjecture_n that_o recourse_n be_v therefore_o have_v to_o rome_n because_o at_o that_o time_n the_o roman_a church_n be_v more_o constant_a to_o the_o truth_n and_o less_o distract_v with_o dangerous_a opinion_n it_o be_v whole_o inept_v for_o it_o be_v false_a that_o before_o st._n irenaeus_n time_n rome_n be_v more_o constant_a in_o the_o faith_n than_o the_o other_o church_n of_o greece_n and_o africa_n have_v be_v see_v the_o african_a church_n be_v then_o as_o free_v from_o heresy_n as_o rome_n 9_o the_o bishop_n here_o give_v himself_o a_o great_a deal_n of_o trouble_n to_o wrest_v 14._o from_o we_o a_o text_n or_o two_o of_o epiphanius_n touch_v the_o authority_n of_o st._n peter_n and_o his_o successor_n wherein_o though_o he_o grant_v somewhat_o beyond_o his_o wont_a reservedness_n that_o st._n peter_n person_n be_v understand_v in_o that_o text_n of_o the_o gospel_n super_fw-la hanc_fw-la petram_fw-la aedificabo_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la etc._n etc._n matth._n 16._o 18._o yet_o will_v he_o by_o no_o mean_n be_v persuade_v to_o extend_v it_o any_o further_a than_o his_o person_n but_o we_o affirm_v it_o be_v clear_a even_o by_o the_o text_n of_o st._n epiphanius_n that_o this_o promise_v make_v by_o christ_n to_o st._n peter_n be_v derive_v to_o his_o successor_n for_o first_o after_o the_o word_n 1622._o et_fw-fr porte_fw-fr inferorum_fw-la etc._n etc._n the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v not_o prevail_v against_o it_o this_o father_n immediate_o add_v quarum_fw-la portarum_fw-la nomine_fw-la hereses_n &_o haeresewn_n conditores_fw-la intelliguntur_fw-la by_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n heresy_n and_o the_o author_n of_o heresy_n be_v understand_v that_o be_v to_o say_v all_o heresy_n and_o all_o author_n of_o heresy_n whatever_o shall_v arise_v such_o indefinite_a proposition_n be_v equivalent_a to_o universal_a true_a it_o be_v the_o bishop_n omit_v these_o last_o word_n by_o his_o wont_a et_fw-la cetera_fw-la however_o since_o he_o acknowledge_v that_o by_o the_o firm_a rock_n whereon_o our_o saviour_n according_a to_o epiphanius_n promise_v to_o build_v his_o church_n st._n peter_n be_v personal_o understand_v we_o shall_v easy_o make_v good_a our_o argument_n from_o it_o and_o solve_v his_o objection_n for_o he_o must_v consequent_o acknowledge_v the_o church_n so_o found_v on_o st._n peter_n as_o by_o virtue_n of_o that_o foundation_n it_o be_v to_o prevail_v against_o all_o heresy_n and_o inventor_n of_o heresy_n that_o shall_v at_o any_o time_n impugn_v the_o church_n faith_n which_o can_v not_o possible_o be_v verify_v in_o case_n christ_n promise_n be_v to_o be_v limit_v to_o st._n peter_n person_n alone_o for_o else_o why_o may_v not_o heresy_n and_o heretic_n after_o st._n peter_n death_n prevail_v against_o the_o church_n yea_o so_o far_o prevail_v as_o utter_o to_o extinguish_v the_o true_a faith_n wherefore_o the_o bishop_n long_a discourse_n by_o way_n of_o gloss_n on_o this_o and_o some_o other_o text_n of_o the_o same_o father_n concern_v we_o not_o at_o all_o for_o it_o be_v once_o grant_v that_o st._n peter_n be_v personal_o to_o uphold_v the_o church_n in_o the_o profession_n of_o the_o true_a faith_n as_o its_o principal_a foundation_n under_o christ_n we_o have_v our_o desire_n nevertheless_o we_o deny_v that_o he_o have_v any_o ground_n to_o limit_v to_o st._n peter_n only_o those_o eulogium_n give_v he_o by_o st._n epiphanius_n and_o not_o allow_v they_o extendible_a to_o his_o successor_n so_o far_o as_o they_o be_v necessary_a for_o their_o uphold_v the_o church_n also_o in_o the_o profession_n of_o true_a faith_n wherefore_o as_o st._n peter_n authority_n be_v by_o the_o bishop_n own_o confession_n right_o urge_v by_o epiphanius_n to_o prove_v the_o godhead_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n against_o the_o heretic_n that_o deny_v it_o so_o doubtless_o by_o virtue_n of_o the_o same_o promise_n and_o institution_n of_o christ_n may_v and_o aught_o the_o authority_n of_o his_o successor_n be_v urge_v in_o time_n to_o come_v in_o proof_n of_o any_o other_o contest_v article_n or_o point_n of_o faith_n though_o therefore_o we_o affirm_v not_o as_o the_o relatour_n be_v frequent_o impose_v upon_o we_o that_o st._n peter_n and_o his_o successor_n be_v by_o virtue_n of_o this_o text_n to_o govern_v the_o church_n as_o prince_n and_o monarch_n yet_o we_o say_v that_o by_o virtue_n
thereof_o they_o so_o govern_v the_o church_n as_o we_o may_v secure_o rely_v on_o they_o in_o matter_n of_o faith_n at_o least_o in_o such_o as_o they_o definitive_o teach_v and_o promulgate_v to_o the_o whole_a church_n but_o in_o the_o close_a the_o bishop_n undertake_v a_o strange_a task_n he_o will_v prove_v that_o epiphanius_n in_o most_o express_a term_n and_o that_o twice_o repeat_v ibidem_fw-la make_v not_o st._n peter_n but_o st._n james_n successor_n to_o our_o lord_n in_o the_o principality_n of_o his_o church_n but_o he_o every_o way_n mistake_v for_o first_o in_o the_o place_n he_o allege_v there_o be_v not_o a_o word_n of_o the_o church_n principality_n second_o he_o mere_o equivocate_v in_o the_o word_n ante_fw-la caeteros_fw-la omnes_fw-la which_o signify_v only_a priority_n of_o time_n because_o st._n james_n be_v the_o first_o of_o the_o apostle_n that_o be_v ordain_v bishop_n of_o any_o particular_a place_n viz._n at_o jerusalem_n as_o both_o 22._o eusebius_n and_o st._n jacobo_n hierome_n witness_n which_o be_v call_v christ_n throne_n because_o our_o saviour_n himself_o have_v there_o preach_v the_o gospel_n and_o be_v principal_o and_o immediate_o send_v thither_o nor_o be_v it_o unusual_a in_o ancient_a ecclesiastical_a writer_n to_o give_v the_o title_n of_o christ_n throne_n to_o any_o episcopal_a chair_n or_o seat_v whatsoever_o to_o the_o relatours_n assertion_n that_o we_o all_o say_v but_o no_o man_n prove_v that_o 15._o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n succeed_v in_o all_o st._n peter_n prerogative_n which_o be_v ordinary_a and_o belong_v to_o he_o as_o a_o bishop_n though_o not_o in_o the_o extraordinary_a which_o belong_v to_o he_o as_o a_o apostle_n i_o answer_v bellarmin_n beside_o many_o catholic_a divine_n do_v not_o only_o say_v but_o prove_v that_o the_o pope_n succeed_v st._n peter_n not_o only_o in_o the_o prerogative_n that_o belong_v to_o he_o as_o a_o bishop_n but_o in_o all_o prerogative_n apostolical_a which_o be_v of_o ordinary_a necessity_n to_o continue_v in_o the_o church_n for_o its_o government_n and_o preservation_n of_o the_o true_a faith_n as_o his_o disputation_n upon_o this_o subject_a sufficient_o show_v to_o any_o man_n that_o read_v he_o with_o a_o unbiased_a judgement_n pontificatum_fw-la for_o can_v any_o thing_n be_v more_o express_a than_o these_o word_n lib._n 1._o de_fw-fr rome_n pont._n cap._n 9_o mortuis_fw-la autem_fw-la apostolis_n apostolica_fw-la authoritas_fw-la in_o solo_fw-la petri_n successore_fw-la permansit_fw-la when_o the_o apostle_n be_v dead_a the_o authority_n apostolical_a reside_v only_o in_o st._n peter_n successor_n be_v this_o to_o say_v the_o pope_n succeed_v st._n peter_n only_o in_o his_o episcopal_a prerogative_n i_o add_v that_o bellarmin_n in_o the_o same_o chapter_n go_v on_o show_v the_o difference_n between_o st._n peter_n successor_n and_o the_o successor_n of_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n viz._n that_o they_o be_v bishop_n only_o and_o that_o their_o authority_n reach_v not_o to_o a_o jurisdiction_n over_o the_o whole_a church_n as_o that_o of_o st._n peter_n successor_n do_v who_o be_v therefore_o style_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o 〈◊〉_d apostolical_a bishop_n and_o their_o sea_n the_o sea_n apostolic_a and_o their_o office_n the_o apostolate_a see_v his_o word_n in_o the_o margin_n all_o which_o he_o there_o prove_v by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n wherefore_o the_o bishop_n 〈◊〉_d very_o large_o upon_o his_o reader_n credulity_n while_o he_o quote_v bellarmin_n for_o this_o assertion_n that_o the_o pope_n succeed_v not_o st._n peter_n in_o any_o prerogative_n that_o belong_v to_o he_o as_o a_o apostle_n 10._o however_o the_o relatour_n be_v so_o kind_a to_o st._n peter_n as_o to_o allow_v he_o a_o primacy_n of_o order_n but_o that_o be_v not_o so_o much_o as_o the_o father_n allow_v he_o for_o by_o his_o own_o confession_n doctor_n reinolds_n against_o hart_n chap._n 5._o prove_v at_o large_a that_o the_o father_n allow_v st._n peter_n and_o that_o in_o the_o way_n of_o prerogative_n above_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n not_o only_a primacy_n of_o order_n but_o authority_n and_o principality_n too_o which_o sure_o imply_v power_n and_o i_o will_v have_v any_o man_n show_v we_o some_o good_a author_n of_o ancient_a time_n in_o who_o either_o the_o latin_a word_n primatus_fw-la or_o the_o greek_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d answer_v to_o it_o be_v attribute_v to_o any_o ecclesiastical_a person_n as_o signify_v only_a precedency_n in_o order_n and_o place_n and_o not_o a_o true_a superior_a authority_n and_o jurisdiction_n over_o those_o in_o relation_n to_o who_o such_o a_o person_n be_v say_v to_o have_v primacy_n or_o to_o be_v primate_n be_v not_o the_o contrary_n most_o evident_a viz._n that_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d always_o signify_v pre-eminence_n in_o authority_n and_o primatus_fw-la more_o especial_o pre-eminence_n or_o superiority_n in_o ecclesiastical_a government_n be_v the_o primate_n of_o any_o christian_a nation_n no_o more_o than_o one_o that_o have_v precedence_n in_o place_n do_v that_o title_n signify_v no_o more_o in_o england_n then_o that_o the_o archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n ought_v to_o have_v the_o chief_a place_n in_o the_o convocation-house_n have_v not_o all_o catholic_a author_n yea_o and_o many_o protestant_n too_o ever_o think_v they_o signify_v the_o supreme_a authority_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n both_o sufficient_o and_o proper_o by_o the_o word_n primatus_fw-la be_v there_o not_o many_o volume_n extant_a on_o both_o side_n de_fw-fr primatu_fw-la romani_fw-la pontificis_fw-la be_v their_o author_n ever_o tax_v for_o speak_v ambiguous_o in_o use_v that_o term_n wherefore_o if_o st._n peter_n have_v primacy_n he_o have_v also_o supremacy_n and_o if_o his_o primacy_n be_v universal_a over_o all_o his_o supremacy_n be_v so_o too_o since_o they_o both_o signify_v the_o same_o thing_n viz._n a_o eminency_n of_o authority_n and_o power_n in_o one_o above_o the_o rest_n again_o st._n hierome_n speak_v of_o this_o very_a subject_n say_v jovinian_a primatus_fw-la petro_n datur_fw-la ut_fw-la capite_fw-la constituto_fw-la '_o schismatis_fw-la tollatur_fw-la occasio_fw-la can_v any_o man_n in_o his_o wit_n think_v that_o by_o primatus_fw-la he_o mean_v only_o precedency_n of_o order_n be_v that_o sufficient_a to_o prevent_v schism_n if_o therefore_o a_o true_a and_o proper_a primacy_n be_v grant_v by_o protestant_n to_o st._n peter_n successor_n also_o before_o and_o above_o all_o other_o bishop_n and_o patriarch_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n as_o divers_a of_o they_o grant_v the_o father_n do_v it_o must_v be_v also_o grant_v that_o supremacy_n of_o power_n over_o all_o bishop_n and_o patriarch_n of_o the_o church_n be_v due_a unto_o he_o now_o that_o primacy_n or_o supremacy_n of_o right_n belong_v to_o st._n peter_n successor_n no_o less_o then_o to_o himself_o i_o evince_n by_o this_o follow_a argument_n whatsoever_o power_n or_o jurisdiction_n be_v necessary_a in_o the_o apostle_n time_n for_o the_o due_a government_n of_o the_o church_n in_o order_n to_o prevention_n of_o schism_n and_o procurement_n of_o unity_n must_v à_fw-la fortiori_fw-la be_v necessary_a in_o all_o succeed_a age_n but_o the_o power_n and_o jurisdiction_n of_o one_o viz._n st._n peter_n or_o his_o successor_n over_o all_o christian_n whatsoever_o not_o except_v even_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o be_v necessary_a in_o the_o apostle_n time_n for_o the_o due_a government_n of_o the_o church_n in_o order_n to_o prevention_n of_o schism_n and_o procurement_n of_o unity_n ergo_fw-la the_o power_n and_o jurisdiction_n of_o one_o viz._n st._n peter_n or_o his_o successor_n be_v à_fw-la fortiori_fw-la necessary_a in_o all_o succeed_a age_n the_o major_n viz._n that_o whatsoever_o power_n and_o jurisdiction_n be_v necessary_a in_o the_o apostle_n time_n for_o the_o due_a government_n of_o the_o church_n etc._n etc._n must_v needs_o be_v necessary_a in_o all_o succeed_a age_n be_v clear_a from_o mere_a inspection_n into_o those_o succeed_a age_n to_o this_o present_a where_o it_o be_v visible_a by_o what_o degree_n the_o great_a zeal_n of_o the_o primitive_a christian_n have_v decay_v and_o cool_v even_o to_o this_o day_n to_o the_o production_n of_o infinite_a schism_n and_o heresy_n which_o must_v needs_o ere_o this_o have_v overwhelm_v and_o utter_o confound_v the_o church_n have_v not_o our_o bless_a saviour_n that_o divine_a lawgiver_n lay_v that_o original_a platform_n of_o church-government_n which_o be_v to_o serve_v we_o as_o a_o pattern_n to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n our_o saviour_n christ_n not_o so_o much_o regard_v the_o need_n of_o it_o during_o the_o apostle_n life_n as_o the_o necessity_n his_o all-seeing_a wisdom_n foresee_v will_v be_v of_o it_o in_o all_o future_a age_n the_o minor_a be_v prove_v effective_o by_o the_o precedent_a discourse_n where_o st._n peter_n primacy_n that_o be_v as_o we_o there_o show_v his_o supremacy_n over_o all_o
against_o this_o monarchical_a government_n they_o rather_o prove_v our_o assertion_n be_v ordain_v by_o sixtus_n the_o first_o in_o favour_n of_o such_o bishop_n as_o be_v call_v to_o rome_n or_o otherwise_o force_v to_o repair_v thither_o to_o the_o end_n they_o may_v without_o scruple_n be_v receive_v into_o their_o own_o diocese_n at_o their_o return_n have_v also_o decree_v that_o without_o such_o letter_n communicatory_a none_o in_o such_o case_n shall_v be_v admit_v now_o what_o can_v more_o clear_o prove_v that_o the_o pope_n have_v power_n over_o all_o bishop_n and_o all_o diocese_n in_o the_o church_n than_o the_o make_n of_o such_o a_o decree_n we_o deny_v not_o but_o the_o like_o literae_fw-la communicatoriae_fw-la be_v mutual_o send_v from_o one_o patriarch_n to_o another_o but_o as_o for_o that_o even_o equal_a and_o brotherly_a way_n whereby_o the_o bishop_n pretend_v that_o these_o letter_n be_v send_v reciprocal_o from_o other_o patriarch_n and_o bishop_n to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n for_o admit_v any_o into_o episcopal_n or_o priestly_a office_n that_o go_v from_o they_o to_o he_o as_o i_o find_v nothing_o of_o it_o in_o baronius_n who_o yet_o handle_v the_o matter_n at_o large_a so_o i_o doubt_v not_o but_o it_o be_v a_o mere_a chimaera_n and_o have_v the_o bishop_n please_v with_o all_o his_o profess_a diligence_n in_o the_o search_n to_o have_v afford_v we_o any_o instance_n in_o a_o business_n of_o such_o importance_n there_o will_v doubtless_o have_v appear_v a_o manifest_a difference_n and_o inequality_n between_o they_o viz._n that_o those_o send_v to_o the_o pope_n from_o other_o prelate_n be_v mere_o testimonial_a to_o assure_v he_o that_o the_o person_n bring_v they_o be_v capable_a of_o his_o communion_n whereas_o those_o from_o the_o pope_n to_o other_o bishop_n be_v not_o only_o testimonial_a but_o mandatory_a or_o such_o as_o enjoin_v the_o reception_n and_o restitution_n of_o the_o bringer_n to_o such_o place_n and_o office_n in_o the_o church_n as_o he_o pretend_v to_o witness_v beside_o many_o other_o example_n in_o ecclesiastical_a story_n the_o case_n of_o st._n athanasius_n and_o those_o other_o catholic_n bishop_n persecute_v and_o expel_v their_o sea_n by_o the_o arrian_n and_o restore_v by_o virtue_n of_o the_o pope_n letter_n communicatory_a but_o shall_v the_o pope_n voluntary_o submit_v to_o the_o equity_n of_o his_o own_o law_n that_o be_v not_o only_o allow_v such_o letter_n to_o be_v write_v from_o other_o to_o he_o as_o he_o write_v to_o they_o but_o also_o permit_v they_o to_o be_v so_o far_o of_o force_n as_o equity_n require_v what_o will_v this_o prejudice_v his_o just_a authority_n it_o may_v argue_v indeed_o the_o humility_n of_o his_o spirit_n but_o can_v sure_o be_v no_o argument_n against_o his_o right_n and_o power_n to_o do_v otherwise_o if_o he_o see_v cause_n chap._n 18._o a_o continuation_n of_o the_o defence_n of_o the_o pope_n authority_n argument_n 1._o gerson_n book_n de_fw-fr auferibilitate_fw-la papae_fw-la prove_v nothing_o for_o the_o bishop_n or_o his_o party_n 2._o st._n hierome_n and_o optatus_n expound_v 3._o the_o pope_n spiritual_a sovereignty_n not_o prejudicial_a to_o that_o of_o temporal_a prince_n 4._o bishop_n of_o divine_a institution_n yet_o subordinate_a to_o the_o pope_n by_o the_o law_n of_o christ._n 5._o pope_n innocent_n simile_n of_o the_o sun_n and_o moon_n in_o relation_n to_o the_o spiritual_a and_o civil_a government_n a_o usual_a allegory_n 6._o why_o the_o book_n of_o the_o law_n be_v ancient_o deliver_v to_o the_o prince_n 7._o the_o pope_n never_o pretend_v to_o subject_a the_o emperor_n to_o himself_o in_o temporal_n 8._o the_o jesuit_n unjust_o charge_v by_o the_o bishop_n 9_o occam_n no_o competent_a judge_n in_o the_o question_n of_o the_o pope_n authority_n 10._o the_o definition_n of_o the_o council_n of_o florence_n touch_v that_o matter_n 1._o but_o before_o we_o pass_v any_o further_a it_o will_v not_o be_v amiss_o to_o look_v back_o 8._o and_o examine_v more_o narrow_o the_o bishop_n marginal_a allegation_n gerson_n that_o famous_a chancellor_n of_o paris_n and_o undoubted_a catholic_a write_v a_o book_n in_o troublesome_a time_n entitle_v de_n auferibilitate_fw-la papae_fw-la whence_o the_o relatour_n conclude_v that_o the_o author_n be_v of_o opinion_n the_o church_n may_v continue_v in_o very_o good_a be_v without_o a_o monarchical_a head_n a_o strange_a illation_n and_o contrary_a to_o what_o gerson_n express_o teach_v in_o the_o very_a treatise_n the_o bishop_n cite_v the_o drift_n of_o gerson_n discourse_n be_v to_o show_v how_o many_o several_a way_n the_o pope_n may_v be_v take_v away_o that_o be_v deprive_v of_o his_o office_n and_o cease_v to_o be_v pope_n as_o to_o his_o own_o person_n so_o that_o the_o church_n pro_fw-la tempore_fw-la till_o another_o be_v choose_v shall_v be_v without_o her_o visible_a head_n but_o he_o no_o where_o teach_v that_o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n settle_v in_o a_o monarchical_a way_n or_o rule_v by_o a_o pope_n lawful_o choose_v can_v be_v absolute_o abolish_v by_o any_o power_n on_o earth_n but_o his_o judgement_n be_v clear_a even_o beyond_o all_o dispute_n for_o the_o contrary_n hear_v gerson_n own_o word_n and_o you_o will_v see_v to_o what_o great_a purpose_n and_o with_o what_o fidelity_n our_o adversary_n sometime_o allege_v author_n auferibilis_fw-la est_fw-la say_v he_o aut_fw-la mutabilis_fw-la lege_fw-la stante_fw-la quaelibet_fw-la 8._o politia_fw-la civilis_fw-la monarchica_fw-la seu_fw-la regalis_fw-la ut_fw-la fiat_fw-la aristocratica_fw-la at_o non_fw-la sic_fw-la de_fw-fr ecclesiâ_fw-la quae_fw-la in_o uno_n monarcha_fw-la supremo_fw-la per_fw-la universum_fw-la fundata_fw-la est_fw-la à_fw-la christo_fw-la quia_fw-la nullam_fw-la aliam_fw-la politiam_fw-la instituit_fw-la christus_fw-la 20._o immutabiliter_fw-la monarchic_a be_o &_o quodammodò_fw-la regalem_fw-la nisi_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la in_o english_a thus_o any_o etc._n civil_a monarchy_n or_o regal_a government_n may_v be_v take_v away_o or_o change_v into_o a_o aristocracy_n the_o law_n still_o continue_v in_o force_n but_o it_o be_v not_o so_o in_o the_o church_n which_o be_v found_v by_o christ_n in_o one_o supreme_a monarch_n throughout_o the_o world_n because_o christ_n institute_v no_o other_o government_n unchangeable_o monarchical_a and_o as_o it_o be_v regal_a beside_o the_o church_n can_v any_o word_n be_v more_o express_a in_o proof_n of_o the_o authority_n of_o one_o over_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o yet_o forsooth_o from_o the_o bare_a title_n of_o the_o book_n the_o relatour_n will_v infer_v that_o in_o gerson_n judgement_n the_o church_n be_v not_o by_o any_o command_n or_o institution_n of_o christ_n monarchical_a 2._o neither_o have_v the_o bishop_n much_o better_a success_n in_o his_o allegation_n of_o st._n hierome_n who_o in_o his_o epistle_n to_o evagrius_n enveigh_v as_o his_o manner_n be_v somewhat_o vehement_o against_o one_o that_o seem_v to_o prefer_v deacon_n before_o priest_n proceed_v so_o far_o in_o vindication_n of_o the_o dignity_n and_o honour_n of_o priesthood_n that_o he_o almost_o equalize_v it_o with_o the_o office_n of_o bishop_n plain_o assert_v that_o diocesan_n bishop_n have_v no_o more_o belong_v to_o they_o jure_fw-la divino_fw-la or_o by_o the_o institution_n of_o christ_n than_o priest_n save_v only_o the_o power_n of_o ordination_n that_o the_o riches_n wealth_n and_o amplitude_n of_o their_o respective_a diocese_n make_v not_o one_o bishop_n great_a than_o another_o but_o that_o all_o bishop_n where_o ever_o they_o be_v place_v be_v of_o one_o and_o the_o same_o merit_n and_o degree_n in_o regard_n of_o ecclesiastical_a priesthood_n which_o speak_v precise_o of_o the_o office_n and_o power_n episcopal_n in_o itself_o be_v very_o true_a for_o a_o large_a or_o lesser_a diocese_n make_v not_o one_o man_n more_o or_o less_o a_o bishop_n than_o another_o st._n austin_n be_v as_o much_o a_o bishop_n at_o little_a hippo_n as_o aurelius_n be_v at_o great_a carthage_n but_o this_o be_v no_o impediment_n to_o the_o additional_a or_o accessary_a collation_n whether_o by_o divine_a or_o humane_a institution_n of_o some_o special_a and_o more_o eminent_a power_n and_o authority_n upon_o the_o bishop_n of_o one_o diocese_n then_o of_o another_o as_o we_o say_v there_o be_v confer_v jure_fw-la divino_fw-la upon_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n as_o he_o be_v st._n peter_n successor_n and_o jure_fw-la ecclesiastico_fw-la upon_o many_o other_o bishop_n viz._n archbishop_n metropolitan_o primate_fw-la etc._n etc._n who_o by_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o church_n exercise_n authority_n over_o many_o bishop_n who_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o power_n mere_o episcopal_a be_v equal_a to_o they_o st._n hierome_n therefore_o when_o he_o say_v ubicunque_fw-la fuerit_fw-la episcopus_fw-la sive_fw-la romae_fw-la sive_fw-la eugubii_n sive_fw-la constantinopoli_fw-it sive_fw-la rhegii_fw-la evagrium_fw-la sive_fw-la alexandria_n sive_fw-la tanis_n ejusdem_fw-la meriti_fw-la ejusdem_fw-la est_fw-la &_o sacerdotii_fw-la speak_v not_o of_o the_o
pope_n as_o he_o be_v pope_n or_o in_o respect_n of_o that_o supereminent_a authority_n which_o belong_v to_o he_o as_o saint_n peter_n successor_n but_o only_o compare_v he_o with_o another_o private_a bishop_n in_o respect_n of_o mere_a character_n or_o power_n of_o a_o bishop_n as_o bishop_n only_o and_o as_o he_o do_v not_o the_o facto_fw-la speak_v of_o the_o pope_n as_o successor_n of_o st._n peter_n so_o be_v it_o certain_a that_o the_o jure_v he_o can_v not_o speak_v any_o thing_n to_o the_o prejudice_n of_o that_o part_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n authority_n without_o contradict_v and_o condemn_v himself_o not_o only_o in_o his_o epistle_n to_o pope_n damasus_n already_o cite_v where_o he_o profess_v that_o to_o be_v out_o of_o the_o pope_n communion_n be_v to_o be_v a_o alien_n from_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n but_o also_o in_o his_o commentary_n on_o the_o 13._o psalm_n where_o he_o call_v st._n peter_n head_n of_o the_o church_n and_o epist._n ad_fw-la demetriad_n virg._n where_o he_o style_v the_o pope_n successor_n of_o the_o apostolic_a chair_n and_o speak_v to_o the_o same_o purpose_n in_o divers_a other_o place_n of_o his_o lucif_n work_n but_o now_o the_o bishop_n to_o give_v a_o home-blow_n as_o he_o imagine_v to_o the_o pope_n authority_n over_o the_o whole_a church_n pretend_v to_o bring_v a_o great_a and_o undoubted_a rule_n give_v by_o optatus_n who_o tell_v we_o the_o church_n be_v in_o 9_o the_o commonwealth_n not_o the_o commonwealth_n in_o the_o church_n whence_o he_o positive_o conclude_v it_o impossible_a that_o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n shall_v be_v monarchical_a for_o say_v he_o no_o emperor_n or_o king_n will_v endure_v another_o king_n within_o his_o dominion_n to_o be_v great_a than_o himself_o since_o the_o very_a endure_a it_o make_v he_o that_o endure_v it_o upon_o the_o matter_n no_o monarch_n but_o the_o force_n of_o this_o argument_n will_v present_o vanish_v if_o we_o but_o consider_v that_o these_o two_o kingdom_n be_v of_o different_a nature_n the_o one_o spiritual_a the_o other_o temporal_a the_o one_o exercise_v only_o in_o such_o thing_n as_o concern_v the_o worship_n of_o god_n and_o the_o eternal_a salvation_n of_o soul_n the_o other_o in_o affair_n that_o concern_v this_o world_n alone_o and_o consequent_o do_v not_o of_o their_o own_o nature_n hinder_v but_o help_v one_o another_o where_o they_o be_v right_o administer_v neither_o must_v it_o come_v under_o debate_n whether_o the_o administration_n of_o the_o spiritual_a monarchy_n ought_v to_o be_v endure_v or_o not_o see_v christ_n have_v so_o ordain_v it_o nor_o will_v the_o relatour_n i_o suppose_v have_v urge_v this_o argument_n have_v he_o well_o reflect_v on_o the_o person_n of_o our_o saviour_n who_o as_o the_o bishop_n himself_o will_v not_o deny_v be_v whilst_o he_o live_v on_o earth_n most_o true_o and_o proper_o the_o visible_a monarch_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n his_o kingdom_n whether_o the_o king_n of_o the_o earth_n will_v endure_v it_o or_o not_o again_o be_v it_o not_o in_o a_o manner_n the_o same_o thing_n in_o regard_n of_o temporal_a king_n to_o have_v have_v the_o apostle_n universal_a governor_n over_o all_o christian_n as_o if_o some_o one_o have_v be_v a_o monarch_n or_o chief_a among_o they_o and_o yet_o the_o bishop_n can_v in_o his_o own_o principle_n deny_v but_o temporal_a king_n be_v bind_v to_o endure_v this_o and_o do_v actual_o endure_v it_o without_o unk_v themselves_o thereby_o nay_o be_v it_o not_o as_o prejudicial_a to_o their_o temporal_a crown_n title_n and_o prerogative_n to_o have_v all_o their_o people_n together_o with_o themselves_o subject_a to_o the_o decree_n of_o a_o lawful_a general_n council_n which_o the_o bishop_n deny_v not_o as_o to_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o decree_n of_o some_o one_o chief_a bishop_n 3._o last_o who_o see_v not_o that_o the_o force_n of_o this_o argument_n be_v utter_o break_v by_o the_o daily_a experience_n we_o have_v of_o the_o contrary_a to_o what_o our_o adversary_n pretend_v for_o instance_n do_v not_o the_o two_o great_a christian_a king_n of_o france_n and_o spain_n endure_v it_o nay_o do_v not_o all_o the_o world_n see_v that_o they_o do_v not_o only_o endure_v it_o but_o maintain_v the_o authority_n and_o government_n of_o such_o a_o spiritual_a monarch_n as_o we_o speak_v of_o in_o the_o very_a midst_n of_o their_o dominion_n and_o be_v it_o not_o evident_a they_o prosper_v so_o well_o under_o it_o that_o it_o will_v be_v no_o less_o than_o dotage_n to_o contend_v that_o the_o endure_v it_o be_v a_o diminution_n of_o their_o majesty_n our_o adversary_n reflection_n upon_o this_o particular_a by_o way_n of_o answer_n be_v not_o only_o injurious_a to_o those_o two_o great_a monarch_n but_o destructive_a of_o his_o own_o argument_n for_o he_o tell_v we_o the_o pope_n power_n be_v of_o little_a esteem_n in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o these_o two_o catholic_a prince_n further_o ibidem_fw-la than_o to_o serve_v their_o own_o turn_n of_o he_o which_o they_o do_v say_v he_o to_o their_o great_a advantage_n thus_o what_o the_o two_o great_a catholic_a prince_n of_o christendom_n profess_v to_o do_v upon_o the_o account_n of_o faith_n and_o conscience_n the_o relatour_n have_v the_o confidence_n to_o tell_v we_o they_o do_v it_o mere_o on_o the_o score_n of_o policy_n and_o for_o temporal_a end_n though_o he_o plain_o contradict_v himself_o in_o this_o assertion_n since_o he_o tell_v we_o but_o just_o now_o the_o endure_a such_o a_o monarchy_n make_v he_o that_o endure_v it_o no_o monarch_n you_o see_v at_o once_o both_o his_o civility_n towards_o christian_a prince_n and_o his_o constancy_n to_o himself_o moreover_o i_o wonder_v the_o relatour_n can_v not_o see_v that_o this_o argument_n the_o church_n be_v within_o the_o commonwealth_n ergo_fw-la subordinate_a unto_o it_o have_v it_o any_o force_n will_v conclude_v as_o much_o against_o the_o aristocratical_a government_n of_o the_o church_n for_o which_o he_o so_o much_o plead_v as_o the_o monarchical_a for_o how_o i_o pray_v can_v the_o bishop_n of_o so_o many_o different_a kingdom_n and_o state_n when_o the_o good_a of_o the_o church_n do_v necessary_o require_v it_o convene_v in_o a_o general_n council_n or_o authoritative_o declare_v what_o ought_v to_o be_v believe_v when_o matter_n of_o faith_n be_v question_v or_o how_o shall_v they_o otherwise_o then_o precarious_o cause_n their_o decision_n to_o be_v receive_v through_o the_o whole_a church_n if_o either_o there_o be_v no_o supreme_a spiritual_a governor_n at_o all_o or_o he_o bind_v as_o it_o be_v to_o ask_v prince_n leave_v to_o do_v what_o belong_v to_o his_o office_n be_v not_o a_o general_n council_n as_o much_o within_o the_o commonwealth_n as_o the_o pope_n if_o therefore_o the_o pope_n in_o the_o administration_n of_o his_o office_n be_v any_o way_n subject_a de_fw-fr jure_fw-la to_o the_o authority_n of_o temporal_a prince_n how_o can_v a_o general_n council_n be_v absolute_a and_o independent_a of_o the_o same_o authority_n in_o the_o execution_n of_o they_o thus_o you_o see_v how_o by_o impugn_v the_o monarchical_a government_n of_o christ_n church_n he_o in_o effect_n overthrow_v all_o church-government_n whatsoever_o even_o that_o which_o himself_o will_v seem_v to_o approve_v it_o remain_v therefore_o full_o prove_v that_o the_o external_a government_n of_o the_o church_n on_o earth_n be_v monarchical_a not_o pure_o and_o absolute_o but_o mix_v as_o have_v be_v already_o declare_v neither_o do_v we_o style_v the_o pope_n monarch_n of_o the_o church_n but_o the_o deputy_n or_o vicar_n general_n of_o christ_n that_o be_v his_o chief_z bishop_n by_o who_o he_o govern_v his_o church_n in_o chief_a he_o be_v neither_o king_n nor_o lord_n of_o the_o church_n but_o the_o chief-servant_n of_o it_o a_o steward_n of_o christ_n family_n yea_o a_o fellow-servant_n with_o other_o bishop_n to_o one_o and_o the_o same_o master_n yet_o the_o care_n of_o the_o whole_a family_n be_v commit_v to_o he_o and_o but_o part_n of_o it_o to_o other_o bishop_n who_o govern_v by_o commission_n from_o christ_n with_o he_o but_o under_o he_o 4._o this_o due_o consider_v what_o the_o relatour_n object_n out_o of_o the_o council_n of_o antioch_n st._n cyprian_n and_o bellarmin_n for_o the_o power_n of_o bishop_n come_v just_a to_o nothing_o for_o we_o acknowledge_v bishop_n to_o have_v a_o portion_n jure_fw-la divino_fw-la in_o the_o government_n of_o christ_n flock_n they_o be_v no_o less_o chief_a officer_n of_o christ_n than_o the_o pope_n though_o not_o in_o all_o respect_v equal_a to_o he_o or_o so_o absolute_a as_o to_o govern_v without_o dependence_n on_o he_o and_o it_o seem_v strange_a the_o bishop_n shall_v attempt_v to_o prove_v out_o of_o bellarmin_n that_o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n militant_a be_v not_o monarchical_a in_o the_o sense_n
civil_a affair_n which_o be_v another_o aspersion_n the_o bishop_n lay_v upon_o they_o gregory_n the_o seven_o and_o innocent_a ibidem_fw-la the_o three_o be_v indeed_o very_o prudent_a man_n and_o worthy_a champion_n of_o the_o church_n to_o assert_v her_o just_a liberty_n but_o they_o never_o endeavour_v to_o subject_v the_o emperor_n to_o themselves_o in_o temporal_a matter_n and_o it_o have_v be_v more_o for_o our_o adversary_n credit_v instead_o of_o false_o pretend_v it_o to_o be_v plain_a in_o history_n that_o they_o do_v so_o to_o have_v give_v we_o at_o least_o some_o one_o good_a proof_n of_o it_o can_v any_o such_o thing_n be_v solid_o conclude_v from_o the_o allegory_n of_o the_o sun_n and_o moon_n upon_o which_o the_o relatour_n so_o long_o insist_o and_o make_v so_o many_o unsignificant_a reflection_n that_o they_o will_v better_o become_v a_o person_n the_o moon_n have_v particular_o wrought_v upon_o than_o a_o primate_n of_o england_n 8._o the_o relatour_n can_v not_o leave_v his_o digressive_a discourse_n without_o give_v a_o lash_n to_o the_o jesuit_n by_o will_v they_o to_o leave_v their_o practise_v to_o advance_v the_o greatness_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o emperor_n but_o i_o wonder_v he_o can_v so_o easy_o believe_v that_o man_n of_o understanding_n as_o he_o stick_v not_o to_o acknowledge_v jesuit_n to_o be_v shall_v by_o vow_n deprive_v themselves_o of_o the_o riches_n and_o pleasure_n of_o this_o world_n with_o design_n to_o make_v the_o pope_n and_o emperor_n great_a especial_o see_v that_o without_o breach_n of_o a_o oath_n peculiar_a to_o their_o order_n they_o can_v neither_o seek_v nor_o so_o much_o as_o accept_v of_o any_o ecclesiastical_a preferment_n as_o other_o churchman_n and_o religious_a may_n unless_o by_o way_n of_o obedience_n when_o express_o thereto_o command_v by_o the_o pope_n under_o pain_n of_o sin_n he_o skip_v from_o the_o jesuit_n to_o the_o friar_n a_o certain_a friar_n at_o madrid_n 12._o john_n de_fw-fr puente_n by_o name_n in_o the_o year_n 1612._o print_v a_o book_n in_o the_o frontispiece_n whereof_o he_o paint_v the_o sun_n and_o the_o moon_n so_o as_o they_o clear_o signify_v the_o pope_n and_o the_o king_n of_o spain_n here_z the_o scene_z change_n it_o be_v just_a now_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o emperor_n there_o be_v also_o divers_a other_o emblematical_a fancy_n add_v by_o which_o be_v intimate_v that_o his_o catholic_a majesty_n shall_v be_v content_a to_o be_v under_o the_o pope_n so_o he_o may_v rule_v all_o the_o world_n beside_o last_o for_o fear_v the_o scutcheon_n and_o devise_n shall_v not_o sufficient_o discover_v the_o design_n the_o title_n of_o the_o book_n lay_v all_o open_a it_o be_v call_v la_fw-fr convenientia_fw-la de_fw-fr las_o do_v monar_n quias_n catolicas_n in_o english_a the_o agreement_n of_o the_o two_o catholic_a monarchy_n viz._n of_o the_o pope_n and_o of_o spain_n to_o all_o which_o the_o bishop_n add_v his_o own_o particular_a reflection_n that_o the_o book_n have_v all_o manner_n of_o licence_n that_o a_o book_n can_v have_v for_o answer_v to_o it_o we_o deny_v not_o but_o such_o a_o book_n be_v both_o license_v and_o print_v but_o doubtless_o who_o ever_o peruse_v the_o content_n of_o it_o impartial_o will_v judge_v it_o be_v both_o license_v and_o print_v rather_o for_o its_o witty_a conceit_n and_o divertisement_n for_o the_o king_n and_o his_o courtier_n then_o for_o a_o solid_a foundation_n whereon_o to_o build_v any_o serious_a and_o dogmatical_a assertion_n and_o as_o this_o spanish_a friar_n stand_v for_o his_o own_o king_n so_o campanella_n another_o friar_n be_v object_v to_o have_v stand_v as_o much_o for_o the_o late_a dolphin_n now_o king_n of_o france_n publish_v about_o the_o time_n of_o his_o birth_n a_o certain_a eclogue_n concern_v he_o wherein_o the_o say_a dolphin_n be_v promise_v the_o universal_a monarchy_n of_o the_o world_n and_o all_o other_o prince_n represent_v as_o now_o more_o afraid_a of_o france_n then_o ever_o before_o what_o such_o man_n speak_v partly_o out_o of_o flattery_n to_o prince_n a_o epidemical_a infirmity_n incident_a to_o man_n of_o all_o condition_n and_o partly_o as_o delight_v with_o their_o own_o conceit_n make_v nothing_o at_o all_o to_o the_o cause_n of_o religion_n nor_o can_v we_o be_v think_v responsible_a for_o any_o such_o personal_a action_n or_o assertion_n of_o private_a man_n it_o be_v sufficient_a for_o we_o to_o have_v prove_v that_o the_o pope_n be_v universal_a pastor_n of_o the_o church_n what_o the_o king_n of_o spain_n or_o france_n be_v or_o will_v be_v in_o reference_n to_o other_o christian_a king_n and_o prince_n concern_v not_o we_o either_o to_o know_v or_o examine_v 9_o but_o leave_v these_o digression_n the_o relatour_n do_v here_o acknowledge_v it_o high_a time_n to_o return_v to_o his_o adversary_n and_o think_v of_o answer_v a._n c._n s_o argument_n which_o prove_v that_o in_o the_o church_n beside_o the_o 13._o law_n book_n of_o the_o bible_n there_o must_v be_v a_o live_a magistrate_n and_o judge_n so_o assist_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o he_o may_v be_v able_a right_o to_o determine_v all_o controversy_n of_o religion_n and_o preserve_v unity_n and_o certainty_n of_o faith_n in_o the_o church_n to_o this_o he_o answer_v in_o brief_a that_o for_o determine_a controversy_n in_o religion_n and_o preserve_a unity_n and_o certainty_n of_o faith_n it_o be_v not_o necessary_a to_o have_v one_o bishop_n over_o the_o whole_a christian_a church_n more_o than_o it_o be_v necessary_a for_o determine_v civil_a difference_n and_o preserve_v civil_a peace_n and_o unity_n among_o christian_n to_o have_v one_o emperor_n over_o the_o whole_a world_n to_o confirm_v this_o the_o authority_n of_o occam_n be_v cite_v say_v that_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a there_o shall_v be_v one_o governor_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n under_o christ_n but_o it_o be_v sufficient_a there_o be_v many_o bishop_n govern_v divers_a province_n as_o there_o be_v many_o king_n govern_v divers_a kingdom_n i_o answer_v first_o that_o beside_o that_o these_o dialogue_n which_o the_o bishop_n here_o allege_v be_v in_o the_o index_n of_o forbid_a book_n occam_n himself_o be_v no_o such_o unquestionable_a author_n among_o catholic_n that_o we_o shall_v think_v ourselves_o oblige_v to_o defend_v what_o ever_o he_o say_v especial_o in_o a_o question_n that_o concern_v the_o pope_n authority_n it_o be_v too_o well_o know_v how_o factious_o he_o side_v with_o a_o enemy_n of_o the_o church_n second_o have_v christ_n institute_v such_o a_o government_n of_o his_o church_n as_o occam_n fancy_n viz._n a_o government_n consist_v of_o many_o not_o subordinate_a to_o any_o one_o as_o head_n and_o supreme_a over_o they_o it_o will_v have_v be_v requisite_a that_o all_o those_o independent_a and_o coordinate_a governor_n in_o the_o church_n shall_v have_v be_v infallible_a otherwise_o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n will_v have_v be_v little_o less_o than_o a_o mere_a anarchy_n without_o unity_n or_o certainty_n in_o any_o thing_n which_o must_v have_v destroy_v the_o very_a end_n of_o government_n and_o expose_v the_o whole_a body_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n which_o yet_o be_v and_o must_v be_v one_o by_o the_o institution_n of_o christ_n to_o as_o many_o schism_n and_o variety_n of_o faith_n as_o there_o be_v several_a province_n in_o 〈◊〉_d experience_n show_v we_o this_o truth_n in_o all_o country_n where_o no_o infallibility_n be_v acknowledge_v again_o occam_n speak_v only_a de_fw-fr possibili_fw-la of_o what_o our_o saviour_n may_v have_v do_v have_v he_o please_v his_o doctrine_n can_v evince_v any_o thing_n in_o disproof_n of_o what_o we_o maintain_v to_o have_v be_v de_fw-la facto_fw-la establish_v in_o god_n church_n that_o be_v one_o universal_a pastor_n appoint_v by_o christ_n over_o the_o whole_a flock_n 10._o remain_v it_o therefore_o a_o settle_a catholic_a principle_n that_o the_o pope_n have_v power_n over_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o god_n according_a to_o the_o declaration_n of_o the_o ecumenical_a council_n of_o florence_n in_o which_o both_o the_o greek_a and_o latin_a church_n concur_v and_o that_o to_o teach_v the_o contrary_n be_v undoubted_a heresy_n the_o word_n of_o the_o council_n be_v these_o definimus_fw-la sanctam_fw-la apostolicam_fw-la sedem_fw-la &_o romanum_fw-la pontificem_fw-la in_o universum_fw-la orbem_fw-la tenere_fw-la primatum_fw-la etc._n etc._n we_o define_v say_v the_o council_n that_o the_o holy_a apostolic_a sea_n and_o bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v primacy_n over_o the_o whole_a world_n and_o that_o the_o say_a bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v successor_n of_o the_o bless_a peter_n prince_n of_o the_o apostle_n that_o he_o be_v also_o the_o true_a vicar_n of_o christ_n and_o head_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o the_o father_n and_o doctor_n of_o all_o christian_n and_o that_o to_o he_o in_o the_o person_n of_o bless_a peter_n full_a
power_n be_v give_v by_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n to_o feed_v rule_v and_o govern_v the_o universal_a church_n as_o it_o be_v likewise_o contain_v in_o the_o act_n of_o other_o ecumenical_a council_n and_o in_o the_o sacred_a canon_n so_o that_o occam_n or_o any_o other_o that_o seem_v to_o oppose_v this_o if_o they_o be_v catholic_n must_v be_v understand_v to_o speak_v only_a de_fw-la possibili_fw-la of_o what_o christ_n our_o saviour_n may_v have_v do_v if_o he_o have_v please_v or_o to_o mean_v only_o that_o the_o pope_n do_v not_o govern_v the_o church_n in_o such_o a_o absolute_a monarchical_a way_n as_o that_o he_o alone_o be_v the_o only_a governor_n jure_fw-la divino_fw-la in_o it_o and_o that_o all_o other_o bishop_n be_v but_o his_o vicar_n and_o substitute_n chap._n 19_o of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n argument_n 1._o the_o council_n of_o trent_n as_o legal_a as_o any_o other_o general_n council_n whatsoever_o 2._o the_o pope_n preside_v therein_o necessary_a and_o of_o ancient_n right_o 3._o the_o place_n itself_o indifferent_a for_o all_o party_n 4._o no_o oath_n take_v by_o the_o bishop_n but_o what_o the_o ancient_a canon_n prescribe_v and_o be_v wont_a to_o be_v take_v a_o thousand_o year_n before_o 5._o the_o council_n full_a especial_o in_o its_o latter_a session_n towards_o the_o end_n when_o the_o act_n former_o pass_v be_v consent_v to_o de_fw-fr novo_fw-la by_o all_o the_o prelate_n 6._o no_o real_a disparity_n as_o to_o legalness_n between_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a and_o that_o of_o trent_n 7._o neither_o the_o number_n nor_o the_o quality_n of_o italian_a bishop_n any_o prejudice_n to_o the_o council_n liberty_n 8._o groundless_a suspicion_n evince_v nothing_o either_o against_o the_o pope_n or_o council_n 9_o protestant_n no_o less_o censure_v in_o effect_n by_o the_o greek_a church_n then_o by_o the_o latin_n 1._o the_o bishop_n plead_v so_o much_o the_o necessity_n of_o general_n council_n 1._o as_o if_o he_o mean_v to_o submit_v to_o their_o determination_n occasion_v a._n c._n to_o tell_v he_o that_o a_o general_n council_n viz._n that_o of_o trent_n have_v already_o judge_v the_o protestant_n to_o hold_v error_n this_o be_v indeed_o to_o lay_v the_o axe_n to_o the_o root_n and_o bring_v the_o cause_n to_o a_o speedy_a issue_n but_o the_o relatour_n will_v not_o be_v take_v unprovided_a he_o answer_v therefore_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n be_v neither_o a_o legal_a nor_o a_o general_n council_n why_o not_o legal_a it_o have_v all_o the_o condition_n ever_o yet_o require_v by_o catholic_n to_o the_o legality_n of_o a_o general_n council_n and_o why_o not_o general_n see_v all_o bishop_n be_v invite_v to_o come_v and_o that_o a_o great_a number_n actual_o come_v and_o assist_v at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o assembly_n than_o be_v present_a at_o some_o other_o council_n confess_o general_n but_o let_v we_o hear_v the_o bishop_n exception_n against_o this_o council_n his_o first_o exception_n be_v that_o the_o abettor_n of_o this_o council_n maintain_v public_o that_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o they_o to_o conclude_v any_o controversy_n and_o make_v it_o de_fw-fr fide_fw-la and_o so_o in_o our_o judgement_n fundamental_a though_o it_o be_v not_o contain_v in_o scripture_n nor_o so_o much_o as_o probable_o deduce_v thence_o and_o for_o this_o opinion_n doctor_n stapleton_n be_v cite_v in_o the_o margin_n i_o answer_v no_o catholic_a author_n ever_o teach_v that_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o the_o council_n to_o make_v what_o ever_o they_o please_v matter_n of_o faith_n as_o the_o bishop_n will_v seem_v to_o insinuate_v but_o only_o that_o which_o be_v express_v or_o involve_v in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n write_v or_o unwritten_a that_o be_v tradition_n and_o this_o indeed_o be_v define_v by_o the_o very_a council_n of_o trent_n in_o these_o term_n that_o in_o matter_n of_o faith_n we_o be_v to_o rely_v not_o only_o upon_o scripture_n but_o also_o on_o tradition_n now_o that_o this_o doctrine_n be_v true_a have_v be_v already_o 14._o prove_v and_o that_o it_o can_v make_v the_o council_n illegal_a be_v manifest_a even_o from_o the_o bishop_n own_o principle_n for_o he_o confess_v that_o 20._o apostolical_a tradition_n when_o it_o can_v be_v certain_o know_v for_o such_o be_v as_o true_o the_o word_n of_o god_n as_o scripture_n itself_o and_o it_o be_v 7._o certain_o know_v to_o be_v such_o by_o the_o tradition_n or_o definition_n of_o the_o church_n as_o have_v be_v likewise_o heretofore_o prove_v and_o by_o the_o bishop_n himself_o grant_v in_o the_o question_n touch_v scriptures-being_a the_o word_n of_o god_n nor_o do_v the_o council_n herein_o proceed_v in_o a_o different_a manner_n from_o other_o lawful_a and_o ecumenical_a council_n while_o she_o ground_v her_o definition_n partly_o on_o scripture_n partly_o on_o tradition_n even_o in_o matter_n not_o deducible_a by_o any_o particular_a or_o logical_a inference_n from_o scripture_n 2._o a_o second_o exception_n be_v that_o the_o pope_n the_o person_n chief_o to_o be_v reform_v preside_v in_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n and_o be_v chief_a judge_n in_o his_o own_o cause_n against_o all_o law_n divine_a natural_a and_o humane_a but_o the_o pope_n by_o his_o legate_n preside_v also_o in_o the_o four_o general_n council_n at_o chalcedon_n as_o the_o bishop_n himself_o acknowledge_v and_o yet_o it_o be_v esteem_v by_o all_o party_n a_o lawful_a and_o authentical_a council_n nor_o can_v it_o be_v prove_v that_o the_o pope_n be_v more_o the_o person_n to_o be_v reform_v at_o trent_n then_o at_o chalcedon_n it_o be_v true_a the_o person_n condemn_v by_o both_o these_o council_n pretend_v that_o except_v only_a themselves_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o chief_o the_o pope_n err_v and_o by_o consequence_n be_v to_o be_v reform_v but_o as_o the_o former_a complain_v without_o ground_n in_o the_o opinion_n of_o all_o but_o themselves_o so_o do_v the_o latter_a and_o so_o do_v all_o their_o adherent_n alexander_n patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n be_v esteem_v a_o great_a party_n and_o delinquent_n by_o the_o arrian_n for_o have_v act_v so_o zealous_o in_o defence_n of_o the_o catholic_a faith_n against_o their_o master_n arius_n yet_o he_o sit_v a_o chief_a judge_n with_o the_o other_o bishop_n and_o have_v both_o a_o prime_a place_n and_o vote_n in_o the_o first_o council_n of_o nice_a where_o their_o heresy_n be_v condemn_v saint_n cyril_n preside_v in_o the_o three_o general_n council_n though_o by_o the_o nestorian_a heretic_n there_o condemn_v he_o be_v count_v a_o party_n add_v to_o this_o that_o in_o the_o abovementioned_a council_n of_o chalcedon_n the_o cause_n be_v very_o particular_a between_o pope_n leo_n and_o dioscorus_n and_o yet_o not_o only_o the_o legate_n of_o the_o say_a pope_n preside_v in_o the_o council_n during_o the_o whole_a agitation_n of_o the_o business_n but_o the_o condemnation_n of_o dioscorus_n be_v even_o frame_v by_o pope_n leo_n and_o approve_v by_o the_o whole_a council_n so_o far_o be_v it_o from_o be_v think_v a_o solid_a objection_n against_o he_o that_o he_o be_v a_o party_n in_o the_o cause_n or_o the_o person_n to_o be_v reform_v we_o deny_v not_o but_o the_o other_o bishop_n be_v also_o judge_n in_o the_o council_n may_v proceed_v even_o against_o the_o pope_n himself_o if_o the_o case_n do_v necessary_o require_v it_o as_o shall_v he_o for_o example_n manifest_o appear_v to_o be_v a_o heretic_n protestant_n therefore_o have_v no_o just_a cause_n to_o quarrel_v the_o pope_n preside_v in_o council_n especial_o so_o long_o as_o he_o be_v not_o just_o accusable_a of_o any_o crime_n but_o such_o as_o must_v involve_v not_o only_o the_o council_n but_o the_o whole_a church_n as_o much_o as_o himself_o as_o it_o be_v evident_a he_o be_v not_o when_o he_o preside_v in_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n it_o be_v not_o therefore_o contrary_a but_o conformable_a to_o all_o law_n divine_a natural_a and_o humane_a that_o the_o head_n shall_v preside_v over_o the_o member_n and_o to_o give_v novellist_n liberty_n to_o decline_v the_o pope_n judgement_n or_o the_o judgement_n of_o any_o other_o their_o lawful_a superior_n upon_o 〈◊〉_d of_o their_o be_v party_n or_o by_o they_o accuse_v of_o error_n who_o see_v not_o that_o it_o be_v in_o effect_n absolute_o to_o exempt_v such_o people_n from_o all_o legal_a censure_n nay_o even_o to_o grant_v there_o be_v no_o sufficient_a mean_n leave_v effectual_o to_o govern_v the_o church_n or_o condemn_v heresy_n schism_n and_o other_o offence_n against_o religion_n but_o the_o bishop_n in_o his_o large_a margin_n deny_v as_o well_o matter_n of_o ibidem_fw-la fact_n as_o matter_n of_o right_n in_o this_o question_n of_o the_o pope_n preside_v in_o general_a council_n tell_v we_o that_o in_o the_o first_o council_n of_o nice_a hosius_n be_v precedent_n and_o not_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n either_o
credulous_a reader_n that_o the_o father_n in_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n be_v so_o awe_v by_o the_o pope_n authority_n or_o sway_v by_o his_o interest_n that_o either_o they_o dare_v not_o or_o will_v not_o open_v themselves_o so_o far_o as_o to_o speak_v free_o what_o they_o think_v what_o be_v this_o but_o a_o empty_a and_o injurious_a suspicion_n or_o rather_o a_o unworthy_a accusation_n of_o so_o many_o grave_a prelate_n assemble_v in_o council_n a_o little_a more_o of_o christian_a charity_n may_v have_v teach_v his_o lordship_n to_o frame_v a_o far_o different_a judgement_n and_o believe_v that_o so_o many_o worthy_a prelate_n will_v not_o be_v neglectful_a of_o their_o charge_n to_o the_o betray_n of_o their_o conscience_n especial_o see_v the_o pope_n have_v full_o declare_v his_o desire_n that_o the_o matter_n in_o controversy_n may_v receive_v a_o free_a and_o fair_a dispute_n in_o the_o council_n in_o order_n to_o a_o settlement_n of_o the_o truth_n to_o put_v a_o period_n therefore_o to_o this_o long_a and_o groundless_a dream_n of_o the_o pope_n strong_a party_n and_o the_o bishops-being_a overawe_v in_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n i_o conclude_v that_o see_v none_o of_o the_o father_n there_o assemble_v no_o not_o any_o of_o those_o who_o live_v either_o under_o the_o wing_n of_o protestant_a prince_n or_o where_o liberty_n of_o conscience_n be_v allow_v ever_o side_v with_o protestant_n but_o constant_o and_o zealous_o persevere_v even_o till_o death_n in_o the_o faith_n and_o doctrine_n they_o have_v subscribe_v in_o that_o council_n and_o show_v themselves_o solicitous_a that_o all_o its_o definition_n shall_v be_v universal_o hold_v by_o their_o people_n no_o evidence_n can_v possible_o be_v give_v of_o any_o free_a consent_n or_o vote_n in_o council_n if_o this_o may_v be_v call_v in_o question_n 9_o touch_v hieremias_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n you_o must_v know_v that_o some_o eminent_a protestant_n of_o the_o lutheran_n party_n about_o the_o end_n of_o the_o last_o century_n endeavour_v to_o feel_v the_o pulse_n of_o the_o greek_a church_n to_o see_v if_o they_o can_v there_o find_v any_o symptom_n of_o their_o own_o disease_n the_o design_n be_v to_o close_v with_o the_o greek_n for_o the_o better_a make_v out_o of_o the_o pretend_a perpetual_a succession_n of_o their_o church_n which_o project_n they_o so_o hot_o pursue_v though_o former_o in_o vain_a attempt_v that_o they_o will_v not_o desist_v till_o the_o patriarch_n be_v settle_v in_o his_o throne_n they_o have_v send_v to_o he_o the_o sum_n of_o their_o reform_a belief_n draw_v up_o according_a to_o the_o augustan_n confession_n which_o have_v be_v compose_v by_o melancthon_n and_o approve_v by_o their_o patriarch_n luther_n after_o a_o long_a intercourse_n of_o letter_n answer_n and_o reply_v mutual_o continue_v for_o some_o year_n and_o all_o argument_n use_v that_o may_v induce_v the_o patriarch_n to_o receive_v they_o into_o his_o communion_n he_o can_v not_o be_v court_v to_o so_o much_o as_o the_o least_o show_n of_o approve_v their_o doctrine_n but_o do_v in_o all_o his_o answer_n clear_o confirm_v the_o tenet_n of_o the_o roman-catholique_a church_n which_o those_o lutheran_n endeavour_v to_o overthrow_v insomuch_o that_o at_o last_o the_o patriarch_n tire_v with_o their_o importunity_n give_v they_o a_o rebuke_n for_o their_o departure_n from_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o desire_v they_o not_o to_o trouble_v he_o any_o more_o with_o their_o write_n all_o this_o be_v more_o large_o relate_v by_o 16._o spondanus_n out_o of_o the_o write_n of_o those_o very_a protestant_n that_o treat_v with_o the_o patriarch_n in_o the_o business_n neither_o can_v the_o censure_n pass_v by_o this_o patriarch_n upon_o the_o lutheran_n error_n be_v account_v rash_a or_o precipitate_a see_v they_o have_v a_o full_a hear_v by_o he_o they_o have_v make_v their_o address_n to_o who_o be_v not_o only_o the_o chief_a patriarch_n of_o the_o greek_n but_o a_o person_n of_o that_o eminent_a esteem_n among_o they_o that_o his_o censure_n must_v in_o reason_n be_v take_v to_o declare_v the_o sense_n of_o the_o greek_a church_n nor_o matter_n it_o that_o catholic_n account_v he_o a_o shismatique_a this_o can_v prejudice_v his_o censure_n in_o reference_n to_o protestant_n he_o be_v such_o a_o schismatique_a as_o they_o will_v glad_o have_v make_v patron_n of_o their_o religion_n the_o bishop_n therefore_o by_o give_v no_o other_o answer_n to_o this_o patriarchs-proceeding_a against_o protestant_n but_o that_o he_o find_v not_o this_o censure_n of_o hieremias_n warrant_v by_o any_o authority_n of_o the_o greek_a church_n show_v he_o have_v very_o little_a to_o say_v in_o opposition_n to_o it_o be_v not_o this_o hieremias_n chief_a patriarch_n of_o the_o greek_a church_n do_v not_o he_o write_v in_o a_o style_n definitive_a and_o peremptory_a touch_v the_o matter_n debate_v between_o he_o and_o protestant_n do_v he_o not_o upon_o all_o occasion_n testify_v the_o doctrine_n he_o declare_v to_o be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n of_o the_o holy_a father_n and_o of_o the_o sacred_a council_n do_v any_o of_o the_o greek_a bishop_n ever_o disclaim_v the_o say_a doctrine_n either_o in_o whole_a or_o part_n as_o they_o disclaim_v the_o doctrine_n of_o one_o of_o his_o successor_n who_o they_o depose_v and_o eject_v as_o a_o heretic_n because_o his_o tenet_n savour_v of_o the_o protestant_a leaven_n who_o then_o can_v doubt_v but_o what_o he_o deliver_v be_v the_o common_a belief_n of_o the_o whole_a greek_a church_n as_o be_v likewise_o in_o effect_n acknowledge_v by_o the_o interest_v lutheran_n themselves_z in_o their_o acta_fw-la theologorum_fw-la wittenbergensium_fw-la etc._n etc._n publish_v after_o the_o treaty_n end_v and_o more_o express_o by_o some_o speculum_fw-la english_a writer_n well_o therefore_o might_n a._n c._n affirm_v without_o make_v himself_o a_o prophet_n that_o if_o ever_o such_o a_o free_a council_n as_o the_o relatour_n seem_v to_o wish_v be_v gather_v out_o of_o the_o east_n and_o west_n province_n of_o christendom_n etc._n protestant_n will_v doubtless_o be_v condemn_v for_o heretic_n for_o this_o be_v not_o to_o prophesy_v but_o to_o discourse_v and_o draw_v a_o certain_a conclusion_n out_o of_o principle_n moral_o evident_a that_o be_v to_o say_v if_o the_o french_a spanish_a and_o schismatical_a greek_n also_o in_o their_o respective_a church_n do_v teach_v and_o profess_v as_o matter_n of_o catholic_a faith_n doctrine_n diametral_o opposite_a to_o that_o of_o protestant_n no_o man_n can_v doubt_v but_o have_v or_o be_v they_o meet_v in_o a_o general_n council_n to_o declare_v their_o say_a belief_n they_o will_v infallible_o condemn_v protestantisme_n no_o less_o than_o do_v this_o patriarch_n hieremias_n chap._n 20._o of_o the_o infallibility_n and_o authority_n of_o general_n council_n argument_n 1._o the_o bishop_n pretend_a forwardness_n for_o a_o general_n council_n mere_o delusive_a 2._o his_o err_v general_a council_n qualify_v at_o most_o but_o to_o unite_v in_o error_n against_o scripture_n and_o demonstration_n 3._o the_o bishop_n remedy_n against_o his_o council_n intolerable_o err_v instrumental_a to_o all_o disunion_n 4._o the_o authority_n of_o ecumenical_a council_n whence_o derive_v 5._o their_o infallibility_n evidence_v from_o the_o same_o text_n of_o scripture_n that_o prove_v the_o church_n infallible_a 6._o the_o text_n mat._n 18._o 20._o where_o two_o or_o three_o be_v gather_v together_o in_o my_o name_n etc._n etc._n vindicated_n in_o proof_n of_o the_o infallibility_n of_o lawful_a general_n council_n 7._o the_o decree_n of_o legally-confirmed_a general_n council_n in_o point_n of_o faith_n true_o style_v the_o oracle_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n 8._o the_o whole_a church_n liable_a to_o error_n if_o a_o general_n council_n may_v err_v in_o point_n of_o faith_n 9_o st._n augustine_n text_n lib._n 2._o de_fw-fr baptism_n cap._n 3._o that_o general_a council_n may_v be_v amend_v the_o former_a by_o the_o latter_a etc._n etc._n explicate_v at_o large_a 1._o the_o bishop_n have_v cast_v as_o much_o dirt_n as_o he_o be_v able_a upon_o the_o 30._o council_n of_o trent_n wish_n in_o fine_a that_o a_o lawful_a general_n council_n be_v call_v to_o end_v controversy_n a_o pure_a one_o you_o may_v be_v sure_a if_o according_a to_o his_o wish_n who_o bear_v himself_o very_o confident_a upon_o the_o impossibility_n of_o assemble_v such_o a_o council_n as_o he_o will_v call_v general_n say_v as_o it_o be_v to_o insinuate_v a_o unwillingness_n on_o our_o part_n to_o have_v controversy_n end_v in_o so_o fair_a a_o way_n as_o by_o a_o general_n council_n if_o you_o have_v a_o most_o gracious_a king_n incline_v unto_o it_o how_o can_v you_o acquit_v yourselves_o if_o you_o do_v not_o consent_v as_o though_o forsooth_o there_o be_v no_o more_o require_v to_o the_o assemble_v of_o a_o general_n council_n than_o
infallible_o the_o assistance_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n but_o he_o do_v not_o find_v he_o say_v that_o any_o general_a council_n since_o do_v ever_o take_v upon_o they_o to_o say_v punctual_o and_o in_o express_a term_n of_o their_o definition_n visum_fw-la est_fw-la spiritui_fw-la sancto_fw-la et_fw-la nobis_fw-la acknowledge_v even_o thereby_o a_o great_a deal_n of_o difference_n as_o he_o conceive_v in_o the_o certainty_n of_o those_o thing_n which_o after-generall_a council_n determine_v in_o the_o church_n and_o those_o which_o be_v settle_v by_o the_o apostle_n when_o they_o sit_v in_o council_n i_o answer_v there_o be_v no_o essential_a difference_n between_o the_o certainty_n of_o the_o thing_n determine_v by_o the_o apostle_n and_o those_o decide_v by_o a_o general_n council_n confirm_v by_o the_o roman_a bishop_n great_a difference_n there_o be_v indeed_o between_o the_o apostle_n and_o succeed_v bishop_n in_o respect_n of_o personal_a prerogative_n and_o grace_n but_o none_o at_o all_o between_o the_o certainty_n of_o what_o either_o the_o apostle_n by_o themselves_o or_o succeed_a bishop_n in_o a_o lawful_a general_n council_n assemble_v define_v for_o truth_n see_v what_o be_v complete_o determine_v therein_o be_v no_o less_o determine_v by_o apostolical_a authority_n than_o what_o be_v determine_v by_o the_o apostle_n in_o that_o first_o council_n at_o jerusalem_n and_o if_o after-council_n use_v not_o the_o same_o expression_n punctual_o and_o in_o term_n it_o be_v not_o material_a since_o they_o do_v it_o in_o effect_n by_o universal_o enjoin_v the_o belief_n of_o their_o decision_n under_o pain_n of_o anathema_n and_o this_o the_o holy_a father_n well_o understand_v when_o they_o aver_v the_o decree_n of_o a_o general_n council_n to_o be_v trin._n a_o most_o holy_a and_o divine_a oracle_n 54._o a_o sentence_n inspire_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n 62._o not_o to_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 77._o not_o to_o be_v question_v without_o error_n 162._o that_o it_o be_v the_o last_o sentence_n that_o can_v be_v expect_v in_o matter_n of_o faith_n what_o the_o relatour_n mean_v by_o allege_v valentia_n i_o understand_v not_o that_o author_n clear_o speak_v of_o council_n not_o yet_o ratify_v by_o the_o pope_n the_o bishop_n therefore_o have_v say_v nothing_o in_o disproof_n of_o ibidem_fw-la what_o stapleton_n and_o bellarmin_n affirm_v viz._n that_o this_o passage_n of_o scripture_n be_v a_o proper_a proof_n of_o the_o jnfallibility_n of_o general_n council_n which_o consider_v dr._n stapleton_n be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v just_o censurable_a for_o style_v the_o decree_n of_o general_n council_n oracle_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n that_o his_o lp._n be_v rather_o unblamable_a for_o pretend_v such_o word_n to_o be_v little_a short_a of_o blasphemy_n be_v there_o any_o thing_n more_o common_a with_o the_o father_n then_o to_o give_v they_o such_o like_a attribute_n do_v not_o african_n st._n athanasius_n term_v the_o definition_n of_o the_o nicen_n council_n against_o arius_n the_o word_n of_o our_o lord_n which_o endure_v for_o ever_o do_v not_o st._n cyrill_v trinit_fw-la above_o cite_v call_v it_o likewise_o a_o divine_a and_o most_o holy_a oracle_n do_v not_o constantin_n the_o emperor_n style_v the_o same_o definition_n 3._o a_o celestial_a mandate_n do_v not_o st._n gregory_n with_o the_o applause_n of_o all_o true_a christian_n profess_v to_o reverence_v the_o decree_n of_o the_o four_o first_o general_n council_n as_o he_o reverence_n 24._o the_o four_o ghospell_n do_v not_o 54._o st._n leo_n st._n gregory_n naziazen_n athanas._n pope_n nicolas_n imperat_fw-la the_o first_o with_o other_o speak_v to_o the_o same_o sense_n beauties_n argument_n deduce_v from_o this_o apostolical_a council_n as_o it_o be_v a_o precedent_n to_o all_o future_a council_n ecumenical_a hold_v good_a for_o their_o jnfallibility_n since_o otherwise_o they_o must_v have_v be_v ineffectual_a as_o to_o the_o principal_a purpose_n of_o call_v they_o viz._n so_o to_o determine_v controversy_n of_o faith_n as_o to_o put_v a_o end_n to_o all_o debate_n ibidem_fw-la of_o that_o nature_n in_o the_o church_n which_o can_v never_o be_v effectual_o do_v where_o infallibility_n be_v not_o acknowledge_v as_o have_v be_v 14._o prove_v to_o what_o he_o object_n that_o there_o be_v not_o the_o like_a jnfallibility_n in_o other_o council_n where_o no_o man_n sit_v that_o be_v inspire_v as_o be_v in_o this_o of_o the_o apostle_n where_o all_o that_o sit_v as_o judge_n be_v inspire_v i_o answer_v it_o be_v sufficient_a that_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o the_o prelate_n concur_v with_o their_o head_n in_o any_o other_o lawful_a general_n council_n be_v joint_o infallible_a in_o any_o kind_n of_o real_a infallibility_n whether_o like_v to_o the_o former_a or_o not_o so_o in_o the_o bishop_n own_o principle_n a_o general_n council_n or_o at_o least_o the_o catholic_a church_n be_v infallible_a in_o fundamental_n or_o thing_n absolute_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n though_o he_o will_v not_o acknowledge_v any_o one_o in_o the_o church_n to_o have_v that_o prerogative_n of_o infallibility_n as_o touch_v ferus_fw-la he_o avouch_v nothing_o contrary_a to_o our_o doctrine_n of_o infallibility_n though_o his_o authority_n will_v be_v of_o no_o great_a force_n then_o if_o he_o be_v none_o of_o we_o his_o comment_n upon_o the_o act_n which_o the_o bishop_n here_o cite_v be_v list_v with_o most_o of_o his_o other_o work_n in_o 875._o the_o roll_n of_o prohibit_v book_n thus_o have_v i_o go_v through_o all_o the_o forecited_a passage_n of_o scripture_n and_o in_o every_o one_o of_o they_o solve_v the_o bishop_n objection_n for_o render_v they_o incompetent_a proof_n of_o the_o infallibility_n of_o general_n council_n which_o yet_o i_o need_v not_o have_v do_v since_o what_o be_v clear_o prove_v by_o any_o one_o text_n of_o scripture_n be_v as_o undoubted_o true_a as_o what_o be_v prove_v by_o more_o but_o the_o bishop_n tell_v we_o he_o easy_o grant_v a_o general_n council_n can_v err_v in_o thing_n necessary_a to_o 〈◊〉_d suffer_v 8._o itself_o to_o be_v lead_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n in_o scripture_n wherein_o he_o seem_v but_o to_o trifle_v say_v no_o more_o in_o effect_n then_o that_o a_o general_n council_n can_v err_v so_o long_o as_o it_o do_v not_o err_v this_o be_v a_o very_a small_a prerogative_n and_o may_v be_v affirm_v of_o any_o kind_n of_o council_n nay_o of_o any_o particular_a person_n of_o how_o mean_a capacity_n soever_o the_o question_n be_v whether_o a_o lawful_a general_n council_n can_v ever_o be_v presumable_a to_o fall_v into_o the_o bishop_n hinted_a disorder_n of_o leave_v scripture_n or_o define_v any_o thing_n contrary_a to_o its_o true_a sense_n but_o to_o speak_v truth_n there_o can_v be_v no_o question_n of_o it_o as_o be_v inconsistent_a with_o the_o veracity_n of_o divine_a promise_n to_o permit_v the_o whole_a church_n to_o err_v in_o any_o doctrinal_a point_n she_o find_v necessary_a to_o define_v by_o a_o general_n council_n for_o prevent_v of_o schism_n and_o settle_v of_o man_n mind_n in_o the_o truth_n to_o what_o he_o add_v as_o the_o result_n of_o his_o discourse_n upon_o these_o several_a text_n that_o suppose_v they_o promise_v assistance_n even_o to_o infallibility_n yet_o they_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v of_o the_o whole_a church_n principal_o and_o of_o its_o representative_a but_o by_o consequent_a nor_o any_o further_a than_o the_o say_v representative_a consent_n and_o eleave_v to_o that_o upon_o which_o it_o be_v consequent_a viz._n the_o catholic_a body_n of_o the_o church_n this_o i_o say_v be_v but_o a_o weak_a cuasion_n for_o see_v the_o catholic_a or_o diffusive_a body_n of_o the_o church_n be_v bind_v to_o believe_v and_o profess_v the_o doctrine_n teach_v by_o her_o representative_a if_o the_o church_n diffusive_a have_v a_o infallible_a assistance_n for_o her_o believe_v the_o council_n or_o church_n representative_a must_v also_o necessary_o have_v infallible_a assistance_n in_o teach_v to_o which_o of_o these_o this_o assistance_n be_v promise_v principal_o be_v but_o a_o vain_a speculation_n since_o they_o both_o have_v it_o as_o be_v absolute_o necessary_a for_o they_o both_o here_o the_o bishop_n fall_v again_o to_o his_o consideration_n and_o will_v have_v 1._o we_o to_o observe_v four_a that_o there_o be_v not_o the_o like_a consent_n that_o general_n council_n can_v err_v as_o there_o be_v thatthe_v church_n in_o general_n can_v err_v from_o the_o faith_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n since_o in_o this_o all_o agree_v but_o not_o in_o the_o former_a i_o answer_v all_o that_o have_v not_o desert_v nor_o adhere_v to_o the_o desertor_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n do_v una_fw-la nimous_o agree_v that_o a_o lawfully-called_a and_o confirm_a general_n council_n can_v no_o more_o err_v in_o point_n of_o faith_n than_o the_o church_n in_o general_a and_o his_o lp._n be_v much_o out_o in_o quote_v waldensis_n for_o the_o
pope_n alexander_n how_o sharp-sighted_a therefore_o our_o adversary_n be_v in_o his_o observation_n against_o we_o appear_v by_o this_o but_o see_v these_o fork_a syllogism_n 〈◊〉_d so_o dilomma_n be_v sometime_o call_v by_o logician_n be_v such_o currant_n coin_v with_o his_o lordship_n it_o will_v not_o i_o hope_v be_v think_v unreasonable_a if_o we_o pay_v he_o one_o for_o many_o thus_o than_o i_o argue_v either_o the_o bishop_n know_v his_o relation_n touch_v peter_n lombard_n to_o be_v false_a or_o he_o know_v it_o not_o if_o he_o know_v it_o not_o his_o ignorance_n in_o a_o point_n wherein_o he_o will_v seem_v know_v be_v hardly_o excusable_a and_o his_o temerity_n in_o affirm_v without_o sure_a ground_n such_o a_o thing_n as_o this_o to_o the_o scandal_n of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d pastor_n of_o the_o church_n and_o of_o a_o synod_n of_o three_o hundred_o bishop_n and_o archbishop_n by_o his_o own_o confession_n altogether_o unblamable_a if_o he_o know_v it_o to_o be_v false_a and_o yet_o will_v affirm_v what_o he_o do_v where_o be_v his_o honesty_n the_o like_a be_v to_o be_v say_v of_o his_o 〈◊〉_d touch_v pope_n 〈◊〉_d and_o the_o eight_o general_n council_n define_v against_o honorius_n there_o be_v a_o mistake_n in_o it_o for_o neither_o do_v pope_n honorius_n real_o maintain_v the_o monothelite_n heresy_n nor_o do_v we_o maintain_v but_o in_o a_o question_n of_o fact_n as_o this_o be_v viz._n whether_o the_o say_a pope_n have_v real_o assert_v that_o heresy_n both_o the_o pope_n and_o a_o general_n council_n through_o misinformation_n or_o other_o jucident_n may_v judge_v amiss_o the_o bishop_n proceed_v ask_v we_o in_o the_o next_o paragraph_n to_o this_o effect_n that_o since_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o pope_n infallibility_n have_v be_v so_o easy_a a_o way_n either_o to_o prevent_v all_o division_n about_o the_o faith_n or_o to_o end_v all_o controversy_n of_o that_o nature_n whensoever_o they_o shall_v arise_v why_o this_o brief_a but_o most_o necessary_a proposition_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n can_v err_v in_o his_o judicjall_a determination_n concern_v the_o faith_n be_v not_o to_o be_v find_v in_o letter_n or_o sense_n in_o any_o stripture_n council_n or_o father_n of_o the_o church_n i_o answer_v first_o that_o in_o the_o sense_n wherein_o catholic_n maintain_v the_o pope_n infallibility_n to_o be_v matter_n of_o necessary_a beleese_n to_o all_o christian_n it_o be_v find_v for_o sense_n both_o in_o scripture_n council_n and_o father_n as_o we_o have_v already_o sufficient_o prove_v in_o prove_v the_o infallibility_n of_o general_n council_n of_o which_o he_o be_v the_o most_o principal_a and_o most_o necessary_a member_n second_o even_o in_o the_o sense_n wherein_o the_o bishop_n with_o perpetual_a impertinency_n 〈◊〉_d it_o viz._n as_o it_o signify_v his_o personal_a infallibility_n without_o a_o general_n council_n who_o know_v not_o that_o the_o maintainer_n of_o that_o opinion_n allege_v both_o scripture_n father_n and_o council_n for_o it_o probable_o at_o least_o as_o may_v be_v see_v in_o their_o 〈◊〉_d disputation_n upon_o that_o subject_n to_o omit_v scripture_n wherein_o we_o confess_v there_o be_v no_o express_a mention_n of_o the_o pope_n but_o only_o of_o s._n peter_n in_o who_o right_a the_o pope_n succeed_v what_o think_v you_o of_o the_o council_n of_o 〈◊〉_d do_v not_o that_o council_n seem_v to_o say_v in_o effect_n that_o the_o pope_n be_v infallible_a when_o upon_o read_v of_o his_o 〈◊〉_d to_o they_o in_o 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d heresy_n the_o 〈◊〉_d assembly_n of_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d out_o with_o acclamation_n 472._o and_o profess_v that_o st._n peter_n who_o be_v infallible_a speak_v by_o the_o may_v of_o leo_n and_o that_o the_o pope_n be_v interpreter_n of_o the_o apostle_n voice_n what_o think_v you_o of_o the_o council_n of_o 〈◊〉_d do_v not_o the_o father_n in_o that_o council_n seem_v to_o attribute_v infallibility_n to_o the_o pope_n when_o they_o acknowledge_v latin_n that_o st._n peter_n be_v head_n and_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n and_o that_o he_o stilll_v 〈◊〉_d and_o 〈◊〉_d cause_n of_o faith_n in_o and_o by_o his_o successor_n the_o bishop_n of_o 〈◊〉_d do_v not_o damas_n st._n hierome_n seem_v to_o make_v pope_n damasus_n infallible_a when_o speak_a of_o he_o and_o his_o particular_a sea_n he_o say_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d etc._n etc._n upon_o this_o rock_n i_o know_v the_o church_n which_o can_v 〈◊〉_d fail_v or_o fall_v away_o from_o the_o 〈◊〉_d faith_n be_v build_v 92._o do_v not_o st._n austin_n do_v the_o same_o with_o the_o whole_a council_n of_o 〈◊〉_d when_o beside_o their_o own_o suffrage_n which_o be_v but_o of_o a_o particular_a provincial_a council_n they_o require_v nothing_o but_o the_o 〈◊〉_d sentence_n only_o to_o the_o full_a and_o effectual_a condemn_v of_o the_o pelagian_a heresy_n do_v he_o not_o speak_v also_o to_o the_o same_o effect_n dovat_fw-la when_o he_o 〈◊〉_d that_o the_o succession_n of_o the_o roman_a bishop_n be_v that_o very_a rock_n of_o the_o church_n against_o which_o the_o proud_a gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v never_o prevail_v i_o may_v add_v 〈◊〉_d st._n cyprian_n former_o allege_v as_o also_o 93._o st._n leo_n pope_n 〈◊〉_d innocent_n the_o first_o pope_n rat_n gelasius_n st._n gregory_n with_o other_o but_o i_o fear_v it_o will_v be_v answer_v that_o they_o be_v pope_n and_o speak_v partial_o in_o their_o own_o cause_n beside_o have_v hitherto_o whole_o decline_v the_o defence_n of_o that_o assertion_n and_o profess_v that_o it_o will_v be_v sufficient_a for_o protestant_n to_o acknowledge_v the_o pope_n infallible_a in_o and_o with_o general_n council_n only_o i_o have_v no_o obligation_n to_o engage_v further_o 52._o in_o that_o business_n nor_o can_v i_o think_v it_o any_o way_n expedient_a to_o make_v the_o entrance_n into_o catholic_a communion_n seem_v narrow_a to_o our_o adversary_n then_o in_o truth_n it_o be_v and_o of_o necessity_n must_v be_v maintain_v to_o be_v chap._n 22._o the_o bishop_n vain_a endeavour_n to_o find_v out_o error_n in_o general_n council_n confirm_v by_o the_o pope_n argument_n 1._o the_o council_n of_o florence_n and_o trent_n err_v not_o in_o define_v the_o priest_n intention_n to_o be_v necessary_a to_o the_o validity_n of_o sacrament_n 2._o why_o the_o pope_n confirmation_n be_v necessary_a to_o the_o definition_n of_o general_n council_n 3._o transubstantiation_n no_o error_n nor_o any_o such_o late_a or_o new_a doctrine_n as_o the_o relatour_n pretend_v without_o show_n of_o proof_n 4._o communion_n under_o one_o kind_n no_o error_n but_o the_o allow_a practice_n of_o the_o church_n in_o primitive_a time_n 5._o invocation_n of_o saint_n no_o error_n but_o the_o doctrine_n and_o practice_n of_o the_o father_n 6._o not_o derogatory_n either_o to_o the_o merit_n or_o mediation_n of_o christ_n our_o saviour_n 7._o adoration_n or_o worship_v of_o image_n as_o allow_v by_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n neither_o idolatry_n nor_o error_n 8._o optatus_n both_o partial_o and_o impertinent_o allege_v by_o the_o bishop_n 9_o private_a abuse_n in_o this_o or_o any_o other_o matter_n not_o just_o imputable_a to_o the_o church_n 10._o cassander_n qualis_fw-la vir_fw-la 11._o llamas_n misunderstand_v by_o the_o relatour_n 1._o the_o bishop_n here_o and_o in_o the_o follow_v paragraph_n bring_v in_o a_o fresh_a charge_n of_o error_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n commit_v by_o such_o general_n council_n as_o the_o pope_n confirm_v the_o first_o in_o the_o endictement_n be_v that_o of_o the_o priest_n jntention_n which_o the_o council_n of_o florence_n and_o trent_n both_o of_o they_o confirm_v 11._o by_o the_o pope_n define_v to_o be_v essential_o necessary_a to_o the_o validity_n of_o a_o sacrament_n which_o the_o bishop_n think_v be_v a_o error_n but_o before_o he_o go_v about_o to_o prove_v it_o to_o be_v such_o he_o forget_v not_o to_o tell_v we_o that_o the_o pope_n infallibility_n of_o which_o we_o talk_v so_o much_o be_v a_o vain_a and_o useless_a thing_n why_o i_o pray_v his_o reason_n be_v for_o that_o before_o the_o church_n or_o any_o particular_a man_n can_v make_v use_n of_o it_o that_o be_v be_v settle_v and_o confirm_v in_o the_o truth_n by_o mean_n thereof_o he_o must_v either_o know_v or_o upon_o sure_a ground_n believe_v that_o he_o be_v infallible_a but_o say_v the_o bishop_n this_o can_v only_o be_v believe_v of_o he_o as_o he_o be_v st._n peter_n successor_n and_o bishop_n of_o rome_n of_o which_o it_o be_v impossible_a in_o the_o relatours_n opinion_n for_o the_o church_n or_o any_o particular_a man_n to_o have_v such_o certainty_n as_o be_v sufficient_a to_o ground_v a_o infallible_a belief_n why_o because_o the_o knowledge_n and_o belief_n of_o this_o depend_v upon_o his_o be_v true_o in_o order_n true_o a_o bishop_n true_o a_o priest_n true_o baptize_v none_o of_o all_o which_o according_a to_o our_o principle_n can_v
much_o as_o in_o they_o lie_v what_o ever_o danger_n or_o inconvenience_n may_v possible_o happen_v to_o their_o people_n either_o by_o scandalous_a practice_n or_o perhaps_o curious_a and_o misinterpretable_a assertion_n of_o private_a person_n in_o the_o matter_n of_o image_n and_o protestant_n if_o they_o have_v charity_n will_v judge_v the_o best_a namely_o that_o the_o ordinary_a pastor_n of_o the_o church_n do_v themselves_o effectual_o obey_v the_o council_n herein_o and_o the_o people_n they_o and_o not_o condemn_v the_o whole_a church_n pastor_n and_o people_n together_o of_o paganish_a idolatry_n and_o superstition_n upon_o mere_a surmise_n as_o the_o relatour_n more_o than_o seem_v to_o do_v in_o this_o place_n especial_o consider_v that_o if_o neglect_v or_o disobedience_n be_v either_o in_o pastor_n or_o people_n it_o be_v not_o the_o church_n but_o their_o own_o personal_a fault_n who_o be_v guilty_a of_o it_o the_o church_n have_v take_v the_o best_a and_o most_o sufficient_a order_n that_o she_o can_v for_o the_o right_a instruction_n of_o those_o that_o belong_v to_o she_o 8._o we_o acknowledge_v no_o less_o than_o the_o bishop_n the_o church_n have_v always_o have_v great_a care_n to_o avoid_v the_o least_o resemblance_n with_o paganism_n in_o any_o thing_n and_o that_o therefore_o his_o lordship_n may_v ibidem_fw-la well_o note_v as_o he_o do_v in_o the_o margin_n that_o the_o christian_n in_o optatus_n his_o time_n be_v much_o trouble_v upon_o a_o false_a report_n that_o parmen_fw-la some_o be_v come_v to_o set_v a_o image_n upon_o their_o altar_n viz._n immediate_o before_o the_o oblation_n of_o the_o b._n eucharist_n be_v to_o be_v celebrate_v thereon_o but_o what_o kind_n of_o image_n this_o be_v appear_v not_o in_o any_o sort_n by_o optatus_n his_o text_n the_o relatour_n indeed_o by_o his_o discourse_n take_v it_o for_o grant_v it_o be_v either_o the_o crucifix_n or_o some_o other_o image_n which_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n now_o allow_v for_o he_o bring_v this_o passage_n of_o optatus_n by_o way_n of_o instance_n to_o show_v that_o the_o ancient_a church_n will_v not_o endure_v that_o the_o present_a church_n of_o rome_n allow_v in_o point_n of_o image_n but_o his_o supposition_n be_v easy_o deny_v in_o all_o probability_n it_o be_v either_o some_o jdoll_n according_a to_o that_o which_o albaspineas_n observe_v in_o his_o note_n upon_o this_o place_n which_o be_v that_o optat._n some_o copy_n read_v dei_fw-la imaginem_fw-la the_o image_n of_o a_o god_n or_o else_o some_o common_a image_n of_o a_o man_n as_o perhaps_o of_o the_o emperor_n for_o they_o be_v the_o emperor_n officer_n that_o be_v bring_v it_o or_o of_o the_o governor_n of_o the_o province_n which_o kind_n of_o image_n it_o be_v confess_v it_o the_o christian_n in_o those_o time_n will_v not_o endure_v shall_v be_v worship_v nor_o so_o much_o as_o stand_v in_o the_o place_n of_o god_n worship_n towit_n upon_o the_o altar_n as_o appear_v both_o by_o tertullian_n in_o his_o apology_n for_o the_o christian_n and_o by_o eusebius_n but_o that_o it_o be_v any_o image_n of_o christ_n or_o of_o his_o b._n mother_n 14._o or_o of_o any_o of_o the_o apostle_n or_o other_o saint_n be_v whole_o improbable_a for_o why_o shall_v christian_n be_v so_o trouble_v at_o they_o see_v it_o be_v well_o know_v that_o such_o image_n as_o these_o be_v in_o common_a use_n and_o veneration_n too_o among_o christian_n in_o the_o ancient_a church_n witness_v that_o of_o tertullian_n apolog._n cap._n 16._o where_o the_o christian_n be_v call_v as_o it_o be_v by_o a_o common_a nickname_n of_o the_o heathen_n crucis_fw-la religiosi_fw-la as_o if_o you_o will_v say_v cross-worshiper_n or_o votary_n of_o the_o cross_n and_o that_o of_o s._n chrysostome_n homil._n qvod_fw-la christus_n est_fw-la deus_fw-la where_o he_o testify_v that_o in_o his_o time_n the_o cross_n of_o 5._o christ_n make_v a_o glorious_a show_n upon_o the_o altar_n with_o dom._n many_o other_o testimony_n of_o antiquity_n that_o may_v be_v allege_v so_o that_o from_o this_o passage_n of_o optatus_n the_o bishop_n evince_v nothing_o against_o euther_o the_o use_n or_o that_o worship_n of_o image_n which_o the_o church_n allow_v that_o which_o he_o may_v have_v much_o more_o right_o observe_v from_o the_o place_n be_v how_o plain_o this_o father_n make_v mention_n of_o altar_n and_o of_o a_o sacrifice_n to_o be_v offer_v thereon_o as_o know_v thing_n and_o of_o confess_a belief_n and_o practice_n among_o christian_n in_o his_o time_n cum_fw-la altaria_fw-la solenniter_fw-la ponerentur_fw-la et_fw-la sic_fw-la sacrificium_fw-la offerretur_fw-la and_o a_o little_a after_o cum_fw-la viderent_fw-la divinis_fw-la sacrificiis_fw-la nec_fw-la mutatum_fw-la quicquam_fw-la nec_fw-la additum_fw-la all_o express_o and_o undeniable_o mean_v of_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o holy_a eucharist_n or_o mass._n but_o it_o suit_v not_o with_o the_o relatour_n design_v to_o make_v any_o such_o remark_n 9_o as_o little_o be_v we_o concern_v in_o those_o authority_n of_o tertullian_n st._n austin_n and_o other_o which_o the_o bishop_n allege_v as_o find_v fault_n with_o the_o make_n of_o feast_n at_o the_o oratory_n of_o martyr_n which_o seem_v to_o he_o a_o kind_n of_o parentalia_fw-la or_o funeral_n feast_n which_o the_o jdolatrous_a gentile_n in_o former_a time_n use_v we_o confess_v the_o gentile_n parentation_n be_v unlawful_a and_o jdolatrous_a because_o they_o do_v thereby_o offer_v sacrifice_n to_o the_o ghost_n of_o the_o dead_a as_o tertullian_n 12_o show_v st._n austin_n likewise_o find_v fault_n not_o without_o cause_n with_o those_o christian_n who_o place_v wine_n and_o banquet_n upon_o the_o 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o martyr_n and_o afterward_o riot_v and_o make_v themselves_o drink_v with_o it_o such_o a_o custom_n as_o this_o deserve_v to_o be_v reprehend_v and_o st._n austin_n may_v just_o 27._o no_o doubt_n tell_v we_o the_o better_a christian_n do_v it_o not_o it_o be_v forbid_v likewise_o by_o 2._o st._n ambrose_n and_o other_o both_o because_o it_o have_v some_o resemblance_n more_o than_o be_v fit_v with_o that_o condemn_a superstition_n of_o the_o gentile_n parentalia_fw-la and_o also_o because_o it_o give_v occasion_n of_o drunkeness_n though_o it_o be_v scarce_o imaginable_a that_o those_o christian_n who_o use_v it_o do_v intend_v to_o offer_v any_o sacrifice_n to_o the_o martyr_n but_o only_o to_o have_v those_o thing_n which_o they_o set_v upon_o their_o tomb_n sanctify_v by_o god_n for_o the_o martyr_n merit_n nor_o do_v this_o custom_n ever_o prevail_v much_o in_o the_o church_n it_o be_v at_o its_o first_o come_v up_o so_o general_o reprehend_v by_o the_o catholic_a pastor_n of_o the_o church_n that_o the_o follow_a age_n by_o little_a and_o little_o lay_v it_o quite_o down_o so_o as_o at_o present_a it_o seem_v whole_o extirpate_v and_o that_o for_o many_o hundred_o of_o year_n last_o pass_v neither_o practice_n nor_o shadow_n of_o it_o can_v be_v show_v in_o the_o church_n 10._o to_o his_o allegation_n of_o 〈◊〉_d who_o seem_v to_o reprehend_v the_o custom_n of_o the_o church_n in_o the_o adoration_n of_o jmage_n i_o answer_v that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o this_o author_n be_v not_o whole_o orthodox_n he_o be_v a_o man_n in_o his_o time_n that_o seem_v to_o a_o great_a many_o to_o halt_v as_o it_o be_v between_o god_n and_o baal_n that_o be_v to_o be_v neither_o perfect_a catholic_a nor_o profess_v protestant_n and_o in_o his_o work_n he_o profess_o labour_v to_o reconcile_v catholic_a religion_n with_o that_o of_o protestant_n but_o as_o it_o must_v needs_o happen_v to_o all_o such_o undertaker_n with_o so_o bad_a success_n that_o the_o result_v of_o all_o his_o study_n and_o endeavour_n that_o way_n please_v neither_o party_n the_o bishop_n will_v needs_o have_v it_o think_v that_o he_o be_v one_o of_o we_o and_o that_o he_o live_v and_o die_v in_o our_o communion_n and_o we_o grant_v he_o make_v no_o external_a separation_n from_o we_o nor_o be_v excommunicate_v or_o cast_v out_o of_o the_o church_n by_o any_o sentence_n or_o excommunication_n ab_fw-la homine_fw-la but_o whether_o or_o no_o he_o may_v not_o incur_v excommunication_n meritorious_o and_o so_o be_v deprive_v of_o the_o church_n communion_n sententiâ_fw-la iuris_fw-la by_o reason_n of_o those_o many_o unsound_a and_o uniustifyable_a assertion_n which_o be_v scatter_v up_o and_o down_o his_o write_n too_o much_o in_o favour_n of_o heresy_n and_o of_o the_o enemy_n of_o the_o church_n be_v not_o so_o easy_a to_o determine_v however_o he_o be_v long_o since_o dead_a and_o charity_n oblige_v we_o to_o hope_v the_o best_a of_o he_o namely_o that_o before_o his_o death_n he_o do_v effective_o repent_v and_o revoke_v whatever_o out_o of_o humane_a frailty_n and_o compliance_n with_o the_o design_n of_o such_o 286._o temporal_a prince_n as_o set_v he_o on_o work_n some_o of_o which_o 〈◊〉_d be_v not_o
and_o that_o we_o can_v be_v hear_v in_o our_o prayer_n and_o expect_v relief_n not_o from_o the_o jmage_n but_o from_o the_o prototype_n which_o as_o it_o be_v the_o plain_a doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n declare_v by_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a and_o trent_n so_o it_o be_v all_o that_o in_o this_o question_n i_o have_v undertake_v to_o defend_v chap._n 23._o of_o the_o bishop_n confession_n that_o salvation_n may_v be_v have_v in_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o the_o consequence_n thereupon_o argument_n 1._o the_o bishop_n though_o not_o willing_o grant_v in_o express_a term_n that_o some_o catholic_n may_v be_v save_v and_o in_o effect_n that_o all_o 2._o a_o 〈◊〉_d argument_n that_o we_o be_v the_o safe_a way_n because_o protestant_n as_o well_o as_o we_o confess_v it_o safe_o explicate_v and_o defend_v 3._o catholic_n not_o just_o tax_v with_o want_n of_o charity_n for_o tell_v protestant_n they_o can_v be_v save_v out_o of_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o ro_n man_n church_n 4._o nothing_o to_o be_v conclude_v in_o favour_n of_o the_o bishop_n against_o a_o 〈◊〉_d maxim_n from_o the_o agreement_n of_o old_a betwixt_o catholic_n and_o donatist_n in_o point_n of_o baptism_n 5._o catholic_n and_o protestant_n do_v not_o agree_v in_o any_o real_a participation_n of_o christ_n proper_a to_o the_o sacrament_n 6._o what_o catholic_n author_n mean_v when_o they_o speak_v of_o spiritually-receiving_a christ_n and_o of_o a_o spiritual_a presence_n in_o the_o eucbarist_n 7._o no_o peril_n of_o schism_n heresy_n etc._n etc._n in_o communicate_v with_o the_o roman_a church_n 8._o the_o relatour_n various_a wind_n upon_o this_o subject_n observe_v 9_o no_o parallel_n betwixt_o a_o c._n argument_n and_o that_o of_o petilian_n the_o donatist_n 10._o a_o c._n unjust_o tax_v with_o untruth_n by_o the_o bishop_n 11._o our_o adversary_n remainder_n of_o instance_n consider_v and_o satisfy_v 1._o in_o this_o paragraph_n the_o bishop_n bring_v in_o the_o lady_n ask_v he_o whether_o she_o may_v be_v save_v in_o the_o roman_a faith_n and_o though_o by_o his_o answer_n he_o grant_v clear_o enough_o that_o there_o be_v possibility_n of_o salvation_n in_o the_o roman_a church_n yet_o who_o those_o be_v among_o we_o who_o he_o think_v may_v be_v save_v be_v not_o so_o clear_a sometime_o he_o seem_v to_o say_v that_o those_o only_o may_v be_v save_v who_o though_o they_o err_v yet_o want_v sufficient_a ground_n either_o to_o doubt_v or_o ibidem_fw-la know_v their_o error_n as_o for_o instance_n when_o he_o write_v the_o ignorant_a that_o can_v discern_v the_o error_n of_o the_o church_n so_o they_o hold_v the_o foundation_n and_o conform_v themselves_o to_o a_o religious_a life_n may_v be_v save_v and_o afterward_o we_o have_v not_o so_o learned_a christ_n as_o to_o deny_v salvation_n to_o some_o ignorant_a silly_a soul_n who_o humble_a peaceable_a obedience_n make_v num_fw-la they_o safe_a among_o any_o part_n of_o man_n that_o profess_v the_o foundation_n christ._n likewise_o there_o be_v no_o question_n but_o many_o be_v save_v in_o corrupt_a time_n of_o the_o church_n when_o their_o leader_n unless_o they_o repent_v besore_n death_n num_fw-la be_v lose_v in_o other_o place_n he_o seem_v to_o intimate_v that_o man_n may_v be_v save_v in_o the_o roman_a church_n though_o the_o truth_n by_o which_o he_o mean_v the_o doctrine_n of_o protestant_n be_v sufficient_o propose_v to_o they_o but_o not_o acknowledge_v by_o they_o as_o where_o he_o say_v protestant_n indeed_o confess_v there_o be_v salvation_n possible_a to_o be_v attain_v in_o the_o roman_a church_n but_o yet_o they_o say_v withal_o that_o the_o error_n of_o that_o church_n be_v so_o many_o ibidem_fw-la and_o some_o so_o great_a as_o weaken_v the_o foundation_n that_o it_o be_v very_o hard_a to_o go_v that_o way_n to_o heaven_n especial_o to_o they_o that_o have_v have_v the_o truth_n manifest_v now_o sure_o if_o it_o be_v but_o very_o hard_o go_v that_o way_n to_o heaven_n it_o be_v 5._o not_o altogether_o impossible_a again_o i_o be_o willing_a say_v he_o to_o hope_v there_o be_v many_o among_o they_o which_o keep_v within_o that_o church_n mean_v the_o roman_a and_o yet_o wish_v the_o superstition_n abolish_v which_o they_o know_v and_o which_o pray_v to_o god_n to_o forgive_v their_o error_n in_o what_o they_o know_v not_o and_o which_o hold_v the_o foundation_n sirme_v and_o live_v according_o and_o which_o will_v have_v all_o thing_n amend_v that_o be_v amiss_o be_v it_o in_o their_o power_n and_o to_o such_o i_o dare_v not_o deny_v a_o possibility_n of_o salvation_n for_o that_o which_o be_v christ_n in_o they_o though_o they_o hazard_v themselves_o extreme_o by_o keep_v so_o close_o to_o that_o which_o be_v superstition_n and_o in_o the_o case_n of_o image_n come_v too_o near_a idolatry_n item_n i_o do_v indeed_o for_o ibidem_fw-la my_o part_n acknowledge_v a_o possibility_n of_o salvation_n in_o the_o roman_a church_n but_o so_o as_o that_o which_o i_o grant_v to_o romanist_n be_v not_o as_o they_o be_v romanist_n but_o as_o they_o be_v christian_n that_o be_v as_o they_o believe_v the_o creed_n and_o hold_v the_o foundation_n christ_n himself_o not_o as_o they_o associate_v themselves_o witting_o and_o willing_o to_o the_o gross_a superstition_n of_o the_o romish_a church_n be_v not_o this_o plain_o to_o confess_v that_o even_o those_o of_o the_o roman_a church_n who_o do_v willing_o and_o know_o associate_v themselves_o to_o the_o gross_a superstition_n of_o that_o church_n may_v possible_o be_v save_v though_o not_o indeed_o as_o they_o do_v this_o but_o as_o they_o be_v christian_n and_o believe_v in_o the_o foundation_n christ_n last_o when_o he_o ask_v as_o it_o be_v in_o anger_n will_v you_o have_v we_o as_o malicious_a or_o at_o least_o as_o rash_a as_o yourselves_o be_v to_o we_o and_o deny_v you_o so_o much_o as_o possibility_n of_o salvation_n even_o mistake_v charity_n if_o such_o it_o be_v be_v far_o better_a than_o none_o at_o all_o and_o if_o the_o mistake_v be_v we_o the_o none_o be_v you_o etc_n do_v he_o not_o clear_o pretend_v by_o this_o to_o be_v more_o charitable_a that_o be_v to_o grant_v more_o to_o we_o catholic_n in_o this_o particular_a of_o be_v save_v than_o we_o do_v to_o they_o see_v then_o that_o even_o we_o catholic_n grant_v possibility_n of_o salvation_n to_o those_o who_o join_v with_o the_o protestant_a church_n if_o their_o ignorance_n be_v invincible_a we_o can_v but_o suppose_v his_o pretend_a charity_n grant_v more_o to_o we_o namely_o that_o there_o be_v possibility_n of_o be_v save_v to_o those_o that_o join_v with_o the_o roman_a church_n though_o their_o ignorance_n be_v not_o invincible_a and_o though_o all_o or_o the_o chief_a motive_n which_o protestant_n bring_v against_o we_o be_v never_o so_o sufficient_o propose_v to_o they_o now_o if_o on_o the_o one_o side_n both_o catholic_n and_o protestant_n agree_v in_o this_o that_o such_o as_o hold_v all_o the_o opinion_n of_o our_o church_n and_o continue_v in_o they_o till_o death_n notwithstanding_o their_o be_v thorough_o acquaint_v with_o all_o the_o contrary_a reason_n and_o doctrine_n of_o protestant_n may_v attain_v salvation_n and_o if_o on_o the_o other_o side_n all_o catholic_n as_o well_o those_o that_o now_o be_v as_o the_o infinite_a multitude_n which_o have_v be_v since_o a_o thousand_o year_n last_o pass_v according_a to_o protestant_n own_o account_n and_o confession_n do_v deny_v possibility_n of_o be_v save_v to_o such_o as_o live_v and_o die_v in_o the_o protestant_a church_n except_o in_o case_n of_o invincible_a ignorance_n who_o can_v doubt_v but_o that_o our_o church_n be_v clear_o the_o safe_a way_n of_o the_o two_o to_o salvation_n and_o therefore_o in_o prudence_n to_o be_v embrace_v rather_o than_o that_o of_o protestant_n 2._o but_o what_o shall_v we_o say_v to_o those_o protestant_n who_o grant_v no_o more_o to_o we_o than_o we_o do_v to_o they_o in_o order_n to_o salvation_n how_o shall_v those_o among_o our_o adversary_n be_v convince_v that_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o religion_n be_v the_o safe_a way_n to_o heaven_n who_o will_v allow_v none_o of_o our_o religion_n to_o be_v in_o a_o capacity_n to_o salvation_n but_o such_o as_o be_v in_o no_o capacity_n of_o know_v and_o understand_v their_o error_n i_o may_v bring_v many_o argument_n to_o convince_v they_o in_o this_o point_n but_o for_o brevity_n sake_n i_o shall_v confine_v myself_o to_o these_o only_a which_o follow_v that_o church_n and_o religion_n be_v the_o more_o safe_a way_n to_o salvation_n in_o which_o many_o be_v save_v according_a to_o the_o principle_n which_o be_v grant_v on_o both_o side_n than_o a_o other_o in_o which_o many_o be_v save_v only_o according_a to_o the_o principle_n or_o doctrine_n of_o one_o party_n but_o very_o few_o or_o none_o according_a
to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o other_o but_o in_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o religion_n many_o be_v save_v according_a to_o the_o principle_n which_o be_v grant_v on_o both_o side_n viz._n both_o by_o catholic_n and_o protestant_n and_o in_o the_o protestant_a church_n many_o be_v save_v only_o according_a to_o the_o principle_n and_o doctrine_n of_o protestant_n but_o very_o few_o or_o none_o according_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o catholic_n ergo_fw-la the_o roman_a church_n and_o religion_n be_v a_o safe_a way_n to_o salvation_n than_o the_o church_n and_o religion_n of_o protestant_n the_o mayor_n i'conceiue_v none_o will_v deny_v the_o minor_a i_o prove_v thus_o in_o the_o catholic_a church_n it_o be_v evident_a that_o many_o be_v to_o depart_v out_o of_o this_o life_n do_v receive_v the_o sacrament_n of_o penance_n these_o according_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v save_v because_o by_o virtue_n of_o this_o sacrament_n they_o receive_v the_o grace_n of_o justification_n whereby_o of_o sinner_n they_o be_v make_v the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o heir_n of_o eternal_a life_n nor_o can_v they_o be_v deny_v to_o be_v save_v according_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o protestant_n see_v they_o believe_v in_o christ_n their_o redeemer_n they_o confide_v in_o god_n goodness_n and_o mercy_n for_o the_o pardon_n of_o their_o sin_n they_o true_o repent_v of_o they_o and_o true_o purpose_n for_o the_o future_a to_o amend_v their_o life_n which_o be_v all_o that_o protestant_a doctrine_n require_v to_o make_v man_n partaker_n of_o christ_n sanctify_a grace_n and_o be_v also_o necessary_o require_v by_o catholic_n to_o make_v they_o free_a subject_n for_o the_o sacrament_n of_o penance_n who_o can_v therefore_o doubt_v but_o that_o all_o such_o person_n be_v save_v both_o according_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o catholic_n and_o protestant_n too_o i_o say_v who_o can_v rational_o and_o with_o charity_n doubt_n but_o that_o catholic_n general_o speak_v be_v teach_v that_o faith_n hope_n true_a repentance_n for_o sin_n past_a and_o a_o purpose_n of_o amendment_n be_v necessary_a to_o the_o due_a receive_n of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o penance_n do_v not_o omit_v to_o exercise_v those_o act_n with_o all_o necessary_a diligence_n and_o sincerity_n especial_o when_o they_o be_v to_o prepare_v themselves_o against_o that_o dreadful_a passage_n to_o eternity_n that_o they_o may_v exercise_v such_o act_n if_o they_o will_v by_o the_o help_n of_o god_n ordinary_a grace_n and_o by_o exercise_v they_o be_v effectual_o save_v the_o bishop_n himself_o can_v deny_v see_v he_o grant_v so_o much_o to_o the_o donatist_n themselves_o who_o he_o confess_v at_o least_o to_o have_v be_v schismatic_n just_o condemn_v by_o the_o orthodox_n church_n and_o in_o some_o respect_n 5._o in_o great_a danger_n of_o damnation_n than_o we_o romanist_n his_o word_n be_v these_o ibidem_fw-la a_o plain_a bone_a donatist_n have_v as_o be_v confess_v true_a baptism_n and_o hold_v the_o foundation_n as_o for_o aught_o i_o know_v the_o donatist_n do_v and_o repent_v of_o what_o ever_o be_v sin_n in_o he_o and_o will_v have_v repent_v of_o the_o schism_n have_v it_o be_v know_v to_o he_o may_v be_v save_v neither_o will_n i_o suppose_v any_o other_o protestant_n deny_v we_o the_o possibility_n of_o exercise_v such_o act_n see_v they_o all_o grant_v that_o with_o involuntary_a error_n true_a faith_n and_o repentanoe_n may_v stand_v and_o have_v no_o sufficient_a reason_n to_o think_v that_o our_o error_n at_o death_n be_v voluntary_a and_o wilful_a or_o that_o we_o do_v wilful_o omit_v any_o thing_n that_o we_o believe_v to_o be_v necessary_a for_o the_o attain_n of_o salvation_n but_o now_o according_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o catholic_n there_o be_v very_o few_o or_o none_o among_o protestant_n that_o escape_n damnation_n or_o that_o be_v 〈◊〉_d if_o they_o live_v and_o die_v out_o of_o the_o communion_n of_o our_o church_n not_o that_o it_o be_v a_o point_n of_o our_o beleese_n that_o many_o protestant_n shall_v be_v damn_v precise_o upon_o the_o account_n of_o be_v heretic_n because_o heresy_n be_v a_o obstinate_a and_o wilful_a error_n against_o faith_n and_o we_o can_v easy_o much_o less_o infallible_o determine_v who_o error_n be_v wilful_a but_o because_o there_o be_v none_o or_o sure_o but_o very_o few_o among_o they_o but_o be_v guilty_a of_o mortal_a sin_n against_o god_n commandment_n and_o because_o the_o ordinary_a mean_n they_o use_v and_o prescribe_v be_v not_o according_a to_o our_o principle_n sufficient_a to_o expiate_v and_o blot_n out_o such_o sin_n it_o be_v well_o know_v that_o though_o protestant_n to_o obtain_v salvation_n believe_v in_o christ_n trust_v in_o his_o merit_n and_o repent_v of_o their_o sin_n yet_o they_o do_v it_o not_o pure_o out_o of_o a_o perfect_a love_n of_o god_n so_o as_o to_o hate_v sin_n above_o all_o evil_n mere_o as_o it_o be_v a_o offence_n against_o the_o divine_a majesty_n and_o to_o prefer_v god_n and_o his_o holy_a commandment_n before_o ourselves_o and_o all_o other_o creature_n for_o this_o be_v a_o very_a hard_a and_o rare_a act_n even_o among_o the_o best_a of_o christian_n but_o at_o best_o upon_o inferior_a and_o low_a motive_n as_o the_o manner_n of_o most_o man_n be_v to_o do_v viz._n in_o consideration_n of_o the_o beatitude_n of_o heaven_n as_o it_o be_v their_o own_o particular_a good_a or_o for_o the_o avoid_n of_o the_o pain_n of_o hell_n as_o it_o be_v their_o particular_a and_o chief_a harm_n now_o according_a to_o our_o doctrine_n such_o kind_n of_o repentance_n as_o this_o be_v no_o sufficient_a remedy_n to_o blot_n out_o sin_n unless_o it_o be_v join_v which_o the_o sacrament_n of_o penance_n viz._n confession_n and_o priestly_a absolution_n etc._n etc._n which_o protestant_n reject_v i_o say_v without_o the_o sacrament_n of_o penance_n actual_o and_o due_o recoined_a all_o catholic_n hold_v that_o neither_o faith_n nor_o hope_n nor_o any_o repentance_n or_o sorrow_n for_o sin_n can_v save_v we_o but_o that_o only_a which_o be_v join_v with_o a_o perfect_a love_n of_o god_n whereby_o we_o be_v dispose_v to_o loose_v all_o and_o suffer_v all_o that_o can_v be_v imagine_v rather_o than_o to_o offend_v god_n yea_o though_o there_o be_v indeed_o neither_o heaven_n to_o reward_v we_o nor_o hell_n to_o punish_v we_o which_o be_v a_o thing_n so_o hard_o to_o be_v find_v especial_o 〈◊〉_d such_o as_o believe_v a_o man_n be_v iustify_v by_o faith_n only_o it_o follow_v evident_o that_o in_o our_o doctrine_n very_o few_o or_o no_o protestant_n be_v save_v the_o conclusion_n therefore_o be_v undeniable_a that_o our_o church_n be_v a_o safe_a way_n to_o salua_fw-la ion_n then_o that_o of_o protestant_n my_o second_o argument_n be_v this_o that_o church_n and_o religion_n which_o afford_v all_o necessary_a mean_n of_o salvation_n be_v a_o safe_a way_n to_o salvation_n than_o a_o other_o which_o do_v not_o but_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o religion_n afford_v all_o necessary_a mean_n of_o salvation_n and_o the_o protestant_n do_v not_o ergo_fw-la the_o roman_a church_n and_o religion_n be_v a_o safe_a way_n to_o salvation_n than_o the_o church_n and_o religion_n of_o protestant_n the_o mayor_n be_v evident_a the_o minor_a consist_v of_o two_o part_n which_o i_o shall_v prove_v in_o order_n the_o first_o which_o be_v that_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o religion_n afford_v all_o necessary_a mean_n of_o salvation_n appear_v partly_o by_o the_o confession_n of_o protestant_n themselves_o who_o acknowledge_v general_o that_o in_o our_o church_n and_o religion_n be_v contain_v all_o foundamentall_a point_n that_o be_v all_o thing_n absolute_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n and_o partly_o because_o it_o can_v be_v prove_v that_o any_o thing_n be_v of_o absolute_a necessity_n in_o order_n to_o salvation_n which_o be_v not_o find_v in_o our_o church_n communion_n the_o second_o that_o protestant_n stand_v to_o their_o own_o principle_n neither_o have_v nor_o can_v have_v thing_n necessary_a for_o salvation_n i_o prove_v by_o this_o one_o argument_n it_o be_v certain_a that_o divine_a faith_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n according_a to_o these_o place_n of_o holy_a writ_n sine_fw-la fide_fw-la impossibile_fw-it est_fw-la placere_fw-la deo_fw-la hebr._fw-la 11._o without_o faith_n it_o be_v impossible_a to_o please_v god_n qui_fw-la non_fw-la crediderit_fw-la condemnabitur_fw-la marc._n 16._o he_o that_o believe_v not_o shall_v be_v damn_v it_o be_v likewise_o certain_a that_o this_o divine_a faith_n must_v be_v firm_a sure_a and_o without_o doubt_n or_o hesitation_n in_o so_o much_o that_o if_o a_o angel_n from_o heaven_n shall_v preach_v the_o contrary_a to_o what_o we_o believe_v it_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v alter_v according_a to_o that_o of_o the_o apostle_n galat._n 1._o 8._o now_o how_o be_v it_o possible_a that_o protestant_n stand_v to_o their_o
principle_n shall_v have_v this_o firm_a sure_a and_o undoubt_v faith_n concern_v any_o mystery_n of_o religion_n they_o will_v say_v upon_o the_o authority_n of_o god_n revelation_n or_o the_o write_a word_n but_o jaske_n how_o be_v it_o possible_a for_o they_o to_o believe_v any_o divine_a truth_n firm_o certain_o and_o infallible_o for_o the_o authority_n of_o scripture_n or_o the_o write_a word_n unless_o they_o do_v first_o firm_o certain_o and_o infallible_o believe_v that_o scripture_n be_v the_o true_a word_n of_o god_n and_o that_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o word_n be_v such_o as_o they_o understand_v and_o how_o can_v they_o believe_v this_o most_o firm_o and_o certain_o if_o they_o neither_o be_v nor_o can_v be_v infallible_o sure_a according_a to_o their_o own_o principle_n that_o the_o church_n err_v not_o in_o deliver_v such_o and_o such_o book_n for_o canonical_a scripture_n or_o that_o those_o passage_n upon_o which_o they_o ground_n their_o belief_n be_v the_o very_a same_o with_o the_o original_a text_n or_o in_o case_n they_o understand_v not_o the_o original_n that_o there_o have_v be_v no_o error_n commit_v in_o the_o translation_n of_o they_o yea_o do_v they_o not_o hold_v principle_n absolute_o inconsistent_a with_o this_o certainty_n when_o they_o teach_v that_o not_o only_o private_a man_n but_o general_n council_n and_o even_o the_o whole_a church_n may_v err_v in_o matter_n of_o great_a consequence_n how_o can_v they_o then_o be_v sure_a that_o the_o word_n of_o scripture_n for_o which_o they_o believe_v the_o divinity_n of_o christ_n for_o example_n be_v to_o be_v understand_v in_o that_o sense_n in_o which_o themselves_o understand_v they_o and_o not_o in_o the_o sense_n which_o the_o arian_n put_v upon_o they_o if_o general_n council_n and_o the_o whole_a church_n may_v err_v in_o expound_v scripture_n what_o certainty_n of_o belief_n can_v we_o have_v in_o this_o and_o in_o diverse_a other_o like_a point_n if_o it_o be_v answer_v that_o christ_n divinity_n be_v a_o fundamental_a point_n and_o that_o in_o fundamental_a point_n we_o must_v believe_v the_o church_n i_o reply_v this_o answer_n satisfy_v not_o the_o difficulty_n for_o i_o ask_v upon_o what_o ground_n do_v we_o believe_v it_o to_o be_v a_o fundamental_a point_n if_o because_o the_o whole_a church_n teach_v it_o to_o be_v so_o and_o the_o whole_a church_n can_v err_v in_o point_n fundamental_a i_o answer_v it_o must_v first_o be_v prove_v that_o the_o arian_n be_v no_o part_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n for_o if_o they_o be_v a_o part_n of_o it_o the_o whole_a church_n do_v not_o teach_v it_o to_o say_v the_o arian_n be_v no_o part_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n because_o they_o err_v in_o christ_n divinity_n which_o be_v a_o point_n fundamental_a be_v to_o suppose_v that_o for_o certain_a which_o be_v principal_o in_o question_n that_o christ_n divinity_n therefore_o be_v a_o point_n fundamental_a must_v be_v prove_v some_o other_o way_n then_o by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n if_o that_o way_n be_v scripture_n the_o former_a difficulty_n return_v viz._n how_o a_o man_n shall_v be_v sure_a according_a to_o protestant_a principle_n that_o scripture_n be_v to_o be_v understand_v in_o the_o catholic_a sense_n and_o not_o in_o the_o sense_n of_o arian_n and_o if_o it_o be_v any_o other_o way_n beside_o scripture_n according_a to_o protestant_a principle_n it_o will_v not_o be_v infallible_a but_o subject_a to_o error_n and_o consequent_o will_v not_o be_v sufficient_a to_o ground_n infallible_a certainty_n it_o be_v evident_a therefore_o that_o protestant_n stand_v to_o their_o ground_n can_v believe_v either_o the_o trinity_n or_o christ_n divinity_n and_o incarnation_n or_o the_o redemption_n of_o mankind_n by_o his_o death_n or_o any_o other_o mystery_n and_o point_n of_o faith_n with_o that_o firmeness_n and_o certainty_n which_o be_v requisite_a to_o a_o act_n of_o faith_n nay_o it_o follow_v that_o they_o can_v be_v altogether_o sure_a of_o these_o mystery_n of_o christian_a religion_n as_o they_o be_v or_o may_v be_v of_o thing_n relate_v even_o by_o heathen_a historian_n see_v more_o agree_v that_o those_o thing_n be_v true_a then_o that_o the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n in_o those_o controverted_a point_n be_v such_o as_o protestant_n understand_v these_o argument_n we_o conceive_v sufficient_a to_o convince_v any_o rational_a understanding_n that_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o religion_n be_v a_o safe_a way_n to_o salvation_n then_o that_o of_o protestant_n let_v we_o now_o take_v notice_n of_o the_o bishop_n answer_n and_o assertion_n touch_v this_o question_n 3._o whereas_o therefore_o protestant_n do_v common_o tax_v we_o for_o want_v of_o charity_n because_o we_o general_o deny_v salvation_n to_o those_o that_o be_v out_o of_o our_o church_n a._n c._n prove_v that_o this_o denial_n beside_o the_o threaten_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o holy_a father_n denounce_v against_o all_o such_o as_o be_v not_o within_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o true_a church_n be_v ground_v even_o upon_o charity_n it_o be_v far_o more_o charitable_a to_o forewarn_v a_o man_n plain_o of_o a_o danger_n then_o to_o let_v he_o run_v into_o it_o through_o a_o false_a security_n there_o be_v but_o one_o true_a faith_n say_v he_o 650_o and_o one_o true_a church_n out_o of_o which_o be_v no_o salvation_n and_o he_o that_o will_v not_o hear_v this_o church_n let_v he_o be_v unto_o the_o say_v christ_n himself_o matth._n 18._o 17._o as_o a_o heathen_a and_o publican_n if_o salvation_n than_o may_v be_v have_v in_o our_o church_n as_o the_o bishop_n with_o other_o protestant_n consess_v and_o there_o be_v no_o true_a church_n nor_o true_a faith_n but_o one_o in_o and_o by_o which_o salvation_n may_v be_v have_v as_o be_v likewise_o confess_v it_o follow_v that_o out_o of_o our_o church_n there_o be_v no_o salvation_n to_o be_v hope_v for_o and_o consequent_o that_o it_o be_v no_o want_n of_o charity_n in_o we_o to_o tell_v protestant_n of_o this_o but_o rather_o want_v of_o light_n and_o good_a understanding_n in_o they_o to_o think_v our_o admonition_n to_o be_v uncharitable_a the_o bishop_n himself_o confess_v that_o he_o who_o will_v not_o 20._o both_o hear_v and_o obey_v the_o catholic_a christian_a church_n yea_o the_o particular_a church_n in_o which_o he_o live_v too_o so_o far_o as_o it_o in_o necessary_n agree_v with_o the_o universal_a be_v in_o as_o bad_a a_o condition_n as_o a_o heathen_a or_o a_o publican_n and_o perhaps_o in_o some_o respect_v worse_a but_o he_o err_v very_o much_o in_o the_o conceit_n he_o frame_v of_o the_o catholic_a church_n that_o must_v teach_v we_o it_o be_v a_o thing_n according_a to_o his_o description_n more_o like_o a_o jdea_n platonica_fw-la or_o chimaera_n of_o some_o fantastical_a brain_n than_o a_o true_a subsistent_a assembly_n or_o society_n of_o christian_n a_o thing_n as_o little_a able_a to_o speak_v or_o declare_v with_o requisite_a authority_n any_o certain_a and_o uniform_a doctrine_n or_o matter_n to_o be_v believe_v as_o himself_o and_o his_o party_n be_v unwilling_a to_o hearken_v to_o the_o truth_n for_o by_o the_o catholic_a church_n in_o his_o notion_n nothing_o else_o be_v 〈◊〉_d understand_v but_o a_o mix_a multitude_n of_o all_o 〈◊〉_d and_o fact_n of_o christian_n viz._n greek_o armenian_n lutheran_n caluinist_n prelatical_a and_o presbyterian_a protestant_n anabaptist_n 〈◊〉_d and_o what_o not_o beside_o the_o roman_a catholic_n but_o how_o be_v it_o possible_a that_o such_o a_o church_n as_o this_o shall_v ever_o instruct_v and_o command_v we_o what_o to_o believe_v how_o shall_v a_o man_n that_o 〈◊〉_d in_o the_o 〈◊〉_d or_o in_o any_o other_o remote_a part_n of_o the_o world_n hear_v the_o common_a voyed_z of_o a_o church_n which_o speak_v by_o the_o mouth_n of_o so_o many_o disagree_a party_n or_o how_o shall_v a_o man_n be_v sure_a that_o such_o and_o such_o a_o doctrine_n be_v right_o command_v he_o by_o the_o catholic_a church_n take_v even_o in_o the_o bishop_n own_o sense_n unless_o he_o be_v first_o 〈◊〉_d what_o the_o faith_n be_v without_o which_o it_o be_v impossible_a to_o be_v a_o part_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n last_o how_o shall_v he_o before_o that_o all_o who_o profess_v that_o faith_n do_v also_o teach_v and_o command_v the_o doctrinal_a which_o in_o obedience_n to_o the_o bishop_n 〈◊〉_d church_n he_o be_v require_v to_o believe_v again_o 5._o if_o donatist_n for_o any_o thing_n the_o bishop_n 〈◊〉_d hold_v the_o foundation_n and_o consequent_o be_v a_o part_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o if_o error_n that_o ibidem_fw-la come_v too_o near_o 〈◊〉_d be_v 〈◊〉_d repugnant_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o do_v shake_v the_o very_a foundation_n of_o christian_a belief_n as_o the_o relatour_n pretend_v our_o opinion_n do_v may_v be_v find_v in_o that_o which_o be_v 〈◊〉_d the_o
i_o be_o they_o never_o say_v or_o think_v he_o be_v there_o by_o such_o a_o spiritual_a presence_n as_o protestant_n means_n that_o be_v exclusive_a of_o his_o truly-reall_a presence_n and_o by_o faith_n only_o or_o that_o he_o be_v not_o there_o as_o true_o and_o real_o as_o he_o be_v in_o heaven_n whether_o we_o exercise_v a_o act_n of_o faith_n or_o no._n now_o when_o the_o bishop_n insist_o so_o much_o upon_o a_o spiritual_a participation_n of_o the_o true_a and_o real_a body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n true_o and_o real_o by_o faith_n either_o he_o mean_v such_o a_o participation_n as_o be_v proper_a to_o this_o sacrament_n and_o can_v be_v have_v save_o only_o in_o the_o oral_a and_o actual_a receive_n of_o the_o sacramental_a element_n or_o he_o mean_v such_o a_o participation_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n as_o devoute_a person_n may_v have_v in_o their_o soul_n whether_o they_o receive_v those_o element_n corporal_o or_o no._n if_o he_o mean_v this_o second_o only_a than_o both_o party_n can_v be_v say_v to_o agree_v in_o the_o proper_a point_n of_o sacramental_a participation_n see_v it_o be_v now_o suppose_v to_o be_v such_o but_o only_o a_o spiritual_a kind_n of_o receive_v christ_n common_a to_o other_o devoute_a office_n of_o christian_a piety_n as_o well_o as_o to_o the_o sacrament_n if_o he_o mean_v the_o first_o viz._n such_o a_o participation_n of_o christ_n body_n as_o be_v proper_a only_a to_o the_o sacrament_n and_o can_v be_v have_v but_o when_o the_o sacrament_n be_v oral_o and_o actual_o receive_v to_o make_v it_o appear_v that_o we_o agree_v with_o protestant_n in_o it_o they_o must_v first_o show_v what_o it_o be_v and_o particular_o that_o it_o be_v something_o real_o different_a and_o distinct_a from_o a_o devoute_a elevation_n of_o heart_n remembrance_n of_o christ_n passion_n trust_n and_o application_n of_o his_o merit_n etc_n otherwise_o they_o relapse_n into_o the_o former_a difficulty_n viz_o of_o put_v such_o a_o participation_n of_o christ_n as_o be_v not_o proper_a to_o the_o sacrament_n for_o certain_o none_o of_o all_o those_o participation_n of_o christ_n last_o mention_v be_v proper_a to_o the_o sacrament_n but_o may_v be_v exercise_v at_o other_o time_n and_o by_o other_o mean_n as_o namely_o when_o one_o eat_v his_o common_a food_n at_o the_o table_n when_o he_o drink_v wine_n or_o beer_n when_o he_o look_v upon_o a_o crucifix_n when_o he_o pray_v meditate_v or_o the_o like_a but_o this_o neither_o the_o bishop_n not_o any_o of_o his_o party_n can_v show_v stand_v to_o calvin_n and_o their_o own_o principle_n that_o be_v they_o can_v show_v what_o their_o spiritual_a participation_n or_o receive_v of_o christ_n signify_v in_o effect_n more_o than_o a_o devoute_a elevation_n of_o heart_n remembrance_n of_o christ_n passion_n trust_n and_o application_n of_o his_o merit_n or_o something_o of_o like_a nature_n do_v and_o perform_v oftentimes_o as_o real_o without_o the_o sacrament_n as_o with_o it_o and_o consequent_o it_o can_v never_o be_v say_v that_o both_o party_n viz._n roman-catholiques_a and_o protestant_n be_v of_o the_o same_o sentiment_n or_o do_v agree_v in_o any_o real_a reception_n or_o participation_n of_o christ_n proper_a to_o the_o sacrament_n for_o all_o the_o world_n know_v the_o 〈◊〉_d participation_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o sacrament_n which_o catholic_n believe_v signify_v a_o quite_o different_a thing_n from_o this_o 7._o let_v we_o now_o consider_v what_o his_o lordship_n have_v to_o say_v to_o a._n c._n for_o his_o resolute_a affirm_v there_o be_v no_o peril_n of_o any_o damnable_a heresy_n schismo_n or_o other_o sin_n in_o resolve_v to_o line_n and_o die_v in_o the_o roman_a church_n this_o the_o relatour_n can_v digest_v therefore_o he_o reply_v 5._o not_o so_o neither_o for_o he_o that_o line_n in_o the_o roman_a church_n with_o such_o a_o resolution_n be_v presume_v to_o beleene_n as_o that_o church_n beleene_n and_o he_o that_o do_v so_o in_o the_o bishop_n opinion_n be_v guilty_a more_o or_o less_o not_o only_o of_o the_o schism_n which_o that_o church_n cause_v at_o first_o by_o her_o corruption_n and_o now_o continue_v by_o her_o power_n but_o of_o her_o damnable_a opinion_n too_o in_o point_n of_o misbelief_n and_o of_o all_o other_o sin_n also_o which_o the_o doctrine_n and_o misbelief_n of_o that_o church_n lead_v he_o into_o he_o seem_v by_o this_o plain_o to_o retract_v what_o he_o former_o grant_v touch_v possibility_n of_o salvation_n to_o roman_a catholic_n for_o how_o can_v they_o possible_o be_v save_v that_o live_v and_o die_v in_o the_o guilt_n of_o damnable_a opinion_n and_o sin_n or_o what_o sort_n of_o catholic_n be_v they_o who_o the_o relatour_n think_v may_v possible_o be_v in_o state_n of_o salvation_n be_v they_o such_o only_a as_o do_v not_o believe_v as_o that_o church_n viz._n the_o roman_a believe_v but_o only_o live_v in_o outward_a communion_n with_o she_o and_o make_v only_o outward_a show_n and_o feign_a profession_n to_o believe_v that_o which_o in_o heart_n they_o disbeleeve_v he_o give_v indeed_o some_o cause_n to_o think_v that_o this_o be_v his_o meaning_n when_o he_o tell_v we_o how_o willing_a he_o be_v to_o hope_v there_o be_v many_o among_o we_o which_o wish_v the_o superstition_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n abolish_v and_o will_v have_v all_o thing_n amend_v that_o be_v amiss_o if_o it_o be_v in_o their_o power_n etc._z and_o of_o such_o particular_o profess_v ibidem_fw-la that_o he_o dare_v not_o deny_v they_o possibility_n of_o salvation_n but_o how_o can_v it_o possible_o sink_v into_o a_o sober_a man_n head_n to_o judge_v he_o capable_a of_o salvation_n that_o for_o temporal_a and_o sinister_a end_n only_o contrary_a to_o knowledge_n and_o the_o light_n of_o his_o own_o conscience_n comply_v outward_o with_o superstition_n and_o many_o other_o sinful_a and_o jdolatrous_a practice_n all_o his_o life_n long_o and_o deny_v it_o to_o he_o who_o hate_v all_o superstition_n and_o sin_n in_o his_o very_a soul_n and_o will_v not_o comply_v with_o any_o if_o he_o know_v it_o but_o adhere_v to_o the_o doctrine_n and_o practice_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n mere_o for_o conscience_n sake_n and_o for_o no_o other_o reason_n but_o because_o he_o simple_o and_o sincere_o believe_v all_o her_o doctrine_n to_o be_v true_a and_o consonant_a to_o god_n word_n and_o all_o her_o allow_a custom_n and_o observance_n to_o be_v pious_a and_o holy_a what_o be_v this_o but_o to_o say_v he_o be_v a_o honest_a man_n that_o take_v his_o neighbour_n good_n witting_o and_o willing_o from_o he_o know_v they_o to_o be_v his_o and_o that_o he_o be_v a_o knave_n and_o deserve_v to_o be_v hang_v that_o take_v they_o unwitting_o and_o very_o believe_v that_o they_o be_v his_o own_o second_o he_o tell_v we_o that_o it_o be_v one_o thing_n to_o live_v 〈◊〉_d church_n and_o not_o to_o comunicate_v with_o it_o in_o schism_n or_o in_o any_o false_a ibidem_fw-la worship_n and_o a_o other_o thing_n to_o live_v in_o a_o schismatical_a church_n and_o to_o communicate_v with_o it_o in_o the_o schism_n and_o corruption_n which_o that_o church_n teach_v we_o grant_v it_o be_v ourselves_o in_o some_o sort_n a_o instance_n of_o this_o truth_n who_o the_o catholic_a church_n permut_v both_o in_o england_n germany_n and_o other_o country_n to_o live_v among_o those_o she_o esteem_v both_o sehismatiques_n and_o heretic_n too_o though_o we_o think_v this_o be_v not_o properly_z speaking_z to_o live_v in_o a_o schismatical_a church_n yet_o she_o do_v not_o permit_v we_o to_o communicate_v with_o they_o in_o their_o shisme_n but_o when_o he_o proceed_v thereupon_o to_o charge_v the_o roman_a church_n with_o be_v worse_o and_o more_o cruel_a than_o the_o church_n of_o israel_n even_o under_o achab_n and_o jezabel_n be_v when_o so_o many_o worship_v the_o calf_n in_o dan_n and_o bethel_n because_o forsooth_o he_o do_v not_o find_v that_o this_o doctrine_n you_o mu_o sacrifice_n in_o the_o high_a place_n or_o this_o you_o mu_o not_o sacrifice_n at_o the_o one_o altar_n in_o jerusalem_n be_v either_o teach_v by_o the_o priest_n or_o maintain_v by_o the_o prophet_n or_o enjoin_v by_o the_o sanedrim_n whereas_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n say_v he_o have_v solemn_o decree_v her_o error_n and_o impose_v they_o upon_o man_n under_o the_o great_a penalty_n yea_o and_o err_a have_v decree_v withal_o that_o she_o can_v err_v we_o answer_v this_o be_v not_o to_o argue_v as_o a_o logician_n shall_v ex_fw-la concessis_fw-la or_o probatis_fw-la but_o rather_o upon_o false_a and_o unproved_a supposition_n to_o bring_v in_o lieu_n of_o argument_n rail_v accusation_n against_o our_o superior_n which_o the_o apostle_n judas_n 8._o 9_o utter_o condemn_v be_v it_o sufficient_a for_o the_o relatour_n to_o say_v that_o transubstantiation_n purgatory_n
clear_o in_o this_o case_n his_o five_o instance_n be_v that_o catholic_n and_o protestant_n agree_v that_o in_o the_o english_a lyturgie_n there_o be_v no_o positive_a error_n but_o both_o party_n do_v not_o agree_v that_o there_o be_v no_o error_n in_o the_o roman_a missal_n therefore_o say_v the_o bishop_n according_a to_o a._n cs._n rule_n it_o shall_v be_v better_o and_o more_o safe_a to_o worship_n god_n by_o the_o english_a lyturgie_n then_o by_o the_o roman_a missal_n which_o he_o be_v sure_a we_o will_v not_o grant_v i_o answer_v first_o all_o catholic_n do_v not_o agree_v that_o there_o be_v no_o positive_a error_n in_o the_o english_a lyturgie_n neither_o dare_v the_o relatour_n affirm_v they_o do_v but_o only_o that_o some_o jesuit_n confess_v it_o so_o much_o in_o his_o hear_n second_o though_o they_o do_v that_o be_v though_o all_o catholic_n do_v grant_v there_o be_v no_o positive_a error_n in_o the_o english_a seruice-booke_n yet_o it_o follow_v not_o that_o therefore_o the_o english_a lyturgie_n be_v better_a or_o more_o safe_a to_o be_v use_v in_o the_o service_n of_o god_n than_o our_o missal_n why_o because_o catholic_n do_v not_o agree_v that_o it_o be_v so_o much_o as_o positive_o safe_a or_o consistent_a with_o salvation_n to_o use_v it_o as_o protestant_n do_v that_o be_v out_o of_o heretical_a persuasion_n and_o with_o heretical_a contempt_n of_o the_o roman_a missal_n for_o though_o it_o contain_v no_o positive_a error_n yet_o to_o use_v it_o out_o of_o any_o such_o principle_n be_v certain_o damnable_a sin_n and_o destructive_a of_o salvation_n the_o arian_n creed_n contain_v no_o positive_a error_n against_o faith_n yet_o because_o they_o do_v not_o contain_v all_o that_o be_v necessary_o to_o be_v believe_v and_o confess_v by_o christian_n and_o be_v set_v forth_o by_o such_o as_o be_v know_v enemy_n of_o the_o catholic_a faith_n which_o be_v want_v in_o they_o they_o be_v always_o anathematise_v and_o condemn_v by_o the_o church_n as_o much_o as_o if_o they_o have_v contain_v positive_a and_o express_a error_n do_v catholic_n grant_v that_o those_o who_o both_o use_v the_o english_a lyturgie_n and_o reject_v the_o roman_a missal_n as_o protestant_n do_v be_v for_o all_o that_o in_o state_n of_o salvation_n though_o they_o never_o repent_v and_o do_v sufficient_o know_v the_o ground_n and_o reason_n why_o the_o church_n forbid_v the_o use_n of_o it_o the_o argument_n will_v have_v force_n but_o see_v it_o be_v otherwise_o our_o maxim_n stand_v yet_o good_a and_o it_o be_v safe_a in_o order_n to_o salvation_n to_o worship_n god_n according_a to_o the_o roman_a missal_n rather_o than_o according_a to_o the_o english_a seruice-booke_n notwithstanding_o it_o be_v grant_v which_o we_o do_v not_o that_o the_o english_a book_n contain_v no_o positive_a error_n to_o his_o six_o of_o the_o arian_n confess_v christ_n to_o be_v of_o like_a 1._o substance_n with_o the_o father_n and_o the_o catholic_n confess_v he_o to_o be_v of_o the_o same_o substance_n i_o answer_v the_o catholic_n never_o grant_v possibility_n of_o salvation_n to_o the_o arian_n upon_o the_o account_n of_o that_o confession_n but_o always_o withstand_v and_o condemn_v it_o as_o a_o heretical_a false_a and_o impious_a assertion_n take_v in_o their_o know_a sense_n that_o be_v restrictive_o and_o as_o import_v no_o more_o than_o like_a for_o in_o this_o sense_n that_o maxim_n hold_v good_a nullum_fw-la simile_n est_fw-la idem_fw-la and_o to_o say_v the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v of_o like_a substance_n with_o the_o father_n in_o that_o sense_n be_v plain_o to_o deny_v he_o to_o be_v true_a god_n and_o of_o the_o same_o substance_n with_o the_o father_n the_o like_a be_v to_o be_v say_v of_o his_o seven_o ground_v upon_o the_o agreement_n of_o dissent_v party_n in_o the_o metaphorical_a resurrection_n 2._o of_o the_o soul_n from_o sin_n whence_o the_o bishop_n will_v gather_v that_o by_o a._n cs._n rule_n it_o shall_v be_v safe_a to_o believe_v only_o the_o say_v metaphorical_a resurrection_n of_o the_o soul_n and_o let_v that_o of_o the_o body_n alone_o but_o most_o untrue_o for_o do_v ever_o any_o good_a christian_a allow_v possibility_n of_o salvation_n to_o any_o that_o deny_v the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o body_n if_o not_o how_o be_v this_o instance_n within_o the_o rule_n which_o suppose_v that_o both_o party_n must_v agree_v in_o grant_v salvation_n to_o one_o in_o his_o way_n or_o contest_v opinion_n the_o same_o fallacy_n be_v apparent_a in_o his_o eight_o and_o nine_o for_o .4_o do_v ever_o any_o catholic_a christian_a allow_v salvation_n to_o a_o turk_n or_o a_o jew_n in_o his_o religion_n because_o they_o believe_v one_o god_n or_o to_o a_o nestorian_a heretic_n because_o he_o believe_v that_o christ_n be_v true_a man_n what_o gross_a impertinence_n be_v these_o but_o no_o marvel_n for_o it_o be_v too_o apparent_a our_o adversary_n have_v quite_o forget_v the_o rule_n and_o frame_v another_o thing_n of_o it_o a._n cs._n rule_n speak_v precise_o this_o andnomore_o viz._n that_o when_o two_o party_n differ_v in_o point_n of_o religion_n it_o be_v in_o prudence_n safe_a to_o take_v that_o way_n wherein_o both_o party_n grant_v salvation_n to_o be_v obtainable_a or_o to_o contain_v nothing_o in_o it_o opposite_a or_o inconsistent_a with_o salvation_n whereas_o the_o relatour_n present_v it_o in_o a_o other_o dress_n and_o make_v it_o speak_v thus_o viz._n that_o when_o party_n disagree_v as_o abovesayd_a it_o be_v safe_a to_o resolve_v a_o man_n faith_n into_o that_o in_o which_o the_o dissent_v party_n agree_v and_o to_o believe_v no_o more_o than_o they_o do_v agree_v in_o which_o be_v far_o from_o truth_n and_o a_o thing_n which_o never_o come_v into_o a._n c._n s_o thought_n and_o yet_o upon_o this_o mistake_n it_o be_v evident_a to_o any_o that_o will_v consider_v they_o most_o of_o the_o bishop_n instance_n run_v tlius_fw-la all_o the_o relatour_n example_n due_o weigh_v be_v find_v too_o light_a and_o discover_v to_o be_v indeed_o rather_o amusement_n than_o proof_n a._n cs_n proposition_n that_o it_o be_v safe_a in_o religion_n to_o go_v that_o way_n which_o be_v confess_v by_o both_o party_n to_o afford_v possibility_n of_o salvation_n or_o to_o contain_v no_o damnable_a sin_n in_o it_o remain_v in_o the_o mean_a while_n a_o firm_a and_o unshake_a truth_n notwithstanding_o all_o our_o adversary_n endeavour_n to_o undermine_v it_o if_o any_o thing_n yet_o be_v want_v to_o the_o due_a justify_n of_o it_o it_o shall_v be_v declare_v in_o the_o follow_a chapter_n at_o present_a the_o bishop_n have_v make_v so_o many_o assault_n in_o vain_a seem_v to_o retire_v and_o put_v himself_o upon_o the_o defensive_a 9_o plead_v he_o be_v not_o out_o of_o the_o catholic_a church_n though_o out_o of_o the_o roman_a because_o the_o roman_a be_v not_o the_o catholic_a but_o a_o member_n of_o it_o as_o the_o church_n of_o england_n he_o say_v be_v and_o require_v we_o to_o margin_n show_v how_o one_o and_o the_o same_o church_n can_v be_v in_o different_a respect_n and_o relation_n both_o a_o particular_a and_o also_o the_o catholic_a church_n but_o i_o answer_v how_o often_o have_v this_o be_v show_v already_o by_o all_o catholic_a writer_n have_v his_o lordship_n be_v more_o willing_a to_o understand_v 10._o the_o truth_n from_o they_o then_o to_o cavil_n about_o word_n and_o also_o by_o we_o in_o this_o treatise_n namely_o that_o the_o roman_a church_n as_o it_o signify_v the_o christian_n of_o the_o diocese_n or_o province_n of_o rome_n only_o be_v a_o particular_a church_n but_o as_o it_o signify_v the_o society_n of_o all_o such_o christian_n as_o profess_v the_o catholic_a faith_n do_v acknowledge_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n for_o st._n peter_n successor_n and_o head_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n under_o christ_n so_o it_o be_v formal_o and_o proper_o speak_v not_o a_o particular_a but_o the_o very_a catholic_a and_o universal_a church_n of_o christ_n they_o be_v all_o either_o heretical_a or_o schismatical_a church_n or_o both_o that_o do_v not_o acnowledge_v this_o our_o adversary_n therefore_o may_v flourish_v as_o much_o as_o he_o please_v with_o his_o vain_a and_o feign_a allegory_n of_o a_o elder_a and_o young_a sister_n ibidem_fw-la but_o we_o tell_v his_o follower_n such_o rhetoric_n may_v serve_v to_o palliate_v but_o shall_v never_o justify_v nor_o excuse_v schism_n the_o roman_a church_n will_v be_v find_v in_o the_o day_n of_o account_n to_o have_v be_v not_o a_o elder_a sister_n but_o a_o mother_n and_o such_o a_o mother_n who_o 8._o law_n and_o authority_n be_v not_o so_o light_o to_o have_v be_v forsake_v and_o reject_v by_o any_o of_o her_o petulant_a and_o disobedient_a daughter_n nor_o matter_n it_o much_o whether_o britain_n first_o conversion_n be_v before_o st._n peter_n come_v to_o
rome_n or_o after_o he_o be_v pastor_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n before_o he_o settle_v his_o seat_n at_o rome_n and_o the_o british_a christian_n if_o any_o such_o be_v before_o that_o time_n may_v very_o well_o at_o least_o for_o aught_o the_o bishop_n shew_v to_o the_o contrary_a be_v instruct_v by_o their_o preacher_n to_o believe_v and_o acknowledge_v he_o for_o such_o chap._n 24._o the_o conclusion_n of_o the_o point_n touch_v the_o salvation_n of_o roman_a catholic_n and_o the_o roman_a faith_n prove_v to_o be_v the_o same_o now_o that_o it_o ever_o be_v argument_n 1._o all_o catholic_n in_o possibility_n of_o salvation_n and_o all_o protestant_a teacher_n exclude_v by_o the_o bishop_n own_o ground_n 2._o no_o church_n different_a in_o doctrine_n from_o the_o roman_a can_v be_v show_v to_o have_v hold_v all_o fundamental_a point_n in_o all_o age_n 3._o the_o bishop_n confident_a pretence_n to_o salvation_n upon_o the_o account_n of_o his_o faith_n rather_o presumptuous_a then_o well_o ground_v 4._o his_o pretend_v to_o believe_v as_o the_o primitive_a church_n and_o four_o first_o general_n council_n believe_v disprove_v by_o instance_n 5._o christ_n descent_n into_o limbus_n patrum_n the_o doctrine_n and_o worship_v of_o image_n the_o public_a allow_v practice_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n 6._o a._n c_o '_o interrogatories_n defend_v 7._o protestant_n have_v not_o the_o same_o bible_n with_o catholic_n in_o any_o true_a sense_n 8._o the_o index_n expurgatorius_fw-la not_o devise_v by_o we_o to_o corrupt_v the_o father_n 9_o no_o disagreement_n among_o catholic_n in_o point_n define_v by_o the_o church_n 10._o catholic_n have_v infallible_a faith_n of_o what_o they_o believe_v either_o explicit_o or_o implicit_o but_o protestant_n none_o at_o all_o that_o be_v infallible_a 1._o the_o controversy_n go_v on_o touch_v roman-catholiques_a salvation_n the_o bishop_n have_v first_o yield_v 1._o absolute_o that_o the_o lady_n may_v be_v save_v in_o the_o roman_a faith_n nettle_v a_o little_a as_o it_o seem_v by_o mr._n fisher_n bid_v her_o mark_n that_o return_v smart_o upon_o he_o in_o these_o word_n she_o may_v be_v better_o save_v in_o it_o than_o you_o and_o bid_v he_o mark_v that_o too_o well_o we_o will_v not_o interpret_v this_o to_o be_v any_o restrain_v of_o his_o former_a grant_n touch_v the_o lady_n salvation_n but_o only_o a_o item_n to_o his_o adversary_n to_o look_v to_o himself_o for_o that_o in_o the_o bishop_n opinion_n his_o case_n be_v not_o so_o good_a as_o the_o lady_n in_o order_n to_o salvation_n but_o what_o be_v his_o reason_n because_o for_o sooth_n any_o man_n that_o know_v so_o much_o of_o the_o truth_n as_o mr._n fisher_n and_o other_o of_o his_o call_n do_v and_o yet_o oppose_v it_o must_v needs_o be_v in_o great_a danger_n so_o that_o it_o seem_v learning_n and_o sufficiency_n according_a to_o the_o bishop_n have_v such_o a_o connexion_n with_o protestant_a doctrine_n that_o it_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d easy_a matter_n to_o have_v the_o one_o and_o not_o to_o see_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o other_o but_o how_o false_a this_o surmise_n be_v appear_v by_o the_o experience_n of_o so_o many_o learned_a man_n in_o the_o catholic_a church_n who_o be_v so_o far_o from_o discover_v error_n in_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o truth_n in_o the_o contrary_a doctrine_n of_o protestant_n that_o the_o more_o learned_a they_o be_v and_o the_o better_a they_o understand_v and_o weigh_v the_o ground_n of_o controversy_n betwixt_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o her_o adversary_n the_o more_o they_o be_v confirm_v in_o the_o catholic_a doctrine_n again_o what_o likelihood_n be_v there_o that_o by_o ponder_v the_o pretend_a reason_n of_o protestant_n for_o their_o religion_n i_o shall_v ever_o come_v to_o a_o right_n and_o full_a understanding_n of_o divine_a truth_n see_v it_o be_v evident_a that_o follow_v their_o principle_n i_o can_v be_v certain_a of_o nothing_o that_o belong_v to_o divine_a faith_n for_o teach_v as_o they_o do_v that_o all_o particular_a man_n all_o general_n council_n and_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o god_n may_v err_v what_o assurance_n can_v they_o give_v i_o that_o either_o their_o canon_n of_o scripture_n be_v true_a or_o that_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o word_n of_o scripture_n by_o which_o they_o prove_v their_o doctrine_n be_v such_o as_o they_o understand_v or_o that_o their_o church_n which_o they_o grant_v to_o be_v fallible_a do_v not_o err_v in_o those_o point_n wherein_o they_o disagree_v from_o us._n ibidem_fw-la what_o he_o assert_v afterward_o by_o way_n of_o reason_n why_o he_o allow_v possibility_n of_o salvation_n to_o roman_a catholic_n viz._n because_o they_o be_v within_o the_o church_n and_o that_o no_o man_n can_v be_v say_v simple_o to_o be_v out_o of_o the_o church_n that_o be_v baptise_a and_o hold_n the_o foundation_n be_v a_o paradox_n and_o may_v be_v prove_v to_o be_v false_a even_o from_o his_o own_o ground_n for_o see_v he_o have_v often_o deliver_v that_o by_o foundation_n he_o understand_v only_o such_o point_n as_o be_v prime_a radical_a and_o fundamental_a in_o the_o faith_n necessary_a to_o be_v know_v and_o express_o believe_v by_o all_o christian_n in_o order_n to_o salvation_n and_o see_v that_o many_o heretic_n be_v baptise_a and_o hold_v the_o foundation_n in_o this_o sense_n what_o do_v he_o but_o bring_v into_o the_o fold_n of_o the_o church_n and_o make_v member_n of_o christ_n mystical_a body_n most_o of_o the_o heretic_n that_o ever_o be_v and_o that_o even_o while_o they_o remain_v most_o notorious_o and_o actual_o divide_v from_o it_o nor_o be_v he_o content_a with_o one_o absurdity_n unless_o he_o adjoine_v a_o second_o ibidem_fw-la there_o be_v no_o question_n say_v he_o but_o many_o viz._n ignorant_a catholic_n be_v save_v in_o the_o corrupt_a time_n of_o the_o church_n when_o their_o leader_n unless_o they_o repent_v before_o their_o death_n as_o it_o be_v moral_o certain_a none_o of_o they_o do_v be_v lose_v see_v here_o a_o heavy_a doom_n pronounce_v against_o all_o the_o roman_a doctor_n in_o general_n but_o what_o be_v they_o all_o lose_v who_o repent_v not_o of_o those_o pretend_a error_n which_o as_o pastor_n of_o the_o roman-catholique_a church_n they_o teach_v so_o many_o year_n together_o how_o can_v that_o be_v be_v they_o not_o all_o even_o by_o the_o bishop_n own_o principle_n member_n of_o the_o true_a visible_a church_n of_o christ_n notwithstanding_o those_o error_n by_o reason_n of_o their_o be_v baptise_a and_o hold_v the_o foundation_n if_o they_o neither_o lose_v that_o faith_n by_o which_o they_o be_v member_n of_o the_o true_a church_n nor_o can_v be_v prove_v to_o have_v teach_v any_o false_a doctrine_n against_o their_o conscience_n by_o mean_n ibidem_fw-la whereof_o they_o may_v fall_v from_o grace_n with_o what_o truth_n or_o charity_n can_v the_o bishop_n pronounce_v such_o a_o sentence_n against_o they_o he_o add_v that_o erroneous_a leader_n do_v then_o only_o perish_v when_o they_o refuse_v to_o hear_v the_o church_n instruction_n or_o to_o use_v all_o the_o mean_n they_o can_v to_o come_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o truth_n but_o i_o demand_v if_o no_o misleader_n but_o such_o do_v perish_v with_o what_o countenance_n conscience_n i_o may_v say_v can_v the_o relatour_n pass_v his_o judgement_n of_o we_o in_o the_o manner_n he_o do_v that_o they_o be_v lose_v can_v it_o with_o any_o colour_n of_o equity_n or_o truth_n be_v charge_v upon_o they_o that_o they_o refuse_v the_o church_n instruction_n what_o visible_a church_n be_v there_o in_o the_o whole_a world_n for_o so_o many_o hundred_o year_n together_o by_o which_o have_v they_o be_v never_o so_o willing_a they_o can_v be_v instruct_v to_o teach_v otherwise_o than_o themselves_o teach_v in_o their_o respective_a age_n and_o what_o other_o mean_n can_v they_o be_v bind_v to_o use_v more_o than_o they_o do_v to_o come_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o truth_n why_o shall_v not_o our_o adversary_n in_o reason_n have_v rather_o excuse_v 〈◊〉_d these_o leader_n of_o the_o roman_a faith_n and_o communion_n from_o heresy_n and_o all_o other_o damnable_a error_n than_o he_o do_v even_o st._n cyprian_n himself_o and_o his_o follower_n see_v it_o be_v manifest_a these_o last_o oppose_v and_o contradict_v the_o more_o general_a practice_n of_o the_o whole_a visible_a church_n whereas_o the_o roman_a catholic_a doctor_n have_v always_o the_o universal_a practice_n of_o the_o church_n on_o their_o side_n in_o the_o point_n now_o controvert_v and_o for_o which_o protestant_n condemn_v they_o of_o error_n the_o truth_n be_v the_o bishop_n be_v a_o little_a entangle_v here_o something_o he_o must_v say_v by_o way_n of_o threaten_v against_o catholic_n to_o keep_v his_o own_o people_n in_o awe_n and_o to_o fright_v they_o from_o become_v catholic_n but_o positive_o and_o determinate_o what_o
protestant_n to_o note_n it_o only_o in_o a_o word_n by_o the_o way_n have_v not_o the_o like_a reason_n to_o require_v any_o such_o thing_n of_o we_o catholic_n viz._n that_o we_o shall_v positive_o and_o by_o special_a evidence_n prove_v our_o faith_n to_o be_v the_o same_o with_o that_o of_o the_o primitive_a church_n not_o that_o we_o be_v unable_a or_o unwilling_a to_o do_v this_o in_o due_a time_n and_o place_n but_o because_o be_v in_o full_a and_o quiet_a possession_n of_o our_o faith_n religion_n church_n and_o all_o thing_n pertain_v thereto_o by_o immemoriall_n tradition_n and_o succession_n from_o our_o ancestor_n we_o do_v upon_o that_o sole_a ground_n viz._n of_o quiet_a possession_n just_o this_o prescribe_v against_o our_o adversary_n and_o our_o plea_n must_v in_o all_o law_n and_o equity_n be_v admit_v for_o good_a till_o they_o who_o be_v our_o aggressour_n in_o this_o case_n do_v by_o more_o pregnant_a and_o convince_a argument_n disprove_v it_o and_o show_v that_o our_o possession_n be_v not_o bonafidei_fw-la but_o gain_v by_o force_n or_o fraud_n or_o some_o other_o wrongful_a and_o unallowed_a mean_n a_o gentleman_n that_o be_v in_o quiet_a possession_n of_o a_o estate_n receive_v from_o his_o ancestor_n be_v not_o to_o be_v out_v of_o it_o because_o a_o other_o say_v and_o perhaps_o believe_v he_o have_v a_o better_a title_n to_o it_o neither_o be_v 〈◊〉_d in_o possession_n to_o be_v force_v to_o make_v good_a his_o title_n by_o produce_v his_o evidence_n but_o the_o other_o be_v bind_v to_o evict_v he_o and_o demonstrate_v that_o his_o possession_n be_v not_o good_a and_o to_o show_v by_o special_a evidence_n and_o proof_n that_o his_o own_o claim_n be_v better_a otherwise_o in_o stead_n of_o gain_v a_o estate_n he_o will_v get_v nothing_o but_o a_o check_n in_o like_a manner_n the_o lady_n be_v in_o possession_n of_o a_o faith_n which_o for_o many_o age_n together_o have_v be_v profess_v by_o her_o ancestor_n and_o general_o by_o the_o whole_a christian_a church_n it_o be_v not_o the_o bishop_n tell_v she_o that_o he_o believe_v the_o scripture_n and_o creed_n in_o the_o same_o sense_n the_o ancient_a church_n believe_v they_o that_o must_v either_o turn_v she_o out_o of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n or_o just_o move_v she_o to_o believe_v that_o the_o faith_n of_o protestant_n be_v agreeable_a to_o that_o of_o the_o primitive_a church_n but_o he_o must_v make_v it_o appear_v to_o be_v so_o by_o produce_v evident_a and_o clear_a testimony_n out_o of_o all_o or_o the_o chief_a doctor_n of_o those_o ancient_a time_n otherwise_o his_o pretend_a belief_n of_o any_o such_o matter_n be_v to_o be_v account_v folly_n and_o his_o confidence_n rashness_n i_o add_v how_o be_v it_o possible_a for_o the_o bishop_n to_o make_v good_a what_o his_o answer_n pretend_v viz._n that_o his_o english_a protestant_n faith_n be_v the_o same_o with_o that_o of_o the_o primitive_a church_n english_a protestant_n for_o example_n believe_v the_o pope_n power_n jure_fw-la divino_fw-la be_v no_o more_o than_o of_o a_o other_o ordinary_a bishop_n but_o the_o primitive_a church_n account_v he_o to_o be_v the_o sovereign_a bishop_n of_o the_o church_n the_o bishop_n of_o bishop_n witness_n 10._o tertullian_n and_o this_o long_o before_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o church_n or_o imperial_a constitution_n have_v give_v he_o any_o authority_n the_o primitive_a church_n believe_v that_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o roman_a and_o apostolic_a sea_n over_o all_o other_o church_n and_o christian_n be_v not_o from_o man_n but_o from_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ._n witness_v the_o epistle_n of_o 1._o st._n clement_n 3._o st._n anaclet_n 2._o st._n sixtus_n the_o first_o 2._o st._n pius_n the_o first_o 2._o st._n anicet_fw-la bin._n st._n victor_n with_o diverse_a other_o epistle_n of_o those_o ancient_a primitive_a pope_n and_o martyr_n of_o the_o first_o age_n of_o the_o church_n all_o of_o they_o clear_o testify_v and_o assert_v the_o sovereign_a authority_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n as_o he_o be_v st._n peter_n successor_n and_o of_o the_o roman_a sea_n over_o all_o other_o church_n and_o christian_n whatsoever_o so_o as_o even_o the_o sine_fw-la centurist_n themselves_o and_o all_o other_o protestant_n never_o so_o little_o vere_v in_o antiquity_n be_v force_v to_o confess_v it_o they_o pretend_v indeed_o that_o these_o epistle_n be_v counterfeit_a and_o not_o the_o genuine_a epistle_n of_o these_o pope_n a_o weak_a plea_n for_o beside_o what_o we_o have_v already_o say_v in_o derence_n of_o they_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o isidorus_n hispalensis_n who_o be_v a_o author_n of_o above_o a_o thousand_o year_n antiquity_n in_o his_o collection_n of_o ecclesiastical_a canon_n mention_n these_o epistle_n as_o own_a by_o the_o bishop_n of_o his_o time_n and_o profess_v that_o himself_o be_v special_o command_v by_o a_o synod_n of_o fowrescore_a bishop_n to_o make_v his_o collection_n out_o of_o they_o as_o well_o as_o out_o of_o other_o epistle_n and_o write_n which_o protestant_n do_v not_o question_v not_o to_o urge_v that_o the_o council_n call_v vasense_n celebrate_v in_o st._n leo_n the_o fir_v time_n mention_n some_o of_o they_o and_o clement_n rufinus_n himself_o other_o who_o be_v contemporary_a with_o st._n hierome_n nor_o yet_o the_o absolute_a conformity_n in_o point_n of_o doctrine_n and_o style_n that_o there_o be_v betwixt_o those_o primitive_a epistle_n and_o those_o of_o succeed_a pope_n in_o the_o most_o flourish_a age_n of_o the_o church_n viz._n julius_n the_o first_o pope_n damasus_n syricius_n 11._o innocentius_n leo_n and_o other_o which_o even_o protestant_n themselves_o neither_o do_v nor_o can_v pretend_v to_o be_v forge_v but_o only_o say_v that_o the_o pope_n of_o those_o time_n be_v arrogant_a man_n and_o begin_v to_o take_v too_o much_o upon_o they_o the_o primitive_a church_n believe_v the_o root_n and_o original_n of_o heresy_n to_o be_v 3._o because_o the_o whole_a fraternity_n of_o christian_n do_v not_o according_a to_o god_n commandment_n acknowledge_v one_o priest_z and_o one_o judge_n for_o the_o time_n be_v vicar_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o church_n the_o primitive_a church_n profess_v that_o for_o what_o concern_v the_o correction_n and_o consolation_n of_o the_o faithful_a to_o wit_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n and_o faith_n the_o roman_a and_o apostolic_a sea_n be_v the_o bond_n and_o mother_n of_o all_o church_n witness_v st._n athanasius_n and_o the_o bishop_n of_o egypt_n with_o he_o in_o their_o 4._o epistle_n to_o pope_n marcus_n that_o the_o form_n and_o pattern_n of_o that_o church_n be_v to_o be_v follow_v in_o all_o thing_n witness_n 3._o st._n ambrose_n and_o the_o whole_a council_n of_o arles_n in_o their_o epistle_n and_o petition_n to_o pope_n julius_n the_o primitive_a church_n account_v they_o all_o scismatiques_n and_o sinner_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o set_v up_o a_o other_o chair_n against_o that_o one_o chair_n of_o st._n peter_n in_o the_o roman_a church_n witness_v man_n optatus_fw-la milevitanus_fw-la that_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v that_o seal_a fountuine_n and_o garden_n enclose_v to_o which_o all_o must_v repair_v for_o the_o water_n of_o life_n that_o she_o be_v the_o rock_n upon_o which_o the_o church_n be_v build_v that_o to_o be_v out_o of_o her_o communion_n be_v to_o be_v a_o alien_n from_o the_o household_n of_o god_n to_o be_v out_o of_o the_o church_n to_o be_v as_o a_o profane_a or_o unclean_a person_n who_o may_v not_o come_v into_o the_o camp_n or_o congregation_n of_o israel_n in_o brief_a it_o be_v to_o belong_v not_o to_o christ_n but_o to_o antichrist_n witness_n damas._n st._n hierome_n the_o bishop_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n be_v at_o any_o time_n persecute_v and_o unjust_o eject_v out_o of_o their_o sea_n from_o all_o part_n and_o province_n of_o christendom_n have_v recourse_n to_o the_o pope_n and_o sea_n of_o rome_n as_o to_o their_o proper_a and_o lawful_a judge_n for_o justice_n and_o relief_n and_o be_v likewise_o by_o he_o right_v and_o for_o the_o most_o part_n effectual_o restore_v to_o their_o sea_n again_o witness_v the_o example_n already_o allege_v of_o st._n athanasius_n and_o his_o fellow_n bishop_n eject_v by_o the_o arian_n also_o of_o st._n innocent_a chrysostome_n athanas._n the_o odoret_fw-la and_o diverse_a other_o last_o not_o to_o insist_v upon_o many_o other_o particular_a acknowledgement_n of_o the_o pope_n authority_n already_o mention_v and_o prove_v in_o this_o treatise_n the_o primitive_a church_n believe_v that_o the_o principality_n of_o the_o apostolic_a sea_n have_v always_o flourish'tin_n in_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o that_o by_o reason_n there_o of_o the_o pope_n have_v power_n both_o to_o judge_v in_o matter_n of_o faith_n and_o also_o final_o to_o decermin_v the_o cause_n of_o all_o bishop_n whatsoever_o witness_v 162._o st._n austin_n the_o council_n
elicit_v a_o act_n or_o assent_v of_o divine_a infallible_a faith_n now_o that_o this_o be_v all_o he_o mean_v by_o allow_a general_n council_n to_o be_v infallible_a de_fw-fr post-facto_a be_v evident_a from_o his_o own_o word_n which_o he_o give_v as_o the_o reason_n of_o that_o his_o concession_n for_o so_o say_v he_o all_o truth_n be_v that_o be_v infallible_a in_o itself_o and_o be_v to_o we_o when_o it_o be_v once_o know_v to_o be_v truth_n what_o i_o say_v be_v this_o but_o to_o proclaim_v to_o all_o the_o world_n that_o the_o decision_n of_o general_n council_n be_v no_o more_o infallible_a than_o any_o contingent_a yet_o true_a proposition_n be_v though_o deliver_v by_o a_o person_n never_o so_o much_o give_v to_o lie_v 7._o final_o i_o add_v that_o though_o a._n c._n speak_v of_o a_o council_n set_v down_o to_o deliberate_v as_o the_o bishop_n urge_v yet_o when_o he_o style_v it_o infallible_a ibidem_fw-la it_o be_v evident_a in_o his_o principle_n that_o either_o he_o mean_v a_o complete_a and_o full_a council_n include_v the_o supreme_a pastor_n of_o the_o church_n joint_o with_o the_o rest_n and_o vote_v in_o council_n with_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o prelate_n in_o which_o case_n his_o suffrage_n be_v a_o confirmation_n of_o their_o decree_n or_o in_o case_n the_o chief_a pastor_n be_v absent_a a._n c._n account_v it_o not_o a_o full_a and_o and_o complete_a council_n till_o his_o consent_n be_v have_v and_o annex_v to_o the_o vote_n of_o the_o other_o prelate_n so_o that_o the_o relatour_n do_v but_o mistake_v a._n cs._n meaning_n when_o he_o talk_v of_o a_o council_n hold_v or_o suppose_v by_o he_o to_o be_v infallible_a a_o parte_fw-la ante_fw-la when_o it_o first_o sit_v down_o to_o deliberate_v etc_o neither_o do_v a._n c._n use_v any_o cunning_n at_o all_o in_o the_o business_n but_o as_o much_o plain_a dealing_v as_o possible_a nor_o have_v the_o bishop_n the_o least_o cause_n to_o suspect_v that_o the_o word_n lawfully-called_n continue_v and_o confirm_v be_v shuffle_v together_o by_o a._n c._n out_o of_o design_n to_o hide_v his_o own_o meaning_n or_o shroud_v himself_o from_o his_o adversary_n for_o be_v not_o the_o word_n themselves_o of_o most_o plain_a and_o obvious_a signification_n be_v they_o not_o also_o of_o absolute_a necessity_n to_o be_v use_v by_o he_o for_o the_o full_a and_o clear_a expression_n of_o his_o meaning_n in_o this_o point_n and_o do_v he_o not_o so_o often_o as_o occasion_n require_v constant_o use_v they_o or_o the_o like_a to_o that_o end_n treat_v upon_o this_o subject_n what_o ground_n or_o even_o occasion_n then_o can_v the_o relatour_n have_v to_o object_v cunning_a and_o shuffle_n here_o and_o yet_o by_o the_o way_n we_o little_a doubt_n but_o general_n council_n may_v in_o a_o very_a true_a sense_n be_v style_v insallible_a even_o a_o part_n ante_fw-la as_o the_o bishop_n speak_v at_o their_o first_o sit_v down_o and_o before_o any_o thing_n be_v so_o much_o as_o vote_v or_o deliberate_v upon_o by_o the_o prelate_n much_o less_o confirm_v by_o the_o pope_n to_o wit_n by_o virtue_n of_o christ_n promise_n by_o which_o they_o be_v sure_a in_o due_a time_n to_o be_v lead_v into_o truth_n and_o preserve_v from_o error_n in_o the_o issue_n and_o resule_n of_o their_o deliberation_n in_o the_o manner_n aboue-declared_a even_o as_o the_o whole_a catholic_a church_n be_v say_v by_o the_o bishop_n to_o be_v infallible_a in_o fundamental_a point_n for_o as_o christ_n have_v promise_v not_o to_o suffer_v the_o whole_a church_n to_o err_v in_o point_n fundamental_a so_o he_o have_v promise_v that_o general_n council_n consist_v of_o the_o head_n and_o prelate_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n shall_v not_o err_v in_o their_o definition_n so_o that_o to_o this_o infallibility_n the_o church_n acceptance_n be_v whole_o unnecessary_a nay_o it_o be_v certain_a the_o whole_a church_n disfusive_a be_v so_o far_o from_o confirm_v in_o any_o authoritative_a and_o proper_a sense_n the_o decree_n of_o such_o council_n as_o we_o in_o this_o case_n and_o controversy_n style_v ecumenical_a that_o itself_o the_o church_n difsusive_a i_o mean_v be_v absolute_o bind_v to_o accept_v and_o receive_v their_o desinition_n and_o can_v without_o schism_n and_o sin_n refuse_v to_o accept_v they_o the_o follow_a paragraph_n be_v whole_o spend_v in_o palliate_a obstinacy_n 15._o in_o private_a opinion_n against_o the_o sense_n and_o belief_n of_o the_o church_n with_o the_o title_n and_o pretence_n of_o constancy_n which_o for_o the_o most_o part_n be_v take_v in_o a_o good_a sense_n and_o hold_v for_o a_o virtue_n but_o here_o it_o can_v be_v so_o and_o deliberate_o to_o doubt_v yea_o to_o deny_v if_o a_o man_n please_v the_o doctrine_n that_o be_v define_v and_o declare_v by_o the_o church_n to_o be_v matter_n of_o christian_a faith_n be_v style_v a_o modest_a proposal_n of_o doubt_n but_o we_o have_v 20._o already_o sufficient_o discover_v the_o fraud_n and_o impertinency_n of_o these_o pretence_n and_o likewise_o large_o treat_v the_o whole_a matter_n of_o external_a obedience_n which_o the_o relatour_n here_o again_o bring_v upon_o the_o stage_n we_o only_o desire_v at_o present_a to_o have_v some_o certain_a and_o infallible_a direction_n or_o rule_v give_v we_o to_o know_v when_o the_o resusall_n to_o submit_v to_o a_o general_n council_n be_v out_o of_o pride_n and_o presumption_n of_o a_o man_n own_o judgement_n which_o the_o bishop_n himself_o condemn_v and_o when_o perhaps_o from_o better_a and_o more_o honest_a motive_n be_v there_o ever_o yet_o heretic_n so_o impudent_a and_o past_a shame_n as_o to_o profess_v or_o avow_v that_o he_o contradict_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n or_o the_o definition_n of_o general_n council_n mere_o out_o of_o pride_n and_o presumption_n of_o his_o own_o judgement_n doc_n they_o not_o all_o pretend_v evident_a reason_n and_o conviction_n of_o conscience_n for_o what_o they_o do_v what_o be_v it_o then_o but_o a_o mask_n that_o may_v serve_v all_o face_n and_o a_o plea_n for_o all_o delinquency_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n for_o the_o bishop_n to_o talk_v as_o he_o do_v of_o probable_a ground_n modest_a proposal_n without_o pride_n and_o presumption_n etc_fw-la these_o be_v thing_n that_o all_o heretic_n pretend_v alike_o to_o and_o with_o equal_a truth_n but_o as_o for_o those_o word_n of_o the_o bishop_n that_o a_o man_n may_v not_o upon_o very_o probable_a ground_n in_o a_o humble_a and_o peaceable_a manner_n deliberate_o doubt_v yea_o and_o upon_o demonstrative_a ground_n constant_o deny_v ibidem_fw-la even_o such_o definition_n viz._n the_o definition_n of_o general_n council_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n yet_o submit_v himself_o and_o his_o ground_n to_o the_o church_n in_o that_o or_o a_o other_o council_n be_v that_o which_o until_o now_o be_v never_o impose_v upon_o believer_n etc_n i_o wonder_v what_o sense_n can_v be_v make_v of_o they_o first_o he_o suppose_v that_o a_o man_n may_v have_v very_o probable_a yea_o demonstrative_a ground_n against_o the_o definition_n of_o a_o general_n council_n and_o by_o virtue_n thereof_o be_v warrant_v both_o deliberate_o to_o doubt_v no_o otherwise_o than_o every_o true_a proposition_n be_v or_o may_v be_v say_v to_o be_v infallible_a that_o be_v hipothetical_o and_o upon_o supposition_n only_o for_o sure_o no_o true_a proposition_n quâ_fw-la talis_fw-la or_o so_o far_o as_o it_o be_v suppose_v or_o know_v to_o be_v true_a though_o but_o by_o some_o one_o person_n can_v deceive_v any_o man_n or_o possible_o be_v false_a in_o this_o sense_n it_o be_v a_o know_a maxim_n in_o logic_n quicquid_fw-la est_fw-la quando_fw-la est_fw-la necesse_fw-la est_fw-la esse_fw-la every_o thing_n that_o be_v have_v a_o hypotheticall_a necessity_n and_o infallibility_n of_o be_v since_o it_o can_v but_o be_v so_o long_o as_o it_o be_v and_o be_v it_o not_o think_v you_o a_o worthy_a prerogative_n of_o the_o church_n to_o be_v thus_o infallible_a in_o her_o definition_n do_v not_o the_o bishop_n assign_v a_o very_a worthy_a and_o fit_a mean_n to_o apply_v divine_a revelation_n to_o we_o in_o order_n to_o the_o elicit_v a_o act_n or_o assent_v of_o divine_a infallible_a faith_n now_o that_o this_o be_v all_o he_o mean_v by_o allow_a general_n council_n to_o be_v infallible_a de_fw-fr post-facto_a be_v evident_a from_o his_o own_o word_n which_o he_o give_v as_o the_o reason_n of_o that_o his_o concession_n for_o so_o say_v he_o all_o truth_n be_v that_o be_v infallible_a in_o itself_o and_o be_v to_o we_o when_o it_o be_v once_o know_v to_o be_v truth_n what_o i_o say_v be_v this_o but_o to_o proclaim_v to_o all_o the_o world_n that_o the_o decision_n of_o general_n council_n be_v no_o more_o infallible_a than_o any_o contingent_a yet_o true_a proposition_n be_v though_o deliver_v by_o a_o person_n never_o so_o much_o
give_v to_o lie_v 7._o final_o i_o add_v that_o though_o a._n c._n speak_v of_o a_o council_n set_v down_o to_o deliberate_v as_o the_o bishop_n urge_v yet_o when_o he_o style_v it_o infallible_a ibidem_fw-la it_o be_v evident_a in_o his_o principle_n that_o either_o he_o mean_v a_o complete_a and_o full_a council_n include_v the_o supreme_a pastor_n of_o the_o church_n joint_o with_o the_o rest_n and_o vote_v in_o council_n with_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o prelate_n in_o which_o case_n his_o suffrage_n be_v a_o confirmation_n of_o their_o decree_n or_o in_o case_n the_o chief_a pastor_n be_v absent_a a._n c._n account_v it_o not_o a_o full_a and_o and_o complete_a council_n till_o his_o consent_n be_v have_v and_o annex_v to_o the_o vote_n of_o the_o other_o prelate_n so_o that_o the_o relatour_n do_v but_o mistake_v a._n cs._n meaning_n when_o he_o talk_v of_o a_o council_n hold_v or_o suppose_v by_o he_o to_o be_v infallible_a a_o parte_fw-la ante_fw-la when_o it_o first_o sit_v down_o to_o deliberate_v etc_o neither_o do_v a._n c._n use_v any_o cunning_n at_o all_o in_o the_o business_n but_o as_o much_o plain_a dealing_v as_o possible_a nor_o have_v the_o bishop_n the_o least_o cause_n to_o suspect_v that_o the_o word_n lawfully-called_n continue_v and_o confirm_v be_v shuffle_v together_o by_o a._n c._n out_o of_o design_n to_o hide_v his_o own_o meaning_n or_o shroud_v himself_o from_o his_o adversary_n for_o be_v not_o the_o word_n themselves_o of_o most_o plain_a and_o obvious_a signification_n be_v they_o not_o also_o of_o absolute_a necessity_n to_o be_v use_v by_o he_o for_o the_o full_a and_o clear_a expression_n of_o his_o meaning_n in_o this_o point_n and_o do_v he_o not_o so_o often_o as_o occasion_n require_v constant_o use_v they_o or_o the_o like_a to_o that_o end_n treat_v upon_o this_o subject_n what_o ground_n or_o even_o occasion_n then_o can_v the_o relatour_n have_v to_o object_v cunning_a and_o shuffle_n here_o and_o yet_o by_o the_o way_n we_o little_a doubt_n but_o general_n council_n may_v in_o a_o very_a true_a sense_n be_v style_v insallible_a even_o a_o part_n ante_fw-la as_o the_o bishop_n speak_v at_o their_o first_o sit_v down_o and_o before_o any_o thing_n be_v so_o much_o as_o vote_v or_o deliberate_v upon_o by_o the_o prelate_n much_o less_o confirm_v by_o the_o pope_n to_o wit_n by_o virtue_n of_o christ_n promise_n by_o which_o they_o be_v sure_a in_o due_a time_n to_o be_v lead_v into_o truth_n and_o preserve_v from_o error_n in_o the_o issue_n and_o result_v of_o their_o deliberation_n in_o the_o manner_n aboue-declared_a even_o as_o the_o whole_a catholic_a church_n be_v say_v by_o the_o bishop_n to_o be_v infallible_a in_o fundamental_a point_n for_o as_o christ_n have_v promise_v not_o to_o suffer_v the_o whole_a church_n to_o err_v in_o point_n fundamental_a so_o he_o have_v promise_v that_o general_n council_n consist_v of_o the_o head_n and_o prelate_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n shall_v not_o err_v in_o their_o definition_n so_o that_o to_o this_o infallibility_n the_o church_n acceptance_n be_v whole_o unnecessary_a nay_o it_o be_v certain_a the_o whole_a church_n diffusive_a be_v so_o far_o from_o confirm_v in_o any_o authoritative_a and_o proper_a sense_n the_o decree_n of_o such_o council_n as_o we_o in_o this_o case_n and_o controversy_n style_v ecumenical_a that_o itself_o the_o church_n diffusive_a i_o mean_v be_v absolute_o bind_v to_o accept_v and_o receive_v their_o definition_n and_o can_v without_o schism_n and_o sin_n refuse_v to_o accept_v they_o the_o follow_a paragraph_n be_v whole_o spend_v in_o palliate_a obstinacy_n 15._o in_o private_a opinion_n against_o the_o sense_n and_o belief_n of_o the_o church_n with_o the_o title_n and_o pretence_n of_o constancy_n which_o for_o the_o most_o part_n be_v take_v in_o a_o good_a sense_n and_o hold_v for_o a_o virtue_n but_o here_o it_o can_v be_v so_o and_o deliberate_o to_o doubt_v yea_o to_o deny_v if_o a_o man_n please_v the_o doctrine_n that_o be_v define_v and_o declare_v by_o the_o church_n to_o be_v matter_n of_o christian_a faith_n be_v style_v a_o modest_a proposal_n of_o doubt_n but_o we_o have_v 20._o already_o sufficient_o discover_v the_o fraud_n and_o impertinency_n of_o these_o pretence_n and_o likewise_o large_o treat_v the_o whole_a matter_n of_o external_a obedience_n which_o the_o relatour_n here_o again_o bring_v upon_o the_o stage_n we_o only_o desire_v at_o present_a to_o have_v some_o certain_a and_o infallible_a direction_n or_o rule_v give_v we_o to_o know_v when_o the_o resusall_n to_o submit_v to_o a_o general_n council_n be_v out_o of_o pride_n and_o presumption_n of_o a_o his_o own_o judgement_n which_o the_o bishop_n himself_o condemn_v and_o when_o perhaps_o from_o better_a and_o more_o honest_a motive_n be_v there_o ever_o yet_o heretic_n so_o impudent_a and_o past_a shame_n as_o to_o profess_v or_o 〈◊〉_d that_o he_o contradict_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n or_o the_o definition_n of_o general_n council_n mere_o out_o of_o pride_n and_o presumption_n of_o his_o own_o judgement_n do_v they_o not_o all_o pretend_v evident_a reason_n and_o conviction_n of_o conscience_n for_o what_o they_o do_v what_o be_v it_o then_o but_o a_o mask_n that_o may_v serve_v all_o face_n and_o a_o plea_n for_o all_o delinquency_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n for_o the_o bishop_n to_o talk_v as_o he_o do_v of_o probable_a ground_n modest_a proposal_n without_o pride_n and_o presumption_n etc_fw-la these_o be_v thing_n that_o all_o heretic_n pretend_v alike_o to_o and_o with_o equal_a truth_n but_o as_o for_o those_o word_n of_o the_o bishop_n that_o a_o man_n may_v not_o upon_o very_o probable_a ground_n in_o a_o humble_a and_o peaceable_a manner_n deliberate_o doubt_v yea_o and_o upon_o demonstrative_a ground_n constant_o deny_v ibidem_fw-la even_o such_o definition_n viz._n the_o definition_n of_o general_n council_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n yet_o submit_v himself_o and_o his_o ground_n to_o the_o church_n in_o that_o or_o a_o other_o council_n be_v that_o which_o until_o now_o be_v never_o impose_v upon_o believer_n etc_n i_o wonder_v what_o sense_n can_v be_v make_v of_o they_o first_o he_o suppose_v that_o a_o man_n may_v have_v very_o probable_a yea_o demonstrative_a ground_n against_o the_o definition_n of_o a_o general_n council_n and_o by_o virtue_n thereof_o be_v warrant_v both_o deliberate_o to_o doubt_v and_o constant_o to_o deny_v such_o definition_n and_o yet_o tell_v we_o he_o must_v submit_v both_o himself_o and_o ground_n to_o the_o church_n in_o that_o or_o a_o other_o council_n either_o his_o ground_n be_v real_o such_o as_o he_o speak_v of_o viz._n 〈◊〉_d certain_a and_o demonstrative_a or_o only_a seem_o such_o if_o only_o seem_v such_o what_o be_v it_o but_o to_o give_v power_n to_o every_o phanatique_a and_o presumptuous_a spirit_n to_o oppose_v general_n council_n and_o contradict_v their_o definition_n whensoever_o he_o fancy_v to_o himself_o to_o have_v a_o cuident_a text_n or_o convince_a argument_n against_o they_o how_o foolish_a and_o fallacious_a soever_o it_o be_v if_o real_a and_o true_a demonstration_n how_o can_v he_o that_o know_v they_o submit_v himself_o and_o his_o ground_n to_o a_o general_n council_n can_v any_o thing_n be_v more_o absurd_a and_o unreasonable_a then_o that_o a_o true_a demonstration_n and_o a_o true_a judgement_n ground_v upon_o it_o shall_v yield_v to_o a_o fallible_a authority_n such_o as_o that_o of_o all_o general_n council_n be_v suppose_v to_o be_v again_o who_o shall_v assure_v we_o that_o the_o general_n council_n to_o which_o he_o submitt_v shall_v not_o desine_fw-la the_o same_o article_n or_o error_n which_o be_v define_v before_o in_o this_o case_n either_o he_o be_v bind_v to_o believe_v the_o article_n de_fw-fr novo_fw-la define_v or_o he_o be_v not_o if_o he_o be_v not_o bind_v to_o believe_v it_o why_o do_v the_o bishop_n teach_v that_o notwitstand_v a_o man_n may_v constant_o deny_v the_o definition_n of_o a_o general_n council_n upon_o monstrative_a ground_n yet_o he_o be_v bind_v to_o submit_v himself_o and_o his_o ground_n to_o a_o other_o council_n if_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o he_o to_o oppose_v the_o second_o council_n definition_n as_o well_o as_o the_o first_o be_v where_o be_v his_o submission_n if_o he_o be_v bind_v to_o believe_v as_o the_o second_o council_n define_v it_o be_v evident_a he_o be_v bind_v to_o prefer_v a_o fallible_a authority_n before_o a_o true_a demonstration_n and_o know_v to_o be_v such_o which_o be_v not_o only_o absurd_a but_o also_o impossible_a 8._o as_o to_o that_o text_n of_o st._n austin_n which_o the_o bishop_n cite_v again_o in_o his_o margin_n touch_v the_o emendation_n of_o former_a general_n council_n by_o latter_a we_o have_v 10._o already_o answer_v the_o objection_n take_v from_o it_o
this_o and_o very_o little_a else_o as_o the_o experience_n of_o all_o age_n and_o time_n show_v be_v the_o fruit_n that_o come_v to_o the_o church_n and_o true_a religion_n by_o allow_v private_a person_n this_o judgement_n of_o discretion_n or_o liberty_n to_o examine_v the_o definition_n of_o general_n council_n not_o to_o urge_v that_o from_o this_o doctrine_n of_o the_o bishop_n it_o necessary_o and_o plain_o follow_v that_o the_o authority_n of_o general_n council_n be_v of_o no_o great_a force_n for_o the_o settle_n of_o our_o faith_n and_o the_o satisfaction_n of_o our_o understanding_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n than_o the_o testimony_n and_o resolution_n of_o any_o private_a man_n be_v or_o may_v be_v for_o if_o i_o be_v allow_v to_o examine_v the_o ground_n of_o the_o one_o as_o well_o as_o of_o the_o other_o and_o may_v if_o in_o my_o own_o private_a judgement_n i_o think_v i_o have_v just_a cause_n as_o lawful_o doubt_v and_o deny_v the_o desinition_n of_o the_o one_o as_o the_o resolution_n of_o the_o other_o wherein_o do_v i_o attribute_v more_o to_o a_o general_n council_n than_o i_o do_v to_o a_o private_a person_n seeing_z it_o be_v evident_a that_o neither_o the_o one_o nor_o the_o other_o have_v further_a authority_n with_o i_o or_o command_v over_o my_o understanding_n than_o their_o several_a reason_n in_o my_o own_o judgement_n deserve_v and_o that_o if_o the_o reason_n of_o a_o private_a man_n appear_v to_o i_o to_o be_v more_o weighty_a and_o convince_a then_o those_o of_o a_o general_n council_n i_o be_o permit_v free_o and_o without_o sin_n to_o embrace_v the_o say_v private_a person_n opinion_n and_o refuse_v the_o doctrine_n of_o a_o general_n ibidem_fw-la council_n 7._o his_o assert_v so_o confident_o that_o for_o thing_n necessary_a and_o fundamental_a in_o the_o faith_n we_o need_v no_o assistance_n from_o other_o general_n council_n beside_o the_o four_o first_o seem_v no_o less_o strange_a and_o be_v sufficient_o disprove_v even_o by_o evidence_n of_o fact_n for_o have_v not_o the_o assistance_n of_o posteriour_a general_n council_n since_o the_o four_o first_o be_v real_o and_o the_o facto_fw-la find_v necessary_a for_o determine_v matter_n of_o faith_n what_o do_v our_o adversary_n think_v of_o the_o five_o general_n council_n or_o second_o of_o constantinople_n be_v it_o not_o matter_n of_o faith_n and_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n what_o this_o council_n define_v against_o the_o heresy_n of_o origen_n and_o his_o adherent_n what_o think_v they_o of_o the_o six_o against_o the_o monothelite_n be_v not_o the_o doctrine_n and_o belief_n of_o two_o distinct_a will_n in_o christ_n define_v by_o this_o council_n in_o the_o bishop_n opinion_n as_o fundamental_a in_o the_o faith_n as_o the_o doctrine_n and_o belief_n of_o two_o nature_n define_v by_o that_o of_o chalcedon_n again_o may_v not_o fresh_a error_n arise_v may_v not_o some_o new_a unheardof_n heresy_n spring_v up_o corrupt_v the_o faith_n contradict_v fundamental_a matter_n in_o religion_n if_o they_o do_v shall_v it_o not_o be_v necessary_a for_o the_o church_n that_o such_o error_n be_v condemn_v by_o general_n council_n the_o relatour_n pretend_v here_o that_o some_o that_o some_o of_o our_o own_o very_o honest_a and_o learned_a man_n as_o he_o be_v please_v to_o qualify_v they_o when_o it_o serve_v his_o turn_n be_v of_o the_o same_o opinion_n with_o he_o in_o this_o point_n cite_v in_o proof_n hereof_o certain_a word_n as_o he_o pretend_v of_o petrus_n de_fw-it alliaco_fw-it a_o ancient_a schoole-author_n otherwise_o know_v by_o the_o name_n of_o cardinalis_fw-la cameracensis_fw-la vertsstmum_fw-la esse_fw-la etc._n etc._n it_o be_v most_o true_a all_o thing_n pertain_v to_o religion_n be_v well_o order_v by_o the_o father_n if_o they_o be_v as_o well_o and_o diligent_o observe_v but_o first_o here_o be_v a_o great_a mistake_n the_o word_n which_o the_o bishop_n cite_v be_v not_o the_o word_n of_o petrus_n de_fw-it alliaco_fw-it nor_o any_o part_n of_o the_o book_n which_o he_o write_v de_fw-la reformatione_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la and_o present_v to_o the_o council_n of_o constance_n but_o of_o one_o orthuinus_n gravius_fw-la who_o publish_v it_o with_o diverse_a other_o small_a tractate_v of_o that_o nature_n in_o his_o fasciculus_fw-la rerum_fw-la expetenilarum_fw-la etc_n print_v at_o basil._n 1535._o as_o any_o man_n may_v see_v that_o peruse_v that_o book_n second_o admit_v they_o be_v or_o that_o petrus_n de_fw-fr aliaco_n do_v in_o his_o treatise_n say_v the_o same_o thing_n in_o effect_n yet_o be_v it_o little_a to_o the_o bishop_n purpose_n for_o the_o author_n meaning_n be_v that_o those_o father_n have_v so_o well_o order_v all_o thing_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o mystery_n which_o be_v then_o oppose_v by_o heretic_n that_o if_o they_o be_v well_o observe_v there_o will_v be_v no_o need_n of_o make_v new_a definition_n in_o reference_n to_o the_o same_o doctrine_n but_o he_o do_v not_o deny_v but_o that_o upon_o new_a emergent_a occasion_n other_o general_n council_n may_v be_v necessary_a in_o the_o church_n nay_o the_o design_n of_o his_o whole_a treatise_n be_v to_o show_v that_o how_o well_o soever_o all_o thing_n have_v be_v order_v and_o determine_v by_o former_a council_n yet_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o long_a schism_n that_o have_v be_v in_o the_o church_n and_o of_o many_o heresy_n spring_v up_o the_o authority_n of_o a_o other_o general_n council_n to_o wit_n of_o constance_n be_v necessary_a as_o well_o to_o determine_v the_o controverted_a point_n of_o faith_n as_o to_o extirpate_v the_o schism_n and_o all_o other_o abuse_n and_o disorder_n in_o the_o church_n with_o what_o truth_n then_o can_v the_o bishop_n pretend_v that_o petrus_n de_fw-fr aliaco_n be_v of_o the_o same_o opinion_n with_o he_o touch_v the_o no-necessity_n of_o make_v any_o new_a determination_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n by_o any_o general_n council_n whatsoever_o after_o the_o four_o first_o and_o as_o for_o 4._o holkot_n what_o ever_o he_o may_v teach_v concern_v heresy_n or_o infidelity_n when_o the_o error_n be_v not_o know_v to_o be_v against_o the_o definition_n or_o universal_a tradition_n of_o the_o church_n yet_o doubtless_o when_o it_o be_v know_v to_o be_v so_o and_o under_o that_o quality_n only_o we_o dispute_v of_o it_o with_o the_o bishop_n neither_o he_o nor_o any_o other_o catholic_a author_n will_v deny_v it_o to_o be_v formal_a heresy_n or_o infidelity_n to_o hold_v it_o st._n 1._o cyprian_n here_o likewise_o allege_v speak_v clear_o of_o such_o matter_n as_o be_v then_o undefined_a and_o be_v not_o till_o a_o long_a while_n after_o define_v by_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a st._n thomas_n speak_v only_o deminis_fw-la 2._o et_fw-la opinionibus_fw-la as_o his_o word_n show_v of_o small_a matter_n and_o private_a opinion_n which_o in_o no_o sort_n concern_v our_o present_a controversy_n and_o wherein_o we_o acknowledge_v with_o the_o relatour_n christian_n man_n may_v differ_v one_o from_o a_o other_o without_o breach_n of_o that_o one_o save_v faith_n or_o christian_a charity_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n but_o for_o matter_n which_o the_o church_n have_v find_v necessary_a for_o prevention_n of_o schism_n preservation_n of_o unity_n and_o for_o vindicate_v or_o clear_n the_o ancient_a receive_a truth_n from_o corruption_n and_o error_n once_o to_o determine_v by_o general_n council_n how_o small_a and_o unfundamentall_a soever_o the_o point_n themselves_o be_v in_o their_o own_o nature_n we_o challenge_v our_o adversary_n to_o produce_v one_o catholic_a author_n of_o good_a name_n ancient_a or_o modern_a who_o teach_v that_o christian_n may_v lawful_o disfer_v in_o such_o point_n after_o their_o say_a definition_n or_o that_o they_o may_v dissent_v and_o believe_v contrary_a to_o what_o the_o church_n have_v define_v this_o the_o relatour_n shall_v have_v show_v have_v he_o mean_v to_o deal_v candid_o with_o his_o reader_n and_o not_o mere_o to_o amuse_v he_o by_o fill_v his_o page_n with_o authority_n cite_v to_o no_o purpose_n 8._o have_v not_o the_o apostle_n those_o first-preacher_n of_o christian_a faith_n to_o the_o world_n reuclation_n from_o god_n not_o only_o of_o thing_n absolutely-necessary_a to_o salvation_n and_o fundamental_n in_o the_o relatours_n sense_n but_o of_o all_o other_o divine_a truth_n belong_v to_o christian_a religion_n and_o do_v not_o they_o deliver_v the_o one_o as_o well_o as_o the_o other_o for_o divine_a truth_n to_o their_o immediate_a successor_n according_a to_o that_o of_o st._n paul_n acts._n 20._o 27._o i_o have_v keep_v back_o nothing_o that_o be_v profitable_a unto_o you_o i_o have_v not_o shun_v to_o declare_v unto_o you_o all_o the_o counsell_n of_o god_n etc_o as_o the_o protestant_n translate_v it_o with_o command_n and_o obligation_n that_o they_o also_o shall_v both_o preach_v and_o testify_v the_o same_o divine_a truth_n to_o the_o world_n entire_o and_o
without_o defaulk_a of_o any_o part_n and_o do_v they_o not_o intend_v that_o the_o like_a shall_v be_v do_v by_o continual_a succession_n of_o pastor_n in_o all_o age_n of_o the_o church_n for_o cuer_v and_o how_o can_v the_o church_n perform_v this_o if_o she_o have_v not_o full_a and_o equal_a authority_n to_o attest_v both_o the_o one_o and_o the_o other_o and_o to_o condemn_v all_o error_n whatsoever_o contrary_a to_o they_o how_o can_v she_o be_v account_v in_o those_o respect_n the_o pillar_n and_o foundation_n of_o truth_n as_o it_o be_v certain_a even_o by_o the_o exposition_n of_o protestant_n st._n paul_n do_v style_v she_o 1._o tim._n 3._o 15._o or_o how_o be_v she_o say_v to_o be_v a_o faithful_a preserver_n of_o that_o whole_a depositum_fw-la 1._o tim._n 6._o 20._o commit_v to_o her_o charge_n 18._o as_o the_o father_n frequent_o profess_v and_o teach_v she_o to_o be_v i_o say_v how_o be_v it_o possible_a the_o church_n shall_v be_v account_v either_o a_o sure_a foundation_n faithful_a depositary_a guardian_n or_o witness_v of_o all_o divine_a truth_n pertain_v to_o religion_n as_o she_o be_v by_o scripture_n and_o all_o antiquity_n general_o if_o either_o through_o ignorance_n and_o oversight_n she_o herself_o may_v possible_o happen_v to_o corrupt_v it_o as_o the_o bishop_n with_o all_o protestant_n suppose_n she_o may_v or_o that_o she_o want_v any_o necessary_a power_n and_o authority_n to_o prohibit_v they_o that_o will_v whereas_o therefore_o the_o bishop_n affirm_v that_o want_v of_o unity_n and_o peace_n proceed_v too_o often_o even_o where_o religion_n be_v pretend_v from_o man_n and_o their_o humour_n rather_o than_o from_o thing_n and_o error_n to_o be_v find_v in_o they_o i_o grant_v it_o to_o be_v very_o true_a in_o those_o that_o will_v not_o rely_v ibidem_fw-la upon_o the_o church_n judgement_n and_o authority_n but_o upon_o their_o own_o reason_n and_o interpretation_n of_o scripture_n which_o be_v the_o practice_n of_o protestant_n and_o all_o heretic_n before_o they_o and_o if_o the_o bishop_n adherent_n think_v it_o to_o be_v otherwise_o let_v they_o fair_o make_v it_o appear_v that_o the_o disagreement_n which_o be_v at_o present_a 〈◊〉_d the_o english-protestant_n and_o roman-catholique_a church_n proceed_v not_o original_o from_o the_o bad_a humour_n of_o english_a man_n as_o much_o as_o the_o disagreement_n betwixt_o the_o prelatical_a and_o sectarian_n party_n in_o the_o say_a church_n of_o england_n proceed_v not_o from_o the_o prelate_n and_o their_o adherent_n but_o mere_o from_o the_o sectary_n who_o it_o can_v be_v deny_v allege_v scripture_n abundant_o and_o accuse_v the_o english_a prelatical_a church_n of_o error_n and_o superstition_n both_o in_o doctrine_n discipline_n and_o worship_n no_o less_o than_o they_o accuse_v we_o of_o the_o same_o fault_n 9_o but_o the_o relatour_n will_v now_o give_v we_o a_o reason_n why_o it_o can_v 24._o be_v necessary_a for_o the_o church_n to_o have_v power_n infallible_o to_o determine_v point_n not-fundamentall_a in_o protestant_a sense_n although_o even_o by_o his_o own_o supposition_n they_o be_v divine_a truth_n and_o their_o opposite_a error_n dangerous_a to_o soul_n his_o reason_n be_v because_o st._n paul_n tell_v we_o 1._o cor._n 11._o 19_o oportet_fw-la hoereses_n esse_fw-la etc._n etc._n there_o must_v be_v heresy_n whence_o he_o conclude_v it_o be_v out_o of_o doubt_n christ_n never_o leave_v such_o a_o infallible_a assurance_n as_o be_v able_a to_o prevent_v they_o or_o such_o a_o master_a power_n in_o his_o church_n as_o be_v able_a to_o over-awe_n they_o but_o i_o answer_v what_o consequence_n be_v here_o there_o must_v be_v 〈◊〉_d there_o will_v avoidable_o be_v heresy_n crgo_v the_o church_n have_v not_o full_a power_n to_o condemn_v they_o and_o to_o vindicate_v the_o contrary_a truth_n to_o i_o the_o contrary_n seem_v far_o more_o just_o and_o right_o conclude_v viz._n that_o because_o there_o will_v be_v heresy_n ever_o and_o anon_o spring_v up_o among_o christian_n therefore_o the_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n have_v and_o aught_o to_o have_v all_o necessary_a power_n to_o obuiate_v their_o proceed_n and_o to_o preserve_v the_o flock_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o integrity_n of_o true_a faith_n which_o as_o we_o have_v often_o show_v can_v be_v do_v if_o the_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n lawful_o assemble_v in_o general_n council_n to_o that_o purpose_n shall_v either_o themselves_o happen_v to_o crre_v or_o to_o determine_v the_o truth_n withless_a then_o absolute_a and_o unquestionable_a certainty_n but_o as_o to_o the_o objection_n itself_o the_o bishop_n clear_o mistake_v our_o meaning_n when_o we_o say_v the_o church_n have_v power_n to_o prevent_v schism_n and_o heresy_n it_o be_v not_o mean_v that_o they_o shall_v not_o be_v at_o all_o but_o so_o as_o they_o shall_v not_o be_v without_o just_a control_n and_o censure_n so_o as_o they_o shall_v not_o so_o much_o as_o seem_v lawful_o and_o reasonable_o to_o be_v nor_o so_o far_o prevail_v by_o their_o be_v as_o to_o perverte_v the_o true_a doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n heresy_n may_v be_v but_o the_o faithful_a member_n of_o the_o church_n have_v due_a care_n of_o themselves_o and_o perform_v their_o duty_n well_o towards_o their_o lawful_a pastor_n shall_v be_v ever_o full_o secure_v against_o their_o snare_n and_o none_o deceive_v by_o they_o at_o least_o not_o unto_o damnation_n or_o guilt_n of_o mortal_a sin_n but_o such_o as_o through_o their_o own_o voluntary_a fault_n and_o negligence_n suffer_v themselves_o to_o be_v mist_v by_o they_o can_v his_o lordship_n possible_o be_v ignorant_a that_o the_o church_n susficient_o prevent_v heresy_n and_o schism_n on_o her_o part_n when_o she_o certain_o declare_v the_o truth_n and_o right_o determin_n the_o matter_n about_o which_o christian_n begin_v to_o contend_v and_o to_o be_v divide_v in_o opinion_n one_o from_o another_o when_o the_o due_o censure_n and_o anathematize_v the_o contrary_a error_n last_o when_o she_o use_v all_o lawful_a and_o practicable_a mean_n within_o her_o power_n to_o prevent_v and_o extirpate_v they_o this_o be_v prevention_n both_o necessary_a and_o also_o sufficient_a on_o the_o church_n part_n and_o this_o be_v do_v if_o the_o effect_n follow_v not_o it_o must_v not_o be_v ascribe_v to_o want_v of_o any_o spiritual_a power_n and_o authority_n in_o the_o church_n but_o only_o to_o the_o incorrigible_a pride_n obstinacy_n and_o malice_n of_o her_o rebellious_a child_n which_o nothing_o but_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n can_v over-rule_v and_o master_n a_o thing_n most_o clear_a and_o manifest_a in_o all_o civil_a commonwealth's_a prudent_o institute_v wherein_o when_o sedition_n and_o rebellion_n happen_v to_o arise_v and_o they_o do_v happen_v sometime_o in_o the_o very_o best_a wise_a man_n do_v not_o think_v it_o be_v for_o want_n of_o any_o requisite_a power_n and_o authority_n in_o the_o chief_a magistrate_n or_o state_n to_o command_v and_o compel_v all_o man_n to_o be_v obedient_a to_o law_n but_o that_o it_o proceed_v from_o those_o unavoidable_a distemper_n which_o by_o corruption_n and_o frailty_n of_o humane_a nature_n be_v incident_a to_o man_n mind_n and_o which_o can_v neither_o be_v foresee_v nor_o quell_v in_o a_o instant_n by_o any_o power_n on_o earth_n i_o add_v that_o the_o relatours_n objection_n oportet_fw-la haereses_fw-la esse_fw-la etc._n etc._n have_v as_o much_o force_n to_o prove_v the_o church_n not_o infallible_a even_o in_o point_n fundamental_a and_o absolute_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n and_o will_v exclude_v the_o necessity_n of_o any_o infallible_a power_n and_o authority_n in_o the_o church_n to_o prevent_v error_n contrary_a to_o such_o point_n which_o be_v repugnant_a even_o to_o the_o bishop_n own_o assertion_n for_o the_o word_n of_o st._n paul_n there_o must_v be_v heresy_n be_v as_o true_a of_o error_n contrary_a to_o fundamental_a point_n as_o other_z and_o there_o will_v be_v heresy_n more_o or_o less_o in_o all_o age_n in_o matter_n absolute_o necessary_a as_o well_o as_o in_o thing_n not_o necessary_a yea_o sure_o according_a to_o the_o more_o common_a principle_n and_o opinion_n of_o protestant_n such_o error_n only_o be_v proper_o to_o be_v esteem_v heresy_n which_o be_v contrary_a to_o fundamental_a and_o absolute_o necessary_a point_n in_o regard_n they_o say_v that_o save_v faith_n may_v consist_v with_o all_o other_o error_n whatsoever_o so_o that_o if_o because_o heresy_n must_v be_v or_o will_v be_v the_o bishop_n will_v conclude_v there_o be_v neither_o infallible_a certainty_n nor_o any_o mean_n of_o infallibbe_n certainty_n in_o the_o church_n for_o the_o know_v and_o determine_v the_o truth_n in_o such_o point_n as_o be_v contest_v by_o heretic_n as_o he_o do_v most_o plain_o and_o evident_o pretend_v to_o conclude_v by_o his_o allegation_n of_o this_o text_n he_o must_v in_o consequence_n also_o confess_v there_o be_v no_o infailible_n
certainty_n nor_o mean_n of_o infallible_a certainty_n less_o in_o the_o church_n for_o the_o teaehing_n and_o belief_n of_o any_o point_n at_o all_o even_o of_o the_o most_o absolute_o and_o universal_o necessary_a in_o the_o close_a of_o this_o paragraph_n he_o tax_v those_o of_o pride_n who_o will_v not_o 〈◊〉_d their_o private_a judgement_n where_o with_o good_a conscience_n they_o may_v and_o aught_o we_o may_v easy_o divine_v who_o he_o mean_v but_o be_v sure_a he_o can_v not_o exempt_v himself_o and_o his_o adherent_n from_o the_o sting_n of_o that_o censure_n though_o he_o endeavour_n it_o by_o say_v it_o be_v no_o pride_n not_o to_o submit_v to_o know_a and_o gross_a errout_n very_o good_a but_o we_o ask_v what_o sect_n or_o company_n of_o heretic_n in_o the_o world_n use_v not_o this_o plea_n do_v not_o even_o the_o artans_fw-la socinian_n and_o 〈◊〉_d arian_n themselves_o urge_v it_o as_o earnest_o against_o protestant_n as_o protestant_n do_v against_o we_o so_o that_o 〈◊〉_d the_o relatour_n pretend_v that_o the_o convocation_n of_o english_a prelate_n and_o clergy_n adherent_a to_o they_o shall_v 〈◊〉_d dictatour_n in_o the_o business_n of_o religion_n over_o all_o christendom_n beside_o and_o determine_v uncontroulable_o what_o be_v what_o be_v not_o to_o be_v account_v gross_a and_o dangerous_a error_n i_o see_v not_o what_o his_o discourse_n here_o signify_v but_o whereas_o himself_o object_n error_n to_o three_o general_n council_n at_o once_o viz._n those_o of_o lateran_n constance_n and_o trent_n yea_o such_o error_n as_o in_o his_o opinion_n give_v a_o great_a and_o more_o urgent_a cause_n of_o break_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n than_o any_o pride_n of_o man_n we_o shall_v not_o for_o the_o present_n tax_v he_o with_o want_n of_o modesly_a we_o only_o tell_v his_o follower_n it_o be_v as_o yet_o only_o say_v without_o prove_v and_o they_o can_v but_o acknowledge_v that_o in_o point_n of_o morality_n it_o be_v oftentimes_o very_o sufficient_a and_o very_a bone_a for_o a_o man_n bare_o to_o deny_v a_o crime_n that_o be_v object_v to_o he_o but_o it_o be_v never_o sufficient_a nor_o ever_o honest_a bare_o to_o object_v it_o beside_o we_o have_v much_o more_o reason_n to_o think_v that_o he_o a_o private_a doctor_n be_v mistake_v in_o his_o censure_n then_o that_o those_o three_o general_n council_n be_v deceive_v in_o the_o matter_n of_o faith_n which_o they_o define_v 10._o his_o acknowledgement_n that_o it_o be_v no_o work_n for_o his_o pen_n to_o 25._o determine_v how_o far_o the_o necessary_a point_n of_o soule-saving_a faith_n extend_v will_v have_v be_v ingenuous_a enough_o have_v he_o not_o make_v it_o intricate_a and_o meander-like_a by_o apply_v it_o to_o different_a person_n but_o keep_v it_o in_o its_o absolute_a nature_n viz._n what_o be_v simple_o necessary_a for_o all_o in_o which_o sense_n he_o have_v treat_v the_o point_n all_o this_o time_n now_o sure_a it_o the_o determine_v this_o main_a and_o as_o i_o may_v say_v cardinal_n difficulty_n be_v not_o work_v for_o his_o pen_n neither_o be_v it_o of_o any_o right_n work_n for_o his_o pen_n to_o draw_v upon_o himself_o and_o his_o party_n a_o necessity_n of_o at_o least_o be_v call_v upon_o and_o require_v to_o do_v it_o who_o counsel_v they_o contrary_a unto_o and_o without_o the_o example_n of_o any_o orthodox_n christian_n to_o restrain_v the_o infallible_a authority_n of_o the_o church_n in_o determine_v controversy_n of_o religion_n to_o they_o know_v not_o what_o or_o to_o such_o point_n as_o they_o neither_o do_v nor_o ever_o will_v be_v able_a certain_o to_o know_v and_o determine_v for_o as_o it_o be_v that_o only_a which_o bring_v our_o unanswerable_a demand_n upon_o they_o so_o till_o they_o have_v answer_v 〈◊〉_d and_o clear_o determine_v what_o those_o simple_o or_o absolute_o necessary_a point_n be_v in_o which_o the_o church_n can_v err_v we_o must_v proclaim_v they_o leave_v all_o christian_n that_o well_o consider_v what_o and_o upon_o what_o ground_n they_o believe_v vnsatisfy_v uncertaino_o and_o doubtful_a how_o far_o or_o in_o what_o matter_n they_o be_v oblige_v under_o pain_n of_o damnation_n to_o believe_v what_o be_v declare_v by_o the_o church_n to_o be_v divine_a truth_n and_o yet_o withal_o teach_v they_o that_o they_o neither_o can_v with_o true_a infallible_a faith_n nor_o aught_o nor_o lawful_o may_v belecue_v she_o in_o all_o she_o teach_v because_o in_o much_o of_o it_o she_o cyther_o err_v or_o be_v subject_a to_o err_v and_o teach_v they_o falsehood_n yea_o gross_a and_o dangerous_a error_n in_o stead_n of_o divine_a truth_n which_o if_o it_o be_v just_a or_o reasonable_a in_o our_o adversary_n to_o do_v or_o tend_v to_o any_o thing_n else_o but_o to_o 〈◊〉_d and_o perplex_v the_o mind_n of_o all_o conseientious_a christian_n with_o inextricable_a doubt_n and_o scruple_n 〈◊〉_d the_o indifferent_a reader_n judge_v nor_o can_v he_o to_o any_o purpose_n help_v himself_o here_o by_o what_o st._n thomas_n ibidem_fw-la and_o our_o author_n teach_v concern_v point_n precise_o necessary_a necessitate_v medij_fw-la for_o neither_o will_v the_o bishop_n stand_v to_o that_o scantling_n as_o he_o call_v it_o that_o be_v he_o will_v not_o dare_v to_o teach_v there_o be_v no_o more_o fundamental_a point_n in_o his_o sense_n than_o our_o divine_n teach_v there_o be_v point_n necessary_a necessitate_v medij_fw-la nor_o be_v the_o case_n alike_o for_o that_o doctrine_n have_v place_n only_o where_o invincible_a ignorance_n excuse_n from_o further_a knowledge_n and_o from_o express_a belief_n whereas_o here_o both_o sufficient_a proposition_n and_o actual_a knowledge_n of_o all_o article_n define_v by_o the_o church_n be_v suppose_v so_o as_o no_o ignorance_n can_v be_v plead_v in_o excuse_n of_o the_o party_n that_o err_v and_o yet_o they_o teach_v that_o of_o these_o article_n all_o equal_o so_o far_o as_o concern_v the_o church_n define_v and_o propound_v some_o may_v be_v refuse_v but_o all_o the_o rest_n must_v of_o necessity_n under_o pain_n of_o damnation_n be_v believe_v with_o divine_a and_o infallible_a faith_n nevertheless_o give_v no_o certain_a rule_n to_o know_v either_o the_o one_o or_o the_o other_o be_v not_o this_o daedalus-like_a to_o lead_v man_n into_o the_o midst_n of_o a_o labyrinth_n and_o there_o leave_v they_o 11._o in_o the_o follow_a paragraph_n the_o relatour_n do_v little_a else_o but_o dally_v with_o his_o reader_n in_o the_o equivocation_n of_o word_n catholic_a roman_a church_n particular_a universal_a one_o holy_a mother-church_n 26._o etc_n upon_o all_o which_o he_o make_v a_o brief_a descant_n at_o pleasure_n but_o we_o answer_v much_o be_v say_v nothing_o prove_v nor_o so_o much_o as_o offer_v to_o be_v prove_v to_o any_o purpose_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n in_o the_o sense_n that_o we_o maintain_v and_o have_v often_o declare_v be_v not_o only_o one_o but_o the_o one_o church_n of_o christ._n in_o the_o sense_n that_o we_o maintain_v she_o be_v holy_a all_o her_o doctrine_n define_v all_o her_o sacrament_n all_o her_o institute_n be_v holy_a and_o tend_v to_o holiness_n in_o the_o sense_n that_o we_o maintain_v she_o be_v catholic_a or_o universal_a both_o for_o extent_n of_o communion_n and_o integrity_n of_o doctrine_n with_o continue_a succession_n of_o pastor_n there_o be_v no_o christian_a country_n in_o the_o world_n where_o there_o be_v not_o some_o that_o acknowledge_v the_o pope_n authority_n and_o profess_v the_o roman_a faith_n nor_o do_v the_o roman_a church_n now_o teach_v any_o thing_n as_o faith_n which_o be_v contrary_a to_o what_o the_o catholic_a church_n have_v ever_o teach_v last_o we_o have_v show_v that_o even_o in_o the_o primitive_a church_n or_o first_o sive-hundred_n year_n after_o christ_n the_o faithful_a own_a subjection_n to_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o a_o necessity_n to_o communicate_v with_o she_o in_o point_n of_o christian_a doctrine_n we_o acknowledge_v the_o church_n of_o jerusalem_n be_v sometime_o by_o antiquity_n style_v a_o mother-church_n and_o the_o head_n of_o all_o other_o church_n but_o we_o say_v withal_o it_o be_v mere_o a_o title_n of_o honour_n and_o dignity_n give_v she_o probable_o for_o this_o reason_n viz._n because_o the_o first_o foundation_n as_o it_o be_v of_o christian_a religion_n be_v lay_v there_o by_o the_o preach_n and_o passion_n of_o our_o saviour_n and_o because_o from_o thencë_n the_o first_o sound_n and_o publication_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v make_v by_o the_o apostle_n to_o all_o the_o church_n of_o the_o gentile_n it_o be_v no_o title_n of_o authority_n and_o power_n proper_o so_o call_v as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o roman_a church_n if_o our_o adversary_n think_v it_o be_v let_v they_o show_v what_o authority_n or_o jurisdiction_n ecclesiastical_a the_o church_n or_o bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n exercise_v over_o all_o other_o church_n either_o before_o it_o be_v
erect_v into_o a_o patriarchate_n or_o after_o as_o we_o have_v prove_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n ecclesiastical_a 〈◊〉_d over_o all_o part_n and_o province_n of_o christendom_n the_o last_o chapter_n several_a other_o mistake_v of_o the_o bishop_n with_o a_o conclusion_n of_o the_o whole_a work_n argument_n 1._o st._n cyprian_n text_n epist._n 45._o ad_fw-la cornelium_n touch_v the_o root_n and_o matrix_fw-la of_o the_o catholic_a church_n vindicate_v from_o 27._o the_o bishop_n perversion_n 2._o all_o charche_n in_o st._n cyprian_n bpiniony_n one_o by_o communion_n with_o that_o of_o rome_n 3._o tertullian_n of_o the_o same_o sentiment_n with_o st._n cyprian_n 4._o the_o bishop_n 〈◊〉_d betwixt_o the_o essence_n and_o existence_n of_o the_o church_n not_o pertinent_a 5._o his_o 〈◊〉_d touch_v the_o lady_n go_v to_o church_n so_o persuade_v in_o conscience_n as_o she_o be_v not_o 〈◊〉_d 6._o go_v to_o protestant_a church_n in_o england_n never_o hold_v by_o lawful_a catholic_n 7._o the_o heretic_n badge_n viz._n pride_n and_o presumption_n of_o one_o proper_a judgement_n not_o well_o put_v off_o by_o the_o bishop_n 8._o the_o same_o charge_n can_v be_v retort_v upon_o catholic_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n 9_o catholic_n maintain_v the_o same_o succession_n to_o be_v a_o mark_n of_o the_o true_a church_n which_o the_o father_n do_v viz._n the_o joint-succession_n of_o person_n and_o doctrine_n 10._o stapleton_n not_o contrary_a to_o this_o nor_o to_o himself_o whatever_o be_v pretend_v by_o the_o bishop_n 11._o temporary_a contestation_n about_o the_o papacy_n no_o interruption_n of_o the_o lawful_a succession_n of_o pope_n 12._o the_o bishop_n stand_v to_o his_o principle_n can_v rid_v himself_o of_o a._n c._n dilemma_n viz._n of_o make_v 〈◊〉_d no_o judge_n at_o all_o or_o every_o man_n judge_n for_o himself_o in_o controversy_n of_o faith_n 13._o infallibility_n the_o true_a foundation_n loath_a of_o church_n and_o religion_n with_o the_o author_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o prayer_n for_o the_o 〈◊〉_d the_o bishop_n have_v still_o a_o pieque_fw-la against_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v ever_o willing_a to_o lessen_v as_o much_o as_o in_o he_o lie_v the_o respect_n which_o good_a christian_n of_o ancient_a time_n may_v be_v think_v to_o have_v bear_v towards_o that_o sea_n out_o of_o this_o humour_n it_o proceed_v that_o he_o will_v not_o endure_v the_o roman_a sea_n shall_v be_v style_v the_o root_n and_o matrix_fw-la of_o the_o church_n catholic_n but_o to_o a_o void_a it_o take_v occasion_n even_o where_o he_o confess_v none_o be_v give_v he_o by_o his_o adversary_n to_o make_v a_o long_a discourse_n of_o no_o less_o than_o eight_o or_o nine_o page_n in_o folio_n only_o upon_o a_o text_n of_o st._n cyprian_a which_o he_o call_v indeed_o a_o difficult_a place_n that_o he_o may_v not_o seem_v to_o want_v some_o reason_n for_o his_o tediousness_n but_o i_o presume_v a_o indifferent_a reader_n have_v observe_v the_o text_n and_o well_o weigh_v the_o bishop_n comment_n upon_o it_o will_v judge_v it_o difficult_a in_o no_o other_o sense_n then_o that_o the_o relatour_n find_v it_o somewhat_o a_o hard_a matter_n for_o he_o to_z disguise_z and_o pervert_v it_o from_o its_o true_a sense_n but_o a_o bad_a cause_n will_v plunge_v the_o best_a wit_n sometime_o into_o difficulty_n and_o i_o be_o apt_a to_o think_v our_o adversary_n in_o this_o digtession_n contend_v more_o than_o a_o little_a against_o what_o he_o can_v not_o but_o in_o his_o own_o conscience_n see_v to_o be_v most_o probable_a 1._o for_o first_o as_o to_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o story_n the_o occasion_n of_o write_v that_o epistle_n wherein_o st._n cyprian_n be_v by_o we_o suppose_v to_o 〈◊〉_d style_v the_o roman_a church_n the_o root_n and_o matrix_fw-la of_o the_o church_n catholic_a be_v not_o that_o which_o the_o relatour_n set_v down_o but_o very_o different_a from_o it_o the_o relatour_n tell_v we_o they_o be_v st._n cyprian_n own_v letter_n about_o which_o cornelius_n bishop_n of_o rome_n expostulate_v with_o he_o and_o complain_v that_o they_o be_v not_o direct_v to_o himself_o as_o of_o right_n they_o ought_v to_o have_v be_v but_o to_o the_o roman_a clergy_n whereas_o in_o truth_n st._n cyprian_n and_o his_o colleague_n have_v take_v a_o resolution_n not_o to_o write_v at_o all_o to_o rome_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o schism_n that_o be_v there_o 〈◊〉_d till_o they_o have_v first_o hear_v from_o their_o legate_n the_o dishops_n caldonius_n and_o fertunatus_fw-la who_o they_o have_v send_v on_o purpose_n to_o rome_n to_o know_v the_o true_a state_n of_o affair_n betwixt_o cornelius_n the_o lawful_a bishop_n and_o 〈◊〉_d the_o schismatique_a but_o those_o letter_n be_v write_v by_o certain_a priest_n and_o other_o of_o the_o african_a clergy_n pertain_v to_o the_o diocese_n of_o adrymettium_fw-la where_o st._n cyprian_n happen_v to_o be_v at_o that_o time_n and_o in_o the_o absence_n also_o of_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o place_n this_o appear_v by_o the_o very_a cornel._n word_n of_o the_o epistle_n it_o felse_a nor_o do_v st._n cyprian_n answer_n as_o the_o bishop_n feign_v he_o to_o do_v to_o wit_n as_o own_v or_o acknowledge_v the_o write_n of_o those_o letter_n himself_o or_o that_o they_o be_v send_v with_o his_o knowledge_n but_o profess_v the_o thing_n be_v do_v out_o of_o ignorance_n of_o what_o himself_o and_o colleague_n have_v resolve_v and_o only_o by_o some_o in_o africa_n during_o the_o absence_n of_o their_o bishop_n second_o as_o to_o the_o word_n whereby_o st._n cyprian_n profess_v to_o gornelius_n that_o he_o for_o his_o part_n do_v exhort_v all_o that_o sail_v out_o of_o africa_n to_o rome_n that_o they_o shall_v acknowledge_v and_o embrace_v the_o root_n and_o matrix_fw-la of_o the_o catholic_a church_n who_o can_v imagine_v any_o other_o thing_n shall_v be_v mean_v by_o they_o but_o that_o he_o exhort_v such_o people_n when_o they_o come_v to_o rome_n that_o they_o shall_v join_v themselves_o to_o the_o party_n and_o communion_n of_o the_o lawful_a bishop_n of_o rome_n because_o his_o communion_n be_v the_o root_n and_o matrix_fw-la of_o the_o church_n and_o have_v nothing_o to_o do_v with_o the_o schismatic_n the_o bishop_n will_v have_v we_o think_v he_o mean_v only_o to_o exhort_v they_o in_o general_a to_o acknowledge_v and_o adhere_v to_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n which_o though_o we_o deny_v not_o but_o it_o may_v be_v in_o some_o sense_n term_v the_o root_n and_o matrix_fw-la of_o the_o church_n yet_o sure_o in_o this_o place_n it_o can_v be_v think_v little_o less_o than_o frivolous_a for_o st._n cyprian_a so_o especial_o to_o exhort_v those_o traveller_n to_o acknowledge_v that_o unity_n be_v the_o root_n of_o the_o church_n beside_o what_o satisfaction_n or_o just_a apology_n can_v st._n cyprian_n think_v it_o will_v be_v to_o cornelius_n already_o somewhat_o offend_v with_o he_o though_o by_o mistake_n for_o not_o due_o acknowledge_v his_o authority_n to_o tell_v he_o that_o he_o exhort_v all_o people_n that_o come_v out_o of_o africa_n to_o rome_n that_o they_o shall_v acknowledge_v unity_n to_o be_v the_o root_n of_o the_o church_n or_o that_o they_o shall_v keep_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n in_o general_a without_o specify_v his_o communion_n or_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o lawful_a bishop_n of_o rome_n in_o particular_a the_o acknowledgement_n then_o of_o the_o root_n and_o matrix_fw-la of_o the_o church_n which_o st._n cyprian_n here_o mean_v and_o exhort_v good_a christian_n to_o make_v and_o constant_o stand_v to_o when_o they_o come_v to_o rome_n have_v doubtless_o something_o in_o it_o more_o special_a than_o this_o that_o be_v to_o say_v it_o must_v relate_v to_o that_o which_o even_o by_o st._n cyprian_n own_v judgement_n 3._o elsewhere_o deliver_v be_v the_o root_n and_o matrix_fw-la of_o the_o church_n unity_n to_o wit_n the_o lawful_a successor_n of_o st._n peter_n to_o who_o the_o church_n itself_o owe_v her_o unity_n and_o about_o who_o there_o be_v at_o that_o time_n dispute_v and_o controversy_n and_o a_o doubt_v raise_v among_o christian_n at_o rome_n so_o that_o with_o very_o good_a reason_n st._n cyprian_n may_v exhort_v such_o as_o sail_v 〈◊〉_d to_o adhere_v to_o he_o and_o acknowledge_v he_o as_o be_v indeed_o the_o root_n and_o matrix_fw-la of_o ecclesiastical_a unity_n as_o likewise_o to_o disow_v and_o reject_v the_o party_n they_o shall_v find_v averse_a to_o he_o this_o indeed_o be_v a_o convenient_a subject_n of_o exhortation_n and_o well_o worthy_a of_o st._n cyprian_n charity_n and_o zeal_n but_o that_o he_o shall_v exhort_v they_o to_o any_o thing_n else_o in_o this_o place_n or_o no_o more_o than_o the_o relatour_n will_v seem_v to_o think_v be_v whole_o incredible_a but_o the_o bishop_n conceive_v it_o can_v not_o be_v st._n cyprian_n meaning_n and_o intention_n here_o to_o
have_v pretend_v to_o be_v pope_n neither_o hinder_a nor_o make_v void_a the_o legitimate_a and_o necessary_a succession_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n as_o doctor_n stapleton_n maintain_v it_o for_o first_o even_o when_o difference_n do_v happen_v there_o be_v for_o the_o most_o part_n a_o lawful_a pope_n present_o choose_v upon_o the_o vacancy_n so_o that_o the_o succession_n of_o the_o roman_a bishop_n be_v not_o at_o all_o break_a off_o or_o interrupt_v in_o this_o case_n and_o for_o the_o guilt_n of_o schism_n if_o any_o be_v it_o lay_v only_o on_o their_o part_n who_o wilful_o oppose_v the_o lawful_a pope_n after_o he_o be_v sufficient_o declare_v second_o when_o it_o so_o happen_v that_o either_o a_o lawful_a pope_n be_v not_o present_o choose_v or_o that_o it_o be_v not_o certain_o know_v which_o of_o the_o pretend_v party_n be_v the_o lawful_a pope_n yet_o neither_o in_o this_o case_n be_v the_o succession_n itself_o evacuated_a as_o any_o man_n in_o reason_n may_v see_v but_o only_o suspend_v for_o a_o while_n or_o the_o evidence_n thereof_o as_o to_o the_o person_n succeed_v pro_fw-la tempore_fw-la obstruct_v for_o either_o by_o death_n or_o by_o session_n and_o resignation_n of_o the_o pretendant_o themselves_o or_o by_o deprivation_n of_o those_o who_o election_n be_v notorious_o illegitimate_a or_o by_o some_o other_o lawful_a and_o canonical_a mean_n first_o or_o last_o the_o right_a of_o election_n to_o the_o apostolic_a dignity_n be_v always_o clear_v of_o doubt_n and_o legal_o settle_v upon_o one_o person_n who_o thereupon_o the_o whole_a church_n present_o acknowledge_v for_o true_a pope_n and_o as_o for_o the_o interregnum_fw-la as_o we_o may_v call_v it_o or_o the_o time_n that_o such_o contestation_n about_o the_o popedom_n last_v though_o it_o be_v a_o unhappy_a state_n of_o the_o church_n to_o be_v so_o divide_v within_o itself_o yet_o for_o the_o most_o part_n there_o be_v no_o formal_a schism_n on_o either_o part_n for_o neither_o do_v the_o anti-popes_n themselves_o proper_o speak_v separate_z from_o the_o catholic_a or_o roman_a church_n so_o as_o to_o deny_v its_o authority_n but_o only_o contest_v for_o a_o time_n with_o the_o person_n of_o that_o be_v lawful_a pope_n and_o upon_o a_o presumption_n at_o least_o pretend_a that_o themselves_o be_v pope_n and_o not_o he_o and_o though_o there_o have_v be_v formal_a schism_n on_o their_o part_n yet_o see_v there_o be_v none_o on_o his_o part_n that_o be_v true_a pope_n what_o man_n can_v be_v so_o unreasonable_a as_o to_o think_v that_o the_o fault_n of_o pretender_n can_v prejudice_n the_o lawful_a succession_n of_o he_o that_o be_v right_o choose_v now_o our_o adversary_n we_o hope_v know_v that_o the_o line_n of_o succession_n be_v continue_v not_o by_o the_o anti-popes_n but_o by_o the_o true_a pope_n to_o which_o we_o may_v add_v that_o in_o all_o such_o case_n viz._n of_o contestation_n about_o election_n to_o the_o papacy_n when_o the_o matter_n be_v real_o dubious_a as_o it_o be_v not_o of_o any_o absolute_a necessity_n for_o the_o church_n or_o the_o several_a province_n of_o christendom_n to_o acknowledge_v either_o the_o one_o or_o the_o other_o pretendant_n for_o true_a pope_n so_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o they_o to_o acknowledge_v he_o for_o such_o who_o they_o do_v bonâ_fw-la fide_fw-la and_o prudent_o judge_v to_o have_v be_v lawful_o choose_v ibidem_fw-la the_o superstition_n he_o talk_v of_o in_o the_o end_n of_o this_o paragraph_n be_v 〈◊〉_d lay_v to_o our_o charge_n and_o though_o they_o be_v even_o just_o charge_v upon_o we_o yet_o see_v by_o his_o own_o principle_n and_o profession_n they_o be_v not_o inconsistent_a with_o true_a faith_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n it_o be_v evident_a they_o can_v be_v urge_v by_o he_o as_o a_o argument_n to_o intringe_v and_o nullify_v the_o perpetual_a succession_n of_o pastor_n in_o the_o roman_a church_n 12._o to_o a._n c._n friendly_a and_o serious_a advice_n that_o his_o lordship_n 9_o will_v consider_v careful_o whether_o it_o be_v not_o more_o christian_a and_o less_o brainsick_a to_o think_v that_o st._n peter_n successor_n together_o with_o a_o general_n council_n shall_v be_v a_o infallible_a judge_n of_o controversy_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n then_o to_o make_v every_o man_n that_o can_v but_o read_v scripture_n a_o interpreter_n of_o it_o and_o a_o decider_n of_o controversy_n or_o to_o have_v no_o judge_n at_o all_o in_o such_o matter_n the_o bishop_n answer_v that_o he_o have_v consider_v all_o this_o careful_o and_o find_v himself_o no_o way_n chargeable_a with_o the_o inconvenience_n which_o a._n c._n specify_v of_o make_v every_o private_a man_n judge_v of_o controversy_n and_o a_o controller_n of_o general_n council_n or_o else_o of_o admit_v no_o judge_n at_o all_o to_o determine_v such_o controversy_n his_o reason_n be_v because_o he_o admit_v scripture_n interpret_v by_o the_o primitive_a church_n and_o a_o lawful_a and_o free_a general_n council_n determine_v according_a to_o they_o to_o judge_v of_o controversy_n and_o hold_v that_o no_o private_a man_n whatsoever_o may_v be_v judge_n of_o these_o but_o here_o the_o bishop_n himself_o be_v in_o the_o brier_n for_o tell_v i_o i_o pray_v how_o do_v this_o doctrine_n no_o private_a man_n whatsoever_o may_v be_v judge_n of_o these_o consist_v with_o what_o he_o profess_o avow_v *_o elsewhere_o as_o we_o have_v often_o 21._o see_v that_o private_a christian_n may_v upon_o just_a ground_n both_o deliberate_o doubt_n and_o constant_o deny_v the_o definition_n even_o of_o general_n council_n and_o that_o if_o they_o err_v gross_o and_o dangerous_o as_o in_o his_o opinion_n they_o may_v and_o have_v do_v it_o be_v no_o pride_n to_o refuse_v submission_n to_o they_o be_v not_o this_o to_o make_v private_a man_n judge_n of_o these_o thing_n that_o be_v to_o say_v whether_o or_o no_o general_n council_n do_v determine_v according_a to_o scripture_n and_o the_o primitive_a church_n a_o thing_n which_o the_o world_n see_v all_o protestant_n do_v take_v upon_o they_o to_o judge_v and_o the_o bishop_n himself_o as_o free_o as_o any_o notwithstanding_o his_o great_a but_o feign_a profession_n here_o to_o the_o contrary_a and_o utter_v disclaim_v from_o that_o desiunctive_a imputation_n of_o either_o a_o private_a judge_n or_o no_o judge_n in_o the_o very_a next_o line_n he_o open_o profess_v he_o can_v swallow_v this_o proposition_n that_o the_o pope_n with_o a_o general_n council_n ibidem_fw-la shall_v be_v judge_n yet_o the_o primitive_a church_n do_v not_o only_o swallow_v this_o proposition_n but_o also_o very_a well_o relish_v it_o witness_v its_o willing_a and_o absolute_a submission_n to_o the_o sour_a first_o general_n council_n consirm_v by_o the_o pope_n as_o judge_n of_o those_o grand_a and_o fundamental_a controversy_n that_o be_v then_o agitate_a and_o allow_v no_o private_a man_n to_o examine_v and_o consider_v their_o definition_n whether_o they_o be_v consonant_a unto_o scripture_n or_o not_o he_o shall_v have_v do_v well_o to_o have_v tell_v we_o what_o other_o judge_n but_o this_o the_o pope_n with_o a_o general_n council_n in_o controversy_n of_o faith_n the_o church_n have_v have_v what_o other_o judge_v but_o this_o ever_o be_v or_o indeed_o can_v be_v acknowledge_v for_o such_o matter_n and_o thersore_n if_o this_o judge_n be_v not_o admit_v and_o that_o absolute_o by_o we_o it_o be_v certain_a either_o no_o judge_n at_o all_o will_v be_v find_v to_o end_v these_o controversy_n or_o in_o the_o final_a devolution_n of_o the_o business_n every_o private_a man_n will_v be_v make_v judge_n the_o relatour_n have_v he_o please_v may_v have_v find_v a_o sufficient_a answer_n in_o bellarmin_n to_o the_o matter_n he_o bring_v out_o of_o aeneas_n silvius_n ibidem_fw-la otherwise_o call_v pope_n pius_n the_o second_o namely_o that_o he_o retract_v in_o his_o mature_a age_n and_o upon_o better_a consideration_n what_o he_o have_v former_o as_o it_o be_v in_o his_o youth_n out_o of_o heat_n of_o contention_n and_o upon_o presumption_n of_o scholastical_a learning_n write_v upon_o the_o subject_n of_o the_o pope_n authority_n in_o reference_n to_o general_n council_n neither_o can_v the_o mere_a want_n of_o learning_n which_o the_o bishop_n here_o object_n to_o some_o pope_n be_v any_o sufficient_a prejudice_n against_o their_o authority_n nor_o hinder_v the_o operation_n and_o assistance_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n from_o concur_v with_o they_o and_o work_v by_o they_o in_o all_o case_n necessary_a the_o apostle_n themselves_o and_o many_o worthy_a bishop_n in_o the_o primitive_a church_n be_v person_n of_o no_o great_a learning_n and_o it_o be_v the_o counsel_n and_o wisdom_n of_o god_n for_o the_o most_o part_n to_o choose_v the_o weak_a thing_n of_o this_o world_n to_o confound_v the_o strong_a and_o the_o foolish_a thing_n of_o this_o world_n to_o confound_v the_o wise_a
point_n of_o christian_a religion_n believe_v by_o protestant_n with_o divine_a faith_n page_n 125_o 126_o 127_o 352_o their_o protestation_n at_o auspurgh_n 1529._o direct_o against_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o her_o doctrine_n page_n 146_o 147_o to_o protest_v against_o the_o roman_a church_n in_o the_o manner_n they_o then_o do_v be_v to_o protest_v against_o all_o true_a visible_a church_n in_o the_o world_n page_n 147_o protestant_n be_v chooser_n in_o point_n of_o faith_n as_o much_o as_o any_o other_o heretic_n page_n 353_o how_o far_a protestant_n rely_v upon_o the_o infallible_a authority_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n ibid._n why_o unlawful_a for_o catholic_n in_o england_n to_o go_v to_o protestant_a church_n page_n 401_o purgatory_n the_o council_n of_o florence_n unanimous_a in_o define_v the_o point_n of_o purgatory_n page_n 358_o the_o father_n as_o well_o within_o the_o first_o 300._o year_n as_o after_o constant_o teach_v purgatory_n p._n 359_o 360_o 361_o 362_o 363_o 364_o 365_o 366_o 367_o 368_o 369_o no_o real_a difference_n betwixt_o pray_v for_o the_o dead_a use_v by_o the_o ancient_n and_o pray_v for_o the_o dead_a use_v by_o the_o roman_a church_n at_o present_a p._n 360_o 361_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o father_n in_o proof_n of_o purgatory_n make_v good_a page_n 358_o etc._n etc._n ut_fw-la supra_fw-la purgatory_n right_o esteem_v a_o apostolical_a tradition_n page_n 370_o reformation_n always_o and_o profess_o intend_v by_o the_o pope_n themselves_o in_o what_o be_v real_o needful_a p._n 147._o effect_v by_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n ibid._n the_o church_n of_o juda_n no_o pattern_n of_o the_o protestant_n reformation_n p._n 160_o the_o parallel_n for_o they_o hold_v better_a in_o the_o revolt_a tribe_n page_n 161_o sacrilege_n the_o natural_a fruit_n of_o protestant_a reformation_n page_n 170_o regicide_n no_o doctrine_n of_o catholic_n page_n 212_o 348_o resolution_n of_o faith_n how_o catholic_n do_v necessary_o resolve_v their_o faith_n into_o the_o church_n definition_n and_o how_o not_o page_n 58_o 60_o 63._o how_o such_o and_o such_o book_n contain_v in_o the_o bible_n be_v know_v to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n page_n 59_o 122_o no_o vicious_a circle_n incur_v by_o catholic_n in_o the_o resolution_n of_o their_o faith_n page_n 55_o 62_o 117_o 126_o in_o urge_v the_o circle_n both_o party_n must_v be_v suppose_v to_o believe_v scripture_n with_o divine_a and_o infallible_a faith_n page_n 111_o the_o bishop_n in_o his_o resolution_n can_v avoid_v the_o circle_n page_n 64_o 111_o revelation_n the_o church_n testimony_n or_o definition_n no_o new_a nor_o immediate_a revelation_n from_o god_n page_n 58_o 65_o divine_a revelation_n the_o only_a formal_a object_n or_o motive_n of_o infallible_a faith_n page_n 59_o safe-conduct_a grant_v two_o way_n jure_fw-la communi_fw-la and_o jure_fw-la speciali_fw-la and_o how_o they_o differ_v page_n 153_o the_o safe-conduct_n grant_v to_o john_n huss_n and_o hierome_n of_o prague_n be_v mere_o jure_fw-la communi_fw-la and_o secure_v they_o only_o against_o unjust_a violence_n ibid._n the_o safe-conduct_a grant_v to_o protestant_n by_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n be_v jure_fw-la speciali_fw-la and_o as_o full_a and_o absolute_a as_o themselves_o can_v desire_v or_o the_o council_n grant_v page_n 153_o 154_o the_o 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o council_n of_o constance_n touch_v safe-conduct_n grant_v by_o temporal_a prince_n what_o it_o intend_v page_n 154_o 156_o it_o contain_v nothing_o against_o keep_v faith_n with_o heretic_n ibid._n salvation_n attainable_a in_o the_o roman_a faith_n and_o church_n by_o our_o adversary_n own_o confession_n page_n 300_o 301_o etc._n etc._n catholic_a doctor_n in_o possibility_n of_o salvation_n by_o the_o bishop_n own_o ground_n page_n 323_o 324_o the_o roman_a religion_n demonstrate_v to_o be_v a_o more_o safe_a way_n to_o salvation_n then_o that_o of_o protestant_n page_n 301_o 302_o 303_o 307_o 308_o saint_n invocation_n of_o saint_n no_o error_n in_o faith_n page_n 290_o 291_o the_o father_n teach_v it_o ex_fw-la instituto_fw-la and_o dogmatical_o ibid._n st._n austin_n express_o for_o it_o ibid._n the_o saint_n mediator_n of_o intercession_n not_o of_o redemption_n pag._n 292_o the_o faithful_a under_o the_o old_a testament_n desire_v to_o be_v hear_v for_o the_o merit_n of_o saint_n no_o less_o than_o we_o ibid._n the_o intercession_n of_o saint_n depart_v not_o derogatory_n to_o the_o merit_n or_o intercession_n of_o christ._n page_n 293_o schism_n protestant_n not_o catholic_n make_v the_o present_a schism_n and_o how_o p._n 144_o 145_o 146_o 212_o schism_n at_o rome_n not_o in_o the_o roman_a church_n proper_o speak_v p._n 144_o the_o true_a and_o real_a cause_n of_o protestant_n being-excommunicated_n by_o the_o roman_a church_n page_n 145_o 158_o in_o point_n of_o departure_n as_o well_o as_o other_o circumstance_n the_o parallel_n betwixt_o they_o and_o the_o arian_n hold_v good_a page_n 145_o no_o just_a cause_n assignable_a for_o schism_n page_n 151_o scripture_n not_o believe_v to_o be_v divine_a but_o for_o the_o church_n authority_n p._n 17_o 66_o 67_o scripture_n alone_o can_v be_v no_o sufficient_a ground_n of_o infallible_a assent_n to_o superstructure_n or_o non-fundamental_a point_n contain_v in_o it_o page_n 19_o no_o mean_n of_o infallibly-discerning_a true_a scripture_n from_o false_a unless_o the_o church_n be_v infallible_a page_n 85_o in_o what_o case_n it_o be_v both_o lawful_a and_o necessary_a for_o christian_n to_o riquire_v a_o proof_n that_o scripture_n be_v god_n word_n page_n 118_o scripture_n alone_o in_o the_o bishop_n opinion_n the_o whole_a foundation_n of_o divine_a faith_n page_n 116_o in_o what_o sense_n christian_n must_v suppose_v or_o take_v it_o for_o grant_v that_o it_o be_v divine_a or_o god_n word_n page_n 121_o what_o light_v the_o scripture_n must_v have_v to_o show_v itself_o to_o be_v god_n word_n page_n 87_o the_o belief_n of_o scripture_n for_o its_o own_o pretend_a light_n imprudent_a p._n 88_o 89_o 90_o 91_o 116_o 125_o the_o father_n for_o some_o hundred_o year_n after_o christ_n 〈◊〉_d see_v no_o such_o light_n page_n 70_o 91_o no_o reason_n can_v be_v give_v why_o catholic_n shall_v not_o see_v that_o pretend_a light_n if_o there_o be_v any_o such_o page_n 90_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a make_v not_o scripture_n their_o only_a rule_n of_o faith_n in_o condemn_v the_o arian_n heresy_n page_n 125_o the_o scripture_n prerogative_n above_o the_o church_n page_n 60_o 64_o scripture_n in_o a_o proper_a sense_n no_o first_o principle_n p._n 51_o 90_o 114_o 118_o 119_o succession_n st._n james_n not_o successor_n to_o our_o lord_n in_o the_o principality_n of_o his_o church_n page_n 205_o our_o saviour_n prayer_n luc._n 22._o 32._o effectual_o extend_v both_o to_o st._n peter_n and_o his_o successor_n page_n 208_o lawful_a pastor_n visible_o succeed_v each_o other_o and_o handing_z down_o the_o same_o unchanged_a doctrine_n from_o christ_n to_o this_o present_a time_n a_o infeparable_a mark_n of_o the_o true_a church_n page_n 410_o 411_o sound_v doctrine_n indivisible_a from_o the_o whole_a lawful_a succession_n ibid._n the_o pope_n succession_n not_o interrupt_v by_o contestation_n about_o the_o papacy_n page_n 412_o 413_o sunday_n that_o sunday_n be_v keep_v holy_a instead_o of_o the_o jewish_a sabbath_n a_o apostolical_a tradition_n page_n 67_o synod_n the_o pope_n no_o enemy_n or_o opposer_n of_o national_a synod_n page_n 166_o sundry_a national_a synod_n impertinent_o alled'gd_v by_o the_o bishop_n in_o point_n of_o reformation_n page_n 167_o 168_o 169_o tradition_n not_o know_v but_o for_o and_o by_o the_o church_n authority_n page_n 17_o tradition_n unwritten_a page_n 26_o 67_o what_o tradition_n be_v to_o be_v account_v true_o apostolical_a and_o the_o unwritten_a word_n of_o god_n page_n 66_o etc._n etc._n universal_a tradition_n moral_o speak_v less_o subject_a to_o alteration_n or_o vitiate_a tiate_a than_o scripture_n page_n 98_o church-tradition_n a_o necessary_a condition_n of_o infallible_a belief_n page_n 59_o how_o necessary_a it_o be_v that_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o present_a church_n shall_v be_v infallible_a page_n 126_o transubstantiation_n no_o error_n in_o faith_n page_n 287_o not_o inconsistent_a with_o the_o ground_n of_o christian_a religion_n ibid._n the_o thing_n itself_o always_o believe_v by_o christian_n page_n 288_o evince_v from_o the_o text._n page_n 288_o 289_o trent_n the_o council_n of_o trent_n a_o lawful_a and_o free_a general_n council_n p._n 165_o 229_o nothing_n to_o he_o object_v against_o it_o more_o than_o against_o all_o general_n council_n ibid._n the_o pope_n preside_v therein_o contrary_a to_o no_o law_n divine_a natural_a or_o humane_a but_o his_o undoubted_a right_n page_n 230_o 231_o 232_o the_o pope_n no_o more_o the_o person_n to_o be_v reform_v at_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n then_o at_o those_o of_o nice_a and_o chalcedon_n page_n 232_o the_o place_n as_o indifferent_o choose_v for_o
damn_a page_n 336_o heresy_n even_o in_o point_n not-fundamental_a in_o protestant_n sense_n by_o st._n austin_n and_o the_o church_n account_n page_n 17_o pelagian_a heresy_n not_o condemn_v in_o the_o council_n of_o ephesus_n page_n 33_o nor_n in_o any_o other_o general_n council_n acknowledge_v by_o protestant_n ibid._n heresy_n what_o it_o be_v page_n 178_o proper_o speak_v not_o within_o but_o without_o the_o church_n page_n 218_o heretic_n those_o of_o former_a time_n as_o great_a pretender_n to_o scripture_n as_o protestant_n page_n 50_o faith_n necessary_a to_o be_v keep_v with_o heretic_n the_o constant_a tenet_n of_o all_o catholic_n page_n 152_o jew_n the_o jew_n prove_v the_o old_a testament_n to_o be_v god_n word_n the_o same_o way_n that_o we_o catholic_n do_v the_o new_a page_n 121_o they_o hold_v not_o the_o old_a testament_n for_o their_o sole_a rule_n of_o faith_n page_n 122_o image_n no_o real_a difference_n betwixt_o the_o ancient_n and_o the_o modern_a church_n of_o rome_n in_o point_n of_o image_n page_n 294_o the_o second_o council_n of_o nice_n express_o forbid_v the_o worship_n of_o image_n with_o latria_n or_o divine_a worship_n ibid._n etc._n etc._n the_o definition_n of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n touch_v the_o worship_v of_o image_n ibid._n the_o church_n have_v do_v what_o in_o she_o lie_v to_o prevent_v abuse_n in_o image-worship_n ibid._n image_n in_o common_a use_n and_o veneration_n among_o christian_n in_o primitive_a time_n page_n 295_o 296_o index_n the_o index_n expurgatorius_fw-la justify_v against_o the_o bishop_n calumny_n page_n 342_o infallible_a the_o catholic_n church_n prove_v to_o be_v infallible_a by_o the_o same_o mean_n that_o moses_n christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n be_v prove_v such_o page_n 55_o 56_o 62_o in_o what_o sense_n catholic_n maintain_v that_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o present_a church_n must_v be_v as_o infallible_a as_o that_o of_o the_o primitive_a and_o apostolical_a p._n 80_o no_o means_n to_o be_v infallible_o sure_a of_o prime_n apostolical_a tradition_n if_o the_o present_a church_n be_v fallible_a page_n 83_o necessary_a for_o the_o church_n to_o have_v power_n to_o determine_v infallible_o as_o well_o not-fundamental_a as_o fundamental_a point_n page_n 385_o infallibility_n whence_o the_o infallibility_n both_o of_o the_o catholic_n church_n and_o general_a council_n proceed_v page_n 43_o the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o present_a church_n prove_v from_o scripture_n page_n 101_o 102_o etc._n etc._n page_n 177_o 178_o 179_o in_o what_o manner_n the_o church_n infallibility_n in_o teach_v be_v right_o infer_v from_o the_o holy_a ghost_n assistance_n page_n 375_o 376_o intention_n what_o kind_n of_o intention_n in_o the_o priest_n be_v absolute_o necessary_a to_o the_o validity_n of_o the_o sacrament_n page_n 281_o 282_o 283_o no_o real_a inconvenience_n follow_v the_o catholic_a doctrine_n touch_v the_o priest_n intention_n page_n 284_o 285_o judge_n our_o adversary_n demand_v of_o a_o three_o person_n to_o be_v judge_n and_o umpire_n betwixt_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o they_o nugatory_n and_o frivolous_a pag._n 157_o 171_o 172_o 173_o the_o notorious_a partiality_n of_o english_a protestant_n prelate_n in_o this_o case_n p._n 174_o general_a council_n by_o the_o bishop_n own_o confession_n the_o best_a judge_n on_o earth_n for_o controversy_n of_o faith_n where_o the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n be_v doubt_v page_n 213_o a_o visible_a supreme_a live_a judge_n to_o determine_v controversy_n as_o necessary_a in_o the_o church_n as_o state_n page_n 219_o legate_n neither_o hosius_n nor_o any_o other_o person_n preside_v at_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a but_o only_o in_o quality_n of_o the_o pope_n legate_n page_n 231_o why_o the_o pope_n send_v no_o legate_n to_o the_o second_o council_n at_o constantinople_n page_n 232_o at_o the_o council_n of_o ephesus_n st._n cyril_n preside_v as_o legate_n to_o pope_n celestin._n ibid._n the_o like_a be_v at_o chalcedon_n and_o other_o general_a council_n ibid._n limbus_n patrum_fw-la the_o father_n general_o teach_v limbus_n patrum_fw-la page_n 336_o literae_fw-la communicatoriae_fw-la the_o literae_fw-la communicatoriae_fw-la by_o who_o first_o ordain_v and_o to_o what_o end_n page_n 220_o they_o evident_o prove_v the_o pope_n authority_n ibid._n the_o difference_n betwixt_o those_o grant_v by_o the_o pope_n and_o those_o grant_v by_o other_o catholic_a bishop_n ibid._n lyturgie_n the_o english_a lyturgie_n why_o unlawful_a to_o be_v use_v by_o catholic_n page_n 319_o manichee_n great_a bragger_n and_o pretender_n to_o truth_n when_o they_o most_o oppose_v it_o page_n 30_o miracle_n none_o ever_o wrought_v in_o confirmation_n of_o the_o present_a canon_n of_o scripture_n either_o protestant_n or_o catholic_a page_n 109_o miracle_n rather_o confirm_v the_o church_n infallibility_n than_o the_o scripture_n page_n 110_o they_o be_v always_o sufficient_o convince_a though_o they_o do_v not_o actual_o convert_v page_n 115_o monarchy_n that_o of_o the_o church_n not_o a_o pure_a but_o mix_v monarchy_n page_n 219_o 224_o monarchy_n acknowledge_v by_o philosopher_n the_o most_o perfect_a form_n of_o government_n page_n 220_o the_o impugn_a monarchical_a government_n of_o the_o church_n to_o what_o it_o tend_v page_n 224_o multitude_n catholic_n make_v not_o multitude_n alone_o any_o infallible_a mark_n of_o the_o true_a church_n page_n 162_o necessary_a point_n say_v to_o be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n in_o a_o double_a sense_n p._n 15_o 92_o not_o absolute_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n to_o believe_v scripture_n p._n 91_o 92_o nice_a no_o synod_n hold_v at_o rome_n in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o nicen_n council_n page_n 237_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a of_o absolute_a authority_n without_o the_o concurrence_n of_o any_o other_o council_n ibid._n the_o council_n of_o sardica_n esteem_v ancient_o but_o a_o appendix_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a and_o the_o reason_n why_o page_n 194_o 195_o the_o probable_a occasion_n of_o pope_n zosimus_n his_o cite_v the_o council_n of_o nice_a for_o that_o of_o sardica_n ibid._n obedience_n no_o external_n obedience_n to_o be_v give_v to_o the_o definition_n of_o general_a council_n shall_v they_o manifest_o err_v against_o scripture_n and_o demonstration_n page_n 241_o 242_o object_n of_o faith_n material_a and_o formal_a a_o necessary_a distinction_n page_z 15_o 18_o what_o it_o import_v ibid._n patriarch_n in_o point_n of_o authority_n not_o equal_a to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n p._n 183_o 184_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n head_n and_o prince_n of_o all_o the_o patriarch_n by_o the_o very_a canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a ibid._n the_o pope_n confirmation_n require_v to_o all_o new-elected_n patriarch_n ibid._n eight_o several_a patriarch_n depose_v by_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n ibid._n other_o patriarch_n restore_v to_o their_o sea_n by_o the_o pope_n authority_n ibid._n st._n peter_n in_o what_o manner_n st._n peter_n represent_v or_o bear_v the_o person_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n when_o he_o receive_v the_o key_n matth._n 16._o 19_o page_n 266_o 267_o christ_n whole_a flock_n more_o absolute_o and_o unlimited_o commit_v to_o st._n peter_n then_o to_o the_o other_o apostle_n page_n 211_o pope_n the_o pope_n authority_n always_o include_v and_o suppose_v in_o that_o of_o the_o church_n pag._n 33_o the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o pope_n not_o necessary_o tie_v to_o the_o particular_a church_n or_o city_n of_o rome_n page_n 132_o catholic_n not_o oblige_v to_o maintain_v the_o pope_n infallible_a save_v only_o with_o a_o general_n council_n page_n 133_o 143_o in_o what_o manner_n the_o pope_n trewhile_o endure_v the_o emperor_n censure_n page_n 192_o the_o pope_n authority_n due_o acknowledge_v will_v effectual_o prevent_v heresy_n and_o preserve_v unity_n in_o the_o church_n page_n 218_o the_o pope_n greatness_n no_o effect_n of_o humane_a policy_n page_n 13_o nor_o of_o his_o residence_n in_o the_o imperial-city_n page_n 192_o the_o definition_n of_o the_o council_n of_o florence_n touch_v the_o pope_n authority_n page_n 228_o 229_o the_o pope_n authority_n not_o prejudicial_a to_o that_o of_o temporal_a prince_n p._n 223_o pope_n alexander_n the_o three_o and_o pope_n innocent_a the_o three_o not_o contrary_a to_o one_o another_o in_o the_o cause_n of_o peter_n lombard_n page_n 279_o pope_n honorius_n not_o real_o guilty_a of_o the_o monothelite_n heresy_n p._n 279_o 280_o priest_n the_o judgement_n of_o the_o high_a priest_n and_o his_o sanhedrim_n in_o controversy_n concern_v the_o law_n infallible_a under_o the_o old_a testament_n p._n 97_o 123_o prescription_n just_o plead_v by_o catholic_n for_o their_o religion_n not_o so_o by_o protestant_n page_n 333_o 334_o primacy_n primatus_fw-la and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d what_o they_o signify_v especial_o in_o ecclesiastical_a sense_n page_n 200_o primacy_n infer_v supremacy_n and_o belong_v to_o st._n peter_n successor_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d then_o to_o himself_o ibid._n protestant_n neither_o scripture_n nor_o any_o other_o